summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-02-06 20:10:55 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-02-06 20:10:55 -0800
commit30194eafb50eacef0dc3b6dbf131aba630952808 (patch)
tree3c990f165c1cb6c791eda4fc7eff0848aad48fae
parent1f73e23c469fde7f4b6d4785c2365c044894340e (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/53929-0.txt6923
-rw-r--r--old/53929-0.zipbin142072 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/53929-h.zipbin580242 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/53929-h/53929-h.htm9052
-rw-r--r--old/53929-h/images/cover.jpgbin84609 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/53929-h/images/illus-048.jpgbin59461 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/53929-h/images/illus-094.jpgbin70071 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/53929-h/images/illus-126.jpgbin62786 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/53929-h/images/illus-160.jpgbin53802 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/53929-h/images/illus-174.jpgbin45087 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/53929-h/images/illus-fpc.jpgbin60871 -> 0 bytes
14 files changed, 17 insertions, 15975 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..175ff25
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #53929 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/53929)
diff --git a/old/53929-0.txt b/old/53929-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index c172a67..0000000
--- a/old/53929-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,6923 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Baree, Son of Kazan, by James Oliver Curwood
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: Baree, Son of Kazan
-
-Author: James Oliver Curwood
-
-Illustrator: Frank B. Hoffman
-
-Release Date: January 9, 2017 [EBook #53929]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BAREE, SON OF KAZAN ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
- BOOKS BY THE SAME AUTHOR
-
- The Courage of Captain Plum
- The Honor of the Big Snows
- The Gold Hunters
- The Wolf Hunters
- The Danger Trail
- Philip Steele
- The Great Lakes
- Flower of the North
- Isobel
- Kazan
- God’s Country—and the Woman
- The Hunted Woman
- The Grizzly King
- Baree, Son of Kazan
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-[Illustration: Baree had not killed, but he had conquered. His first
-great day—or night—had come. The world was filled with a new promise for
-him, as vast as the night itself.]
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- BAREE, SON OF KAZAN
-
- BY
- JAMES OLIVER CURWOOD
-
- ILLUSTRATED BY
- FRANK B. HOFFMAN
-
- Garden City New York
- DOUBLEDAY, PAGE & COMPANY
- 1917
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Copyright, 1917, by
- Doubleday, Page & Company
-
- All rights reserved, including that of
- translation into foreign languages,
- including the Scandinavian
-
- COPYRIGHT, 1917, BY THE RED BOOK CORPORATION
- UNDER THE TITLE “A SON OF KAZAN”
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- PREFACE
-
-Since the publication of my two animal books, “Kazan” and “The Grizzly
-King,” I have received so many hundreds of letters from friends of wild
-animal life, all of which were more or less of an enquiring nature, that
-I have been encouraged to incorporate in this preface of the third of my
-series—“Baree, Son of Kazan”—something more of my desire and hope in
-writing of wild life, and something of the foundation of fact whereupon
-this and its companion books have been written.
-
-I have always disliked the preaching of sermons in the pages of romance.
-It is like placing a halter about an unsuspecting reader’s neck and
-dragging him into paths for which he may have no liking. But if fact and
-truth produce in the reader’s mind a message for himself, then a work
-has been done. That is what I hope for in my nature books. The American
-people are not and never have been lovers of wild life. As a nation we
-have gone after Nature with a gun.
-
-And what right, you may ask, has a confessed slaughterer of wild life
-such as I have been to complain? None at all, I assure you. I have
-twenty-seven guns—and I have used them all. I stand condemned as having
-done more than my share toward extermination. But that does not lessen
-the fact that I have learned; and in learning I have come to believe
-that if boys and girls and men and women could be brought into the homes
-and lives of wild birds and animals as their homes are made and their
-lives are lived we would all understand at last that wherever a heart
-beats it is very much like our own in the final analysis of things. To
-see a bird singing on a twig means but little; but to live a season with
-that bird, to be with it in courting days, in matehood and motherhood,
-to understand its griefs as well as its gladness means a great deal. And
-in my books it is my desire to tell of the lives of the wild things
-which I know as they are actually lived. It is not my desire to humanize
-them. If we are to love wild animals so much that we do not want to kill
-them we _must know them as they actually live_. And in their lives, in
-the _facts_ of their lives, there is so much of real and honest romance
-and tragedy, so much that makes them akin to ourselves that the animal
-biographer need not step aside from the paths of actuality to hold one’s
-interest.
-
-Perhaps rather tediously I have come to the few words I want to say
-about Baree, the hero of this book. Baree, after all, is only another
-Kazan. For it was Kazan I found in the way I have described—a bad dog, a
-killer about to be shot to death by his master when chance, and my own
-faith in him, gave him to me.
-
-We travelled together for many thousands of miles through the
-northland—on trails to the Barren Lands, to Hudson’s Bay and to the
-Arctic. Kazan, the bad dog, the half-wolf, the killer—was the best
-four-legged friend I ever had. He died near Fort MacPherson, on the Peel
-River, and is buried there. And Kazan was the father of Baree; Gray
-Wolf, the full-blooded wolf was his mother. Nepeese, The Willow, still
-lives near God’s Lake; and it was in the country of Nepeese and her
-father that for three lazy months I watched the doings at Beaver Town,
-and went on fishing trips with Wakayoo, the bear. Sometimes I have
-wondered if old Beaver Tooth himself did not in some way understand that
-I had made his colony safe for his people. It was Pierrot’s trapping
-ground; and to Pierrot—father of Nepeese—I gave my best rifle on his
-word that he would not harm my beaver friends for two years. And the
-people of Pierrot’s breed keep their word. Wakayoo, Baree’s big bear
-friend is dead. He was killed as I have described, in that “pocket”
-among the ridges, while I was on a jaunt to Beaver Town. We were
-becoming good friends and I missed him a great deal. The story of
-Pierrot and of his princess wife, Wyola, is true; they are buried side
-by side under the tall spruce that stood near their cabin. Pierrot’s
-murderer, instead of dying as I have told it, was killed in his attempt
-to escape the Royal Mounted farther west. When I last saw Baree he was
-at Lac Seul House, where I was the guest of Mr. William Patterson, the
-factor; and the last word I heard from him was through my good friend
-Frank Aldous, factor at White Dog Post, who wrote me only a few weeks
-ago that he had recently seen Nepeese and Baree and the husband of
-Nepeese, and that the happiness he found in their far wilderness home
-made him regret that he was a bachelor. I feel sorry for Aldous. He is a
-splendid young Englishman, unattached, and some day I am going to try
-and marry him off. I have in mind some one at the present moment—a
-fox-trapper’s daughter up near the Barren, very pretty, and educated at
-a Missioner’s school; and as Aldous is going with me on my next trip I
-may have something to say about them in the book that is to follow
-“Baree, Son of Kazan.”
-
- James Oliver Curwood.
-
- Owosso, Michigan,
- June 12, 1917.
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
-
- Baree had not killed, but he had conquered. His first great day—or
- night—had come _Frontispiece_
-
- Nepeese, the trapper’s daughter, known to the forest men as “The
- Willow,” who became a big factor in the life of the pup Baree
-
- Baree stood still. Nepeese was not more than twenty feet from him.
- She sat on a rock, full in the early morning sun
-
- With an oath McTaggart snatched his revolver from its holster. The
- Willow was ahead of him
-
- The Willow rose slowly to her feet and looked at Pierrot. Her eyes
- were big and dark and steady
-
- When Baree joined the pack, a maddened, mouth-frothing, snarling
- horde, Napamoos, the young caribou bull, was well out in the river
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- BAREE, SON OF KAZAN
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I
-
-
-To Baree, for many days after he was born, the world was a vast gloomy
-cavern.
-
-During these first days of his life his home was in the heart of a great
-windfall where Gray Wolf, his blind mother, had found a safe nest for
-his babyhood, and to which Kazan, her mate, came only now and then, his
-eyes gleaming like strange balls of greenish fire in the darkness. It
-was Kazan’s eyes that gave to Baree his first impression of something
-existing away from his mother’s side, and they brought to him also his
-discovery of vision. He could feel, he could smell, he could hear—but in
-that black pit under the fallen timber he had never _seen_ until the
-eyes came. At first they frightened him; then they puzzled him, and his
-fear changed to an immense curiosity. He would be looking straight at
-them, when all at once they would disappear. This was when Kazan turned
-his head. And then they would flash back at him again out of the
-darkness with such startling suddenness that Baree would involuntarily
-shrink closer to his mother, who always trembled and shivered in a
-strange sort of way when Kazan came in.
-
-Baree, of course, would never know their story. He would never know that
-Gray Wolf, his mother, was a full-blooded wolf, and that Kazan, his
-father, was a dog. In him nature was already beginning its wonderful
-work, but it would never go beyond certain limitations. It would tell
-him, in time, that his beautiful wolf-mother was blind, but he would
-never know of that terrible battle between Gray Wolf and the lynx in
-which his mother’s sight had been destroyed. Nature could tell him
-nothing of Kazan’s merciless vengeance, of the wonderful years of their
-matehood, of their loyalty, their strange adventures in the great
-Canadian wilderness—it could make him only a son of Kazan.
-
-But at first, and for many days, it was all mother. Even after his eyes
-had opened wide and he had found his legs so that he could stumble about
-a little in the darkness, nothing existed for Baree but his mother. When
-he was old enough to be playing with sticks and moss out in the
-sunlight, he still did not know what she looked like. But to him she was
-big and soft and warm, and she licked his face with her tongue, and
-talked to him in a gentle, whimpering way that at last made him find his
-own voice in a faint, squeaky yap.
-
-And then came that wonderful day when the greenish balls of fire that
-were Kazan’s eyes came nearer and nearer, a little at a time, and very
-cautiously. Heretofore Gray Wolf had warned him back. To be alone was
-the first law of her wild breed during mothering-time. A low snarl from
-her throat, and Kazan had always stopped. But on this day the snarl did
-not come. In Gray Wolf’s throat it died away in a low, whimpering sound.
-A note of loneliness, of gladness, of a great yearning. “It is all right
-now,” she was saying to Kazan; and Kazan—pausing for a moment to make
-sure—replied with an answering note deep in his throat.
-
-Still slowly, as if not quite sure of what he would find, Kazan came to
-them, and Baree snuggled closer to his mother. He heard Kazan as he
-dropped down heavily on his belly close to Gray Wolf. He was
-unafraid—and mightily curious. And Kazan, too, was curious. He sniffed.
-In the gloom his ears were alert. After a little Baree began to move. An
-inch at a time he dragged himself away from Gray Wolf’s side. Every
-muscle in her lithe body tensed. Again her wolf blood was warning her.
-There was danger for Baree. Her lips drew back, baring her fangs. Her
-throat trembled, but the note in it never came. Out of the darkness two
-yards away came a soft, puppyish whine, and the caressing sound of
-Kazan’s tongue.
-
-Baree had felt the thrill of his first great adventure. He had
-discovered his father.
-
-This all happened in the third week of Baree’s life. He was just
-eighteen days old when Gray Wolf allowed Kazan to make the acquaintance
-of his son. If it had not been for Gray Wolf’s blindness and the memory
-of that day on the Sun Rock when the lynx had destroyed her eyes, she
-would have given birth to Baree in the open, and his legs would have
-been quite strong. He would have known the sun and the moon and the
-stars; he would have realized what the thunder meant, and would have
-seen the lightning flashing in the sky. But as it was, there had been
-nothing for him to do in that black cavern under the windfall but
-stumble about a little in the darkness, and lick with his tiny red
-tongue the raw bones that were strewn about them. Many times he had been
-left alone. He had heard his mother come and go, and nearly always it
-had been in response to a yelp from Kazan that came to them like a
-distant echo. He had never felt a very strong desire to follow until
-this day when Kazan’s big, cool tongue caressed his face. In those
-wonderful seconds nature was at work. His instinct was not quite born
-until then. And when Kazan went away, leaving them alone in darkness,
-Baree whimpered for him to come back, just as he had cried for his
-mother when now and then she had left him in response to her mate’s
-call.
-
-The sun was straight above the forest when, an hour or two after Kazan’s
-visit, Gray Wolf slipped away. Between Baree’s nest and the top of the
-windfall were forty feet of jammed and broken timber through which not a
-ray of light could break. This blackness did not frighten him, for he
-had yet to learn the meaning of light. Day, and not night, was to fill
-him with his first great terror. So quite fearlessly, with a yelp for
-his mother to wait for him, he began to follow. If Gray Wolf heard him,
-she paid no attention to his call, and the scrape of her claws on the
-dead timber died swiftly away.
-
-This time Baree did not stop at the eight-inch log which had always shut
-in his world in that particular direction. He clambered to the top of it
-and rolled over on the other side. Beyond this was vast adventure, and
-he plunged into it courageously.
-
-It took him a long time to make the first twenty yards. Then he came to
-a log worn smooth by the feet of Gray Wolf and Kazan, and stopping every
-few feet to send out a whimpering call for his mother, he made his way
-farther and farther along it. As he went, there grew slowly a curious
-change in this world of his. He had known nothing but blackness. And now
-this blackness seemed breaking itself up into strange shapes and
-shadows. Once he caught the flash of a fiery streak above him—a gleam of
-sunshine—and it startled him so that he flattened himself down upon the
-log and did not move for half a minute. Then he went on. An ermine
-squeaked under him. He heard the swift rustling of a squirrel’s feet,
-and a curious _whut-whut-whut_ that was not at all like any sound his
-mother had ever made. He was off the trail.
-
-The log was no longer smooth, and it was leading him upward higher and
-higher into the tangle of the windfall, and was growing narrower every
-foot he progressed. He whined. His soft little nose sought vainly for
-the warm scent of his mother. The end came suddenly when he lost his
-balance and fell. He let out a piercing cry of terror as he felt himself
-slipping, and then plunged downward. He must have been high up in the
-windfall, for to Baree it was a tremendous fall. His soft little body
-thumped from log to log as he shot this way and that, and when at last
-he stopped, there was scarcely a breath left in him. But he stood up
-quickly on his four trembling legs—and blinked.
-
-A new terror held Baree rooted there. In an instant the whole world had
-changed. It was a flood of sunlight. Everywhere he looked he could see
-strange things. But it was the sun that frightened him most. It was his
-first impression of fire, and it made his eyes smart. He would have
-slunk back into the friendly gloom of the windfall, but at this moment
-Gray Wolf came around the end of a great log, followed by Kazan. She
-muzzled Baree joyously, and Kazan in a most doglike fashion wagged his
-tail. This mark of the dog was to be a part of Baree. Half wolf, he
-would always wag his tail. He tried to wag it now. Perhaps Kazan saw the
-effort, for he emitted a muffled yelp of approbation as he sat back on
-his haunches.
-
-Or he might have been saying to Gray Wolf:
-
-“Well, we’ve got the little rascal out of that windfall at last, haven’t
-we?”
-
-For Baree it had been a great day. He had discovered his father—and the
-world.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II
-
-
-And it was a wonderful world—a world of vast silence, empty of
-everything but the creatures of the wild. The nearest Hudson’s Bay post
-was a hundred miles away, and the first town of civilization was a
-straight three hundred to the south. Two years before, Tusoo, the Cree
-trapper, had called this his domain. It had come down to him, as was the
-law of the forests, through generations of forefathers; but Tusoo had
-been the last of his worn-out family; he had died of smallpox, and his
-wife and his children had died with him. Since then no human foot had
-taken up his trails. The lynx had multiplied. The moose and caribou had
-gone unhunted by man. The beaver had built their homes undisturbed. The
-tracks of the black bear were as thick as the tracks of the deer farther
-south. And where once the deadfalls and poison-baits of Tusoo had kept
-the wolves thinned down, there was no longer a menace for these
-_mohekuns_ of the wilderness.
-
-Following the sun of this first wonderful day came the moon and the
-stars of Baree’s first real night. It was a splendid night, and with it
-a full red moon sailed up over the forests, flooding the earth with a
-new kind of light, softer and more beautiful to Baree. The wolf was
-strong in him, and he was restless. He had slept that day in the warmth
-of the sun, but he could not sleep in this glow of the moon. He nosed
-uneasily about Gray Wolf, who lay flat on her belly, her beautiful head
-alert, listening yearningly to the night sounds, and for the tonguing of
-Kazan, who had slunk away like a shadow to hunt.
-
-Half a dozen times, as Baree wandered about near the windfall, he heard
-a soft whir over his head, and once or twice he saw gray shadows
-floating swiftly through the air. They were the big northern owls
-swooping down to investigate him, and if he had been a rabbit instead of
-a wolf-dog whelp, his first night under the moon and stars would have
-been his last; for unlike Wapoos, the rabbit, he was not cautious. Gray
-Wolf did not watch him closely. Instinct told her that in these forests
-there was no great danger for Baree except at the hands of man. In his
-veins ran the blood of the wolf. He was a hunter of all other wild
-creatures, but no other creature, either winged or fanged, hunted him.
-
-In a way Baree sensed this. He was not afraid of the owls. He was not
-afraid of the strange blood-curdling cries they made in the black
-spruce-tops. But once fear entered into him, and he scurried back to his
-mother. It was when one of the winged hunters of the air swooped down on
-a snowshoe rabbit, and the squealing agony of the doomed creature set
-his heart thumping like a little hammer. He felt in those cries the
-nearness of that one ever-present tragedy of the wild—death. He felt it
-again that night when, snuggled close to Gray Wolf, he listened to the
-fierce outcry of a wolf-pack that was close on the heels of a young
-caribou bull. And the meaning of it all, and the wild thrill of it all,
-came home to him early in the gray dawn when Kazan returned, holding
-between his jaws a huge rabbit that was still kicking and squirming with
-life.
-
-This rabbit was the climax in the first chapter of Baree’s education. It
-was as if Gray Wolf and Kazan had planned it all out, so that he might
-receive his first instruction in the art of killing. When Kazan had
-dropped it, Baree approached the big hare cautiously. The back of
-Wapoos, the rabbit, was broken. His round eyes were glazed, and he had
-ceased to feel pain. But to Baree, as he dug his tiny teeth into the
-heavy fur under Wapoos’s throat, the hare was very much alive. The teeth
-did not go through into the flesh. With puppyish fierceness Baree hung
-on. He thought that he was killing. He could feel the dying convulsions
-of Wapoos. He could hear the last gasping breaths leaving the warm body,
-and he snarled and tugged until finally he fell back with a mouthful of
-fur. When he returned to the attack, Wapoos was quite dead, and Baree
-continued to bite and snarl until Gray Wolf came with her sharp fangs
-and tore the rabbit to pieces. After that followed the feast.
-
-So Baree came to understand that to eat meant to kill, and as other days
-and nights passed, there grew in him swiftly the hunger for flesh. In
-this he was the true wolf. From Kazan he had taken other and stronger
-inheritances of the dog. He was magnificently black, which in later days
-gave him the name of _Kusketa Mohekun_—the black wolf. On his breast was
-a white star. His right ear was tipped with white. His tail, at six
-weeks, was bushy and hung low. It was a wolf’s tail. His ears were Gray
-Wolf’s ears—sharp, short, pointed, always alert. His fore-shoulders gave
-promise of being splendidly like Kazan’s, and when he stood up he was
-like the trace dog, except that he always stood _sidewise_ to the point
-or object he was watching. This, again, was the wolf, for a dog faces
-the direction in which he is looking intently.
-
-One brilliant night, when Baree was two months old, and when the sky was
-filled with stars and a June moon so bright that it seemed scarcely
-higher than the tall spruce-tops, Baree settled back on his haunches and
-howled. It was a first effort. But there was no mistake in the note of
-it. It was the wolf-howl. But a moment later when Baree slunk up to
-Kazan, as if deeply ashamed of his effort, he was wagging his tail in an
-unmistakably apologetic manner. And this again was the dog. If Tusoo,
-the dead Indian trapper, could have seen him then, he would have judged
-him by that wagging of his tail. It revealed the fact that deep in his
-heart—and in his soul, if we can concede that he had one—Baree was dog.
-
-In another way Tusoo would have found judgment of him. At two months the
-wolf whelp has forgotten how to play. He is a slinking part of the
-wilderness, already at work preying on creatures smaller and more
-helpless than himself. Baree still played. In his excursions away from
-the windfall he had never gone farther than the creek, a hundred yards
-from where his mother lay. He had helped to tear many dead and dying
-rabbits into pieces; he believed, if he thought upon the matter at all,
-that he was exceedingly fierce and courageous. But it was his ninth week
-before he felt his spurs and fought his terrible battle with the young
-owl in the edge of the thick forest.
-
-The fact that Oohoomisew, the big snow-owl, had made her nest in a
-broken stub not far from the windfall was destined to change the whole
-course of Baree’s life, just as the blinding of Gray Wolf had changed
-hers, and a man’s club had changed Kazan’s. The creek ran close past the
-stub, which had been shriven by lightning; and this stub stood in a
-still, dark place in the forest, surrounded by tall, black spruce and
-enveloped in gloom even in broad day. Many times Baree had gone to the
-edge of this mysterious bit of forest and had peered in curiously, and
-with a growing desire.
-
-On this day of his great battle its lure was over-powering. Little by
-little he entered into it, his eyes shining brightly and his ears alert
-for the slightest sounds that might come out of it. His heart beat
-faster. The gloom enveloped him more. He forgot the windfall and Kazan
-and Gray Wolf. Here before him lay the thrill of adventure. He heard
-stranger sounds, but very soft sounds, as if made by padded feet and
-downy wings, and they filled him with a thrilling expectancy. Under his
-feet there were no grass or weeds or flowers, but a wonderful brown
-carpet of soft evergreen needles. They felt good to his feet, and were
-so velvety that he could not hear his own movement.
-
-He was fully three hundred yards from the windfall when he passed
-Oohoomisew’s stub and into a thick growth of young balsams. And
-there—directly in his path—crouched the monster!
-
-Papayuchisew (Young Owl) was not more than a third as large as Baree.
-But he was a terrifying looking object. To Baree he seemed all head and
-eyes. He could see nobody at all. Kazan had never brought in anything
-like this, and for a full half-minute he remained very quiet, eyeing it
-speculatively. Papayuchisew did not move a feather. But as Baree
-advanced, a cautious step at a time, the bird’s eyes grew bigger and the
-feathers about his head ruffled up as if stirred by a bit of wind. He
-came of a fighting family, this little Papayuchisew—a savage, fearless,
-and killing family—and even Kazan would have taken note of those
-ruffling feathers.
-
-With a space of two feet between them, the pup and the owlet eyed each
-other. In that moment, if Gray Wolf could have seen, she might have said
-to Baree: “Use your legs—and run!” And Oohoomisew, the old owl, might
-have said to Papayuchisew: “You little fool—use your wings and fly!”
-
-They did neither—and the fight began.
-
-Papayuchisew started it, and with a single wild yelp Baree went back in
-a heap, the owlet’s beak fastened like a red-hot vise in the soft flesh
-at the end of his nose. That one yelp of surprise and pain was Baree’s
-first and last cry in the fight. The wolf surged in him; rage and the
-desire to kill possessed him. As Papayuchisew hung on, he made a curious
-hissing sound; and as Baree rolled and gnashed his teeth and fought to
-free himself from that amazing grip on his nose, fierce little snarls
-rose out of his throat.
-
-For fully a minute Baree had no use of his jaws. Then, by accident, he
-wedged Papayuchisew in a crotch of a low ground-shrub, and a bit of his
-nose gave way. He might have run then, but instead of that he was back
-at the owlet like a flash. Flop went Papayuchisew on his back, and Baree
-buried his needle-like teeth in the bird’s breast. It was like trying to
-bite through a pillow, the feathers were so close and thick. Deeper and
-deeper Baree sank his fangs, and just as they were beginning to prick
-the owlet’s skin, Papayuchisew—jabbing a little blindly with a beak that
-snapped sharply every time it closed—got him by the ear.
-
-The pain of that hold was excruciating to Baree, and he made a more
-desperate effort to get his teeth through his enemy’s thick armour of
-feathers. In the struggle they rolled under the low balsams to the edge
-of the ravine through which ran the creek. Over the steep edge they
-plunged, and as they rolled and bumped to the bottom, Baree loosed his
-hold. Papayuchisew hung valiantly on, and when they reached the bottom
-he still had his grip on Baree’s ear.
-
-Baree’s nose was bleeding; his ear felt as if it were being pulled from
-his head; and in this uncomfortable moment a newly awakened instinct
-made Baby Papayuchisew discover his wings as a fighting asset. An owl
-has never really begun to fight until he uses his wings, and with a
-joyous hissing, Papayuchisew began beating his antagonist so fast and so
-viciously that Baree was dazed. He was compelled to close his eyes, and
-he snapped blindly. For the first time since the battle began he felt a
-strong inclination to get away. He tried to tear himself free with his
-forepaws, but Papayuchisew—slow to reason but of firm conviction—hung to
-Baree’s ear like grim fate.
-
-At this critical point, when the understanding of defeat was forming
-itself swiftly in Baree’s mind, chance saved him. His fangs closed on
-one of the owlet’s tender feet. Papayuchisew gave a sudden squeak. The
-ear was free at last—and with a snarl of triumph Baree gave a vicious
-tug at Papayuchisew’s leg.
-
-In the excitement of battle he had not heard the rushing tumult of the
-creek close under them, and over the edge of a rock Papayuchisew and he
-went together, the chill water of the rain-swollen stream muffling a
-final snarl and a final hiss of the two little fighters.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III
-
-
-To Papayuchisew, after his first mouthful of water, the stream was
-almost as safe as the air, for he went sailing down it with the
-lightness of a gull, wondering in his slow-thinking big head why he was
-moving so swiftly and so pleasantly without any effort of his own.
-
-To Baree it was a different matter. He went down almost like a stone. A
-mighty roaring filled his ears; it was dark, suffocating, terrible. In
-the swift current he was twisted over and over. For twenty feet he was
-under water. Then he rose to the surface and desperately began using his
-legs. It was of little use. He had only time to blink once or twice and
-catch a lungful of air when he shot into a current that was running like
-a millrace between the butts of two fallen trees, and for another twenty
-feet the sharpest eyes could not have seen hair or hide of him. He came
-up again at the edge of a shallow riffle over which the water ran like
-the rapids at Niagara in miniature, and for fifty or sixty yards he was
-flung along like a hairy ball. From this he was hurled into a deep, cold
-pool; and then—half dead—he found himself crawling out on a gravelly
-bar.
-
-For a long time Baree lay there in a pool of sunlight without moving.
-His ear hurt him; his nose was raw, and burned as if he had thrust it
-into fire. His legs and body were sore, and as he began to wander along
-the gravel bar, he was the most wretched pup in the world. He was also
-completely turned around. In vain he looked about him for some familiar
-mark—something that might guide him back to his windfall home.
-Everything was strange. He did not know that the water had flung him out
-on the wrong side of the stream, and that to reach the windfall he would
-have to cross it again. He whined, but that was as loud as his voice
-rose. Gray Wolf could have heard his barking, for the windfall was not
-more than two hundred and fifty yards up the stream. But the wolf in
-Baree held him silent, except for his low whining.
-
-Striking the main shore, Baree began going downstream. This was away
-from the windfall, and each step that he took carried him farther and
-farther from home. Every little while he stopped and listened. The
-forest was deeper. It was growing blacker and more mysterious. Its
-silence was frightening. At the end of half an hour Baree would even
-have welcomed Papayuchisew. And he would not have fought him—he would
-have inquired, if possible, the way back home.
-
-Baree was fully three quarters of a mile from the windfall when he came
-to a point where the creek split itself into two channels. He had but
-one choice to follow—the stream that flowed a little south and east.
-This stream did not run swiftly. It was not filled with shimmering
-riffles, and rocks about which the water sang and foamed. It grew black,
-like the forest. It was still and deep. Without knowing it, Baree was
-burying himself deeper and deeper into Tusoo’s old trapping-grounds.
-Since Tusoo had died, they had lain undisturbed except for the wolves,
-for Gray Wolf and Kazan had not hunted on this side of the waterway—and
-the wolves themselves preferred the more open country for the chase.
-
-Suddenly Baree found himself at the edge of a deep, dark pool in which
-the water lay still as oil, and his heart nearly jumped out of his body
-when a great, sleek, shining creature sprang out from almost under his
-nose and landed with a tremendous splash in the centre of it. It was
-Nekik, the otter.
-
-The otter had not heard Baree, and in another moment Napanekik, his
-wife, came sailing out of a patch of gloom, and behind her came three
-little otters, leaving behind them four shimmering wakes in the
-oily-looking water. What happened after that made Baree forget for a few
-minutes that he was lost. Nekik had disappeared under the surface, and
-now he came up directly under his unsuspecting mate with a force that
-lifted her half out of the water. Instantly he was gone again, and
-Napanekik took after him fiercely. To Baree it did not look like play.
-Two of the baby otters had pitched on the third, which seemed to be
-fighting desperately. The chill and ache went out of Baree’s body. His
-blood ran excitedly; he forgot himself, and let out a bark. In a flash
-the otters disappeared. For several minutes the water in the pool
-continued to rock and heave—and that was all. After a little, Baree drew
-himself back into the bushes and went on.
-
-It was about three o’clock in the afternoon, and the sun should still
-have been well up in the sky. But it was growing darker steadily, and
-the strangeness and fear of it all lent greater speed to Baree’s legs.
-He stopped every little while to listen, and at one of these intervals
-he heard a sound that drew from him a responsive and joyous whine. It
-was a distant howl—a wolf’s howl—straight ahead of him. Baree was not
-thinking of wolves but of Kazan, and he ran through the gloom of the
-forest until he was winded. Then he stopped and listened a long time.
-The wolf-howl did not come again. Instead of it there rolled up from the
-west a deep and thunderous rumble. Through the treetops there flashed a
-vivid streak of lightning. A moaning whisper of wind rode in advance of
-the storm; the thunder grew nearer; and a second flash of lightning
-seemed searching Baree out where he stood shivering under a canopy of
-great spruce. This was his second storm. The first had frightened him
-terribly, and he had crawled far back into the shelter of the windfall.
-The best he could find now was a hollow under a big root, and into this
-he slunk, crying softly. It was a babyish cry, a cry for his mother, for
-home, for warmth, for something soft and protecting to nestle up to; and
-as he cried, the storm burst over the forest.
-
-Baree had never before heard so much noise, and he had never seen the
-lightning play in such sheets of fire as when this June deluge fell. It
-seemed at times as though the whole world were aflame, and the earth
-seemed to shake and roll under the crashes of the thunder. He ceased his
-crying and made himself as small as he could under the root, which
-protected him partly from the terrific beat of the rain which came down
-through the treetops in a flood. It was now so black that except when
-the lightning ripped great holes in the gloom he could not see the
-spruce-trunks twenty feet away. Twice that distance from Baree there was
-a huge dead stub that stood out like a ghost each time the fires swept
-the sky, as if defying the flaming hands up there to strike—and strike,
-at last, one of them did! A bluish tongue of snapping flame ran down the
-old stub; and as it touched the earth, there came a tremendous explosion
-above the treetops. The massive stub shivered, and then it broke asunder
-as if cloven by a gigantic axe. It crashed down so close to Baree that
-earth and sticks flew about him, and he let out a wild yelp of terror as
-he tried to crowd himself deeper into the shallow hole under the root.
-
-With the destruction of the old stub the thunder and lightning seemed to
-have vented their malevolence. The thunder passed on into the south and
-east like the rolling of ten thousand heavy cart-wheels over the roofs
-of the forest, and the lightning went with it. The rain fell steadily.
-The hole in which he had taken shelter was soppy. He was drenched; his
-teeth chattered as he waited for the next thing to happen.
-
-It was a long wait. When the rain stopped, and the sky cleared, it was
-night. Through the tops of the trees Baree could have seen the stars if
-he had poked out his head and looked upward. But he clung to his hole.
-Hour after hour passed. Exhausted, half drowned, footsore, and hungry,
-he did not move. At last he fell into a troubled sleep, a sleep in which
-every now and then he cried softly and forlornly for his mother. When he
-ventured out from under the root it was morning, and the sun was
-shining.
-
-At first Baree could hardly stand. His legs were cramped; every bone in
-his body seemed out of joint; his ear was stiff where the blood had
-oozed out of it and hardened, and when he tried to wrinkle his wounded
-nose, he gave a sharp little yap of pain. If such a thing were possible,
-he looked even worse than he felt. His hair had dried in muddy patches;
-he was dirt-stained from end to end; and where yesterday he had been
-plump and shiny, he was now as thin and wretched as misfortune could
-possibly make him. And he was hungry. He had never before known what it
-meant to be really hungry.
-
-When he went on, continuing in the direction he had been following
-yesterday, he slunk along in a disheartened sort of way. His head and
-ears were no longer alert, and his curiosity was gone. He was not only
-stomach-hungry: mother-hunger rose above his physical yearning for
-something to eat. He wanted his mother as he had never wanted her before
-in his life. He wanted to snuggle his shivering little body close up to
-her and feel the warm caressing of her tongue and listen to the
-mothering whine of her voice. And he wanted Kazan, and the old windfall,
-and that big blue spot that was in the sky right over it. While he
-followed again along the edge of the creek, he whimpered for them as a
-child might grieve.
-
-The forest grew more open after a time, and this cheered him up a
-little. Also the warmth of the sun was taking the ache out of his body.
-He grew hungrier and hungrier. He had depended entirely on Kazan and
-Gray Wolf for food. His parents had, in some ways, made a great baby of
-him. Gray Wolf’s blindness accounted for this, for since his birth she
-had not taken up her hunting with Kazan, and it was quite natural that
-Baree should stick close to her, though more than once he had been
-filled with a great yearning to follow his father. Nature was hard at
-work trying to overcome its handicap now. It was struggling to impress
-on Baree that the time had now come when he must seek his own food. The
-fact impinged itself upon him slowly but steadily, and he began to think
-of the three or four shellfish he had caught and devoured on the stony
-creek-bar near the windfall. He also remembered the open clam-shell he
-had found, and the lusciousness of the tender morsel inside it. A new
-excitement began to possess him. He became, all at once, a hunter.
-
-With the thinning out of the forest the creek grew more shallow. It ran
-again over bars of sand and stones, and Baree began to nose along the
-edge of these. For a long time he had no success. The few crayfish that
-he saw were exceedingly lively and elusive, and all the clam-shells were
-shut so tight that even Kazan’s powerful jaws would have had difficulty
-in smashing them. It was almost noon when he caught his first crayfish,
-about as big as a man’s forefinger. He devoured it ravenously. The taste
-of food gave him fresh courage. He caught two more crayfish during the
-afternoon. It was almost dusk when he stirred a young rabbit out from
-under a cover of grass. If he had been a month older, he could have
-caught it. He was still very hungry, for three crayfish—scattered
-through the day—had not done much to fill the emptiness that was growing
-steadily in him.
-
-With the approach of night Baree’s fears and great loneliness returned.
-Before the day had quite gone he found himself a shelter under a big
-rock, where there was a warm, soft bed of sand. Since his fight with
-Papayuchisew, he had travelled a long distance, and the rock under which
-he made his bed this night was at least eight or nine miles from the
-windfall. It was in the open of the creek-bottom, with the dark forest
-of spruce and cedars close on either side; and when the moon rose, and
-the stars filled the sky, Baree could look out and see the water of the
-stream shimmering in a glow almost as bright as day. Directly in front
-of him, running to the water’s edge, was a broad carpet of white sand.
-Across this sand, half an hour later, came a huge black bear.
-
-Until Baree had seen the otters at play in the creek, his conceptions of
-the forests had not gone beyond his own kind, and such creatures as owls
-and rabbits and small feathered things. The otters had not frightened
-him, because he still measured things by size, and Nekik was not half as
-big as Kazan. But the bear was a monster beside which Kazan would have
-stood a mere pigmy. He was big. If nature was taking this way of
-introducing Baree to the fact that there were more important creatures
-in the forests than dogs and wolves and owls and crayfish, she was
-driving the point home with a little more than necessary emphasis. For
-Wakayoo, the bear, weighed six hundred pounds if he weighed an ounce. He
-was fat and sleek from a month’s feasting on fish. His shiny coat was
-like black velvet in the moonlight, and he walked with a curious rolling
-motion with his head hung low. The horror grew when he stopped broadside
-in the carpet of sand not more than ten feet from the rock under which
-Baree was shivering as if he had the ague.
-
-It was quite evident that Wakayoo had caught scent of him in the air.
-Baree could hear him sniff—could hear his breathing—caught the starlight
-flashing in his reddish-brown eyes as they swung suspiciously toward the
-big boulder. If Baree could have known then that _he_—his insignificant
-little self—was making that monster actually nervous and uneasy, he
-would have given a yelp of joy. For Wakayoo, in spite of his size, was
-somewhat of a coward when it came to wolves. And Baree carried the
-wolf-scent. It grew stronger in Wakayoo’s nose; and just then, as if to
-increase whatever nervousness was growing in him, there came from out of
-the forest behind him a long and wailing howl.
-
-With an audible grunt, Wakayoo moved on. Wolves were pests, he argued.
-They wouldn’t stand up and fight. They’d snap and yap at one’s heels for
-hours at a time, and were always out of the way quicker than a wink when
-one turned on them. What was the use of hanging around where there were
-wolves, on a beautiful night like this? He lumbered on decisively. Baree
-could hear him splashing heavily through the water of the creek. Not
-until then did the wolf-dog draw a full breath. It was almost a gasp.
-
-But the excitement was not over for the night. Baree had chosen his bed
-at a place where the animals came down to drink, and where they crossed
-from one of the creek forests to the other. Not long after the bear had
-disappeared he heard a heavy crunching in the sand, and hoofs rattling
-against stones, and a bull moose with a huge sweep of antlers passed
-through the open space in the moonlight. Baree stared with popping eyes,
-for if Wakayoo had weighed six hundred pounds, this gigantic creature
-whose legs were so long that it seemed to be walking on stilts weighed
-at least twice as much. A cow moose followed, and then a calf. The calf
-seemed all legs. It was too much for Baree, and he shoved himself
-farther and farther back under the rock until he lay wedged in like a
-sardine in a box. And there he lay until morning.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV
-
-
-When Baree ventured forth from under his rock at the beginning of the
-next day, he was a much older puppy than when he met Papayuchisew, the
-young owl, in his path near the old windfall. If experience can be made
-to take the place of age, he had aged a great deal in the last
-forty-eight hours. In fact, he had passed almost out of puppyhood. He
-awoke with a new and much broader conception of the world. It was a big
-place. It was filled with many things, of which Kazan and Gray Wolf were
-not the most important. The monsters he had seen on the moonlit plot of
-sand had roused in him a new kind of caution, and the one greatest
-instinct of beasts—the primal understanding that it is the strong that
-prey upon the weak—was wakening swiftly in him. As yet he quite
-naturally measured brute force and the menace of things by size alone.
-Thus the bear was more terrible than Kazan, and the moose was more
-terrible than the bear.
-
-It was quite fortunate for Baree that this instinct did not go to the
-limit in the beginning and make him understand that his own breed—the
-wolf—was most feared of all the creatures, claw, hoof, and wing, of the
-forests. Otherwise, like the small boy who thinks he can swim before he
-has mastered a stroke, he might somewhere have jumped in beyond his
-depth and had his head chewed off.
-
-Very much alert, with the hair standing up along his spine, and a little
-growl in his throat, Baree smelled of the big footprints made by the
-bear and the moose. It was the bear-scent that made him growl. He
-followed the tracks to the edge of the creek. After that he resumed his
-wandering, and also his hunt for food.
-
-For two hours he did not find a crayfish. Then he came out of the green
-timber into the edge of a burned-over country. Here everything was
-black. The stumps of the trees stood up like huge charred canes. It was
-a comparatively fresh “burn” of last autumn, and the ash was still soft
-under Baree’s feet. Straight through this black region ran the creek,
-and over it hung a blue sky in which the sun was shining. It was quite
-inviting to Baree. The fox, the wolf, the moose, and the caribou would
-have turned back from the edge of this dead country. In another year it
-would be good hunting-ground, but now it was lifeless. Even the owls
-would have found nothing to eat out there.
-
-It was the blue sky and the sun and the softness of the earth under his
-feet that lured Baree. It was pleasant to travel in after his painful
-experiences in the forest. He continued to follow the stream, though
-there was now little possibility of his finding anything to eat. The
-water had become sluggish and dark; the channel was choked with charred
-débris that had fallen into it when the forest had burned, and its
-shores were soft and muddy. After a time, when Baree stopped and looked
-about him, he could no longer see the green timber he had left. He was
-alone in that desolate wilderness of charred tree-corpses. It was as
-still as death, too. Not the chirp of a bird broke the silence. In the
-soft ash he could not hear the fall of his own feet. But he was not
-frightened. There was the assurance of safety here.
-
-If he could only find something to eat! That was the master-thought that
-possessed Baree. Instinct had not yet impressed upon him that this which
-he saw all about him was starvation. He went on, seeking hopefully for
-food. But at last, as the hours passed, hope began to die out of him.
-The sun sank westward. The sky grew less blue; a low wind began to ride
-over the tops of the stubs, and now and then one of them fell with a
-startling crash.
-
-Baree could go no farther. An hour before dusk he lay down in the open,
-weak and starved. The sun disappeared behind the forest. The moon rolled
-up from the east. The sky glittered with stars—and all through the night
-Baree lay as if dead. When morning came, he dragged himself to the
-stream for a drink. With his last strength he went on. It was the wolf
-urging him—compelling him to struggle to the last for his life. The dog
-in him wanted to lie down and die. But the wolf-spark in him burned
-stronger. In the end it won. Half a mile farther on he came again to the
-green timber.
-
-In the forests as well as in the great cities fate plays its changing
-and whimsical hand. If Baree had dragged himself into the timber half an
-hour later he would have died. He was too far gone now to hunt for
-crayfish or kill the weakest bird. But he came just as Sekoosew, the
-ermine—the most bloodthirsty little pirate of all the wild—was making a
-kill.
-
-That was fully a hundred yards from where Baree lay stretched out under
-a spruce, almost ready to give up the ghost. Sekoosew was a mighty
-hunter of his kind. His body was about seven inches long, with a tiny
-black-tipped tail appended to it, and he weighed perhaps five ounces. A
-baby’s fingers could have encircled him anywhere between his four legs,
-and his little sharp-pointed head with its beady red eyes could slip
-easily through a hole an inch in diameter. For several centuries
-Sekoosew had helped to make history. It was he—when his pelt was worth a
-hundred dollars in king’s gold—that lured the first shipload of
-gentlemen adventurers over the sea, with Prince Rupert at their head; it
-was little Sekoosew who was responsible for the forming of the great
-Hudson’s Bay Company and the discovery of half a continent; for almost
-three centuries he had fought his fight for existence with the trapper.
-And now, though he was no longer worth his weight in yellow gold, he was
-the cleverest, the fiercest, and the most merciless of all the creatures
-that made up his world.
-
-As Baree lay under his tree, Sekoosew was creeping on his prey. His game
-was a big fat spruce-hen standing under a thicket of black currant
-bushes. The ear of no living thing could have heard Sekoosew’s movement.
-He was like a shadow—a gray dot here, a flash there, now hidden behind a
-stick no larger than a man’s wrist, appearing for a moment, the next
-instant gone as completely as if he had not existed. Thus he approached
-from fifty feet to within three feet of the spruce-hen. That was his
-favourite striking distance. Unerringly he launched himself at the
-drowsy partridge’s throat, and his needle-like teeth sank through
-feathers into flesh.
-
-Sekoosew was prepared for what happened then. It always happened when he
-attacked Napanao, the wood-partridge. Her wings were powerful, and her
-first instinct when he struck was always that of flight. She rose
-straight up now with a great thunder of wings. Sekoosew hung tight, his
-teeth buried deep in her throat, and his tiny, sharp claws clinging to
-her like hands. Through the air he whizzed with her, biting deeper and
-deeper, until a hundred yards from where that terrible death-thing had
-fastened to her throat, Napanao crashed again to earth.
-
-Where she fell was not ten feet from Baree. For a few moments he looked
-at the struggling mass of feathers in a daze, not quite comprehending
-that at last food was almost within his reach. Napanao was dying, but
-she still struggled convulsively with her wings. Baree rose stealthily,
-and after a moment in which he gathered all his remaining strength, he
-made a rush for her. His teeth sank into her breast—and not until then
-did he see Sekoosew. The ermine had raised his head from the death-grip
-at the partridge’s throat, and his savage little red eyes glared for a
-single instant into Baree’s. Here was something too big to kill, and
-with an angry squeak the ermine was gone. Napanao’s wings relaxed, and
-the throb went out of her body. She was dead. Baree hung on until he was
-sure. Then he began his feast.
-
-With murder in his heart, Sekoosew hovered near, whisking here and there
-but never coming nearer than half a dozen feet from Baree. His eyes were
-redder than ever. Now and then he emitted a sharp little squeak of rage.
-Never had he been so angry in all his life! To have a fat partridge
-stolen from him like this was an imposition he had never suffered
-before. He wanted to dart in and fasten his teeth in Baree’s jugular.
-But he was too good a general to make the attempt, too good a Napoleon
-to jump deliberately to his Waterloo. An owl he would have fought. He
-might even have given battle to his big brother—and his deadliest
-enemy—the mink. But in Baree he recognized the wolf-breed, and he vented
-his spite at a distance. After a time his good sense returned, and he
-went off on another hunt.
-
-Baree ate a third of the partridge, and the remaining two thirds he
-cached very carefully at the foot of the big spruce. Then he hurried
-down to the creek for a drink. The world looked very different to him
-now. After all, one’s capacity for happiness depends largely on how
-deeply one has suffered. One’s hard luck and misfortune form the
-measuring-stick for future good luck and fortune. So it was with Baree.
-Forty-eight hours ago a full stomach would not have made him a tenth
-part as happy as he was now. Then his greatest longing was for his
-mother. Since then a still greater yearning had come into his life—for
-food. In a way it was fortunate for him that he had almost died of
-exhaustion and starvation, for his experience had helped to make a man
-of him—or a wolf-dog, just as you are of a mind to put it. He would miss
-his mother for a long time. But he would never miss her again as he had
-missed her yesterday, and the day before.
-
-That afternoon Baree took a long nap close to his cache. Then he
-uncovered the partridge and ate his supper. When his fourth night alone
-came, he did not hide himself as he had done on the three preceding
-nights. He was strangely and curiously alert. Under the moon and the
-stars he prowled in the edge of the forest and out on the burn. He
-listened with a new kind of thrill to the far-away cry of a wolf-pack on
-the hunt. He listened to the ghostly _whoo-whoo-whoo_ of the owls
-without shivering. Sounds and silences were beginning to hold a new and
-significant note for him.
-
-For another day and night Baree remained in the vicinity of his cache.
-When the last bone was picked, he moved on. He now entered a country
-where subsistence was no longer a perilous problem for him. It was a
-lynx country, and where there are lynx, there are also a great many
-rabbits. When the rabbits thin out, the lynx emigrate to better
-hunting-grounds. As the snowshoe rabbit breeds all the summer through,
-Baree found himself in a land of plenty. It was not difficult for him to
-catch and kill the young rabbits. For a week he prospered and grew
-bigger and stronger each day. But all the time, stirred by that seeking,
-Wanderlust spirit—still hoping to find the old home and his mother—he
-travelled into the north and east.
-
-And this was straight into the trapping country of Pierrot, the
-halfbreed.
-
-Pierrot, until two years ago, had believed himself to be one of the most
-fortunate men in the big wilderness. That was before _La Mort Rouge_—the
-Red Death—came. He was half French, and he had married a Cree chief’s
-daughter, and in their log cabin on the Gray Loon they had lived for
-many years in great prosperity and happiness. Pierrot was proud of three
-things in this wild world of his: he was immensely proud of Wyola, his
-royal-blooded wife; he was proud of his daughter; and he was proud of
-his reputation as a hunter. Until the Red Death came, life was quite
-complete for him. It was then—two years ago—that the smallpox killed his
-princess-wife. He still lived in the little cabin on the Gray Loon, but
-he was a different Pierrot. The heart was sick in him. It would have
-died, had it not been for Nepeese, his daughter. His wife had named her
-Nepeese, which means the Willow. Nepeese had grown up like the willow,
-slender as a reed, with all her mother’s wild beauty, and with a little
-of the French thrown in. She was sixteen, with great, dark, wonderful
-eyes, and hair so beautiful that an agent from Montreal passing that way
-had once tried to buy it. It fell in two shining braids, each as big as
-a man’s wrist, almost to her knees. “_Non, M’sieu_,” Pierrot had said, a
-cold glitter in his eyes as he saw what was in the agent’s face. “It is
-not for barter.”
-
-Two days after Baree had entered his trapping-ground, Pierrot came in
-from the forests with a troubled look in his face.
-
-“Something is killing off the young beavers,” he explained to Nepeese,
-speaking to her in French. “It is a lynx or a wolf. To-morrow——” He
-shrugged his thin shoulders, and smiled at her.
-
-“We will go on the hunt,” laughed Nepeese happily, in her soft Cree.
-
-When Pierrot smiled at her like that, and began with “To-morrow,” it
-always meant that she might go with him on the adventure he was
-contemplating.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Still another day later, at the end of the afternoon, Baree crossed the
-Gray Loon on a bridge of driftwood that had wedged between two trees.
-This was to the north. Just beyond the driftwood bridge there was a
-small open, and on the edge of this Baree paused to enjoy the last of
-the setting sun. As he stood motionless and listening, his tail drooping
-low, his ears alert, his sharp-pointed nose sniffing the new country to
-the north, there was not a pair of eyes in the forest that would not
-have taken him for a young wolf.
-
-From behind a clump of young balsams, a hundred yards away, Pierrot and
-Nepeese had watched him come over the driftwood bridge. Now was the
-time, and Pierrot levelled his rifle. It was not until then that Nepeese
-touched his arm softly. Her breath came a little excitedly as she
-whispered:
-
-“Nootawe, let me shoot. I can kill him!”
-
-With a low chuckle Pierrot gave the gun to her. He counted the whelp as
-already dead. For Nepeese, at that distance, could send a bullet into an
-inch square nine times out of ten. And Nepeese, aiming carefully at
-Baree, pressed steadily with her brown forefinger upon the trigger.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V
-
-
-As the Willow pulled the trigger of her rifle, Baree sprang into the
-air. He felt the force of the bullet before he heard the report of the
-gun. It lifted him off his feet, and then sent him rolling over and over
-as if he had been struck a hideous blow with a club. For a flash he did
-not feel pain. Then it ran through him like a knife of fire, and with
-that pain the dog in him rose above the wolf, and he let out a wild
-outcry of puppyish yapping as he rolled and twisted on the ground.
-
-Pierrot and Nepeese had stepped from behind the balsams, the Willow’s
-beautiful eyes shining with pride at the accuracy of her shot. Instantly
-she caught her breath. Her brown fingers clutched at the barrel of her
-rifle. The chuckle of satisfaction died on Pierrot’s lips as Baree’s
-cries of pain filled the forest.
-
-“_Uchi Moosis!_” gasped Nepeese, in her Cree.
-
-Pierrot caught the rifle from her.
-
-“_Diable!_ A dog—a puppy!” he cried.
-
-He started on a run for Baree. But in their amazement they had lost a
-few seconds and Baree’s dazed senses were returning. He saw them clearly
-as they came across the open—a new kind of monster of the forests! With
-a final wail he darted back into the deep shadows of the trees. It was
-almost sunset, and he ran for the thick gloom of the heavy spruce near
-the creek. He had shivered at sight of the bear and the moose, but for
-the first time he now sensed the real meaning of danger. And it was
-close after him. He could hear the crashing of the two-legged beasts in
-pursuit; strange cries were almost at his heels—and then suddenly he
-plunged without warning into a hole.
-
-It was a shock to have the earth go out from under his feet like that,
-but Baree did not yelp. The wolf was dominant in him again. It urged him
-to remain where he was, making no move, no sound—scarcely breathing. The
-voices were over him; the strange feet almost stumbled in the hole where
-he lay. Looking out of his dark hiding-place, he could see one of his
-enemies. It was Nepeese, the Willow. She was standing so that a last
-glow of the day fell upon her face. Baree did not take his eyes from
-her. Above his pain there rose in him a strange and thrilling
-fascination. The girl put her two hands to her mouth and in a voice that
-was soft and plaintive and amazingly comforting to his terrified little
-heart, cried:
-
-“_Uchimoo—Uchimoo—Uchimoo!_”
-
-And then he heard another voice; and this voice, too, was far less
-terrible than many sounds he had listened to in the forests.
-
-“We cannot find him, Nepeese,” the voice was saying. “He has crawled off
-to die. It is too bad. Come.”
-
-Where Baree had stood in the edge of the open Pierrot paused and pointed
-to a birch sapling that had been cut clean off by the Willow’s bullet.
-Nepeese understood. The sapling, no larger than her thumb, had turned
-her shot a trifle and had saved Baree from instant death.
-
-She turned again, and called:
-
-“_Uchimoo—Uchimoo—Uchimoo!_”
-
-Her eyes were no longer filled with the thrill of slaughter.
-
-“He would not understand that,” said Pierrot, leading the way across the
-open. “He is wild—born of the wolves. Perhaps he was of Koomo’s
-lead-bitch, who ran away to hunt with the packs last winter.”
-
-“And he will die——”
-
-“_Ayetun_—yes, he will die.”
-
-But Baree had no idea of dying. He was too tough a youngster to be
-shocked to death by a bullet passing through the soft flesh of his
-fore-leg. That was what had happened. His leg was torn to the bone, but
-the bone itself was untouched. He waited until the moon had risen before
-he crawled out of his hole.
-
-His leg had grown stiff then; it had stopped bleeding, but his whole
-body was racked by a terrible pain. A dozen Papayuchisews, all holding
-tight to his ears and nose, could not have hurt him more. Every time he
-moved, a sharp twinge shot through him; and yet he persisted in moving.
-Instinctively he felt that by travelling away from the hole he would get
-away from danger. This was the best thing that could have happened to
-him, for a little later a porcupine came wandering along, chattering to
-itself in its foolish, good-humoured way, and fell with a fat thud into
-the hole. Had Baree remained, he would have been so full of quills that
-he must surely have died.
-
-[Illustration: Nepeese, the trapper’s daughter, known to the forest men
-as “The Willow,” who became a big factor in the life of the pup Baree.]
-
-In another way the exercise of travel was good for Baree. It gave his
-wound no opportunity to “set,” as Pierrot would have said, for in
-reality his hurt was more painful than serious. For the first hundred
-yards he hobbled along on three legs, and after that he found that he
-could use his fourth by humouring it a great deal. He followed the creek
-for a half-mile. Whenever a bit of brush touched his wound, he would
-snap at it viciously, and instead of whimpering when he felt one of the
-sharp twinges shooting through him, an angry little growl gathered in
-his throat, and his teeth clicked. Now that he was out of the hole, the
-effect of the Willow’s shot was stirring every drop of wolf-blood in his
-body. In him there was a growing animosity—a feeling of rage not against
-any one thing in particular, but against all things. It was not the
-feeling with which he had fought Papayuchisew, the young owl. On this
-night the dog in him had disappeared. An accumulation of misfortunes had
-descended upon him, and out of these misfortunes—and his present
-hurt—the wolf had risen savage and vengeful.
-
-This was the first night Baree had travelled. He was, for the time,
-unafraid of anything that might creep up on him out of the darkness. The
-blackest shadows had lost their thrill. It was the first big fight
-between the two natures that were born in him—the wolf and the dog—and
-the dog was vanquished. Now and then he stopped to lick his wound, and
-as he licked it he growled, as though for the hurt itself he held a
-personal antagonism. If Pierrot could have seen and heard, he would have
-understood very quickly, and he would have said: “Let him die. The club
-will never take that devil out of him.”
-
-In this humour Baree came, an hour later, out of the heavy timber of the
-creek-bottom into the more open spaces of a small plain that ran along
-the foot of a ridge. It was in this plain that Oohoomisew hunted.
-Oohoomisew was a huge snow-owl. He was the patriarch among all the owls
-of Pierrot’s trapping domain. He was so old that he was almost blind,
-and therefore he never hunted as other owls hunted. He did not hide
-himself in the black cover of spruce- and balsam-tops, or float softly
-through the night, ready in an instant to swoop down upon his prey. His
-eyesight was so poor that from a spruce-top he could not have seen a
-rabbit at all, and he might have mistaken a fox for a mouse.
-
-So old Oohoomisew, learning wisdom from experience, hunted from ambush.
-He would squat on the ground, and for hours at a time he would remain
-there without making a sound and scarcely moving a feather, waiting with
-the patience of Job for something to eat to come his way. Now and then
-he had made mistakes. Twice he had mistaken a lynx for a rabbit, and in
-the second attack he had lost a foot, so that when he slumbered aloft
-during the day he hung to his perch with one claw. Crippled, nearly
-blind, and so old that he had long ago lost the tufts of feathers over
-his ears, he was still a giant in strength, and when he was angry, one
-could hear the snap of his beak twenty yards away.
-
-For three nights he had been unlucky, and to-night he had been
-particularly unfortunate. Two rabbits had come his way, and he had
-lunged at each of them from his cover. The first he had missed entirely;
-the second had left with him a mouthful of fur—and that was all. He was
-ravenously hungry, and he was gritting his bill in his bad temper when
-he heard Baree approaching.
-
-Even if Baree could have seen under the dark bush ahead, and had
-discovered Oohoomisew ready to dart from his ambush, it is not likely
-that he would have gone very far aside. His own fighting blood was up.
-He, too, was ready for war.
-
-Very indistinctly Oohoomisew saw him at last, coming across the little
-open which he was watching. He squatted down. His feathers ruffled up
-until he was like a ball. His almost sightless eyes glowed like two
-bluish pools of fire. Ten feet away, Baree stopped for a moment and
-licked his wound. Oohoomisew waited cautiously. Again Baree advanced,
-passing within six feet of the bush. With a swift hop and a sudden
-thunder of his powerful wings the great owl was upon him.
-
-This time Baree let out no cry of pain or of fright. The wolf is
-_kipichi-mao_, as the Indians say. No hunter ever heard a trapped wolf
-whine for mercy at the sting of a bullet or the beat of a club. He dies
-with his fangs bared. To-night it was a wolf-whelp that Oohoomisew was
-attacking, and not a dog-pup. The owl’s first rush keeled Baree over,
-and for a moment he was smothered under the huge, outspread wings, while
-Oohoomisew—pinioning him down—hopped for a claw-hold with his one good
-foot, and struck fiercely with his beak.
-
-One blow of that beak anywhere about the head would have settled for a
-rabbit, but at the first thrust Oohoomisew discovered that it was not a
-rabbit he was holding under his wings. A blood-curdling snarl answered
-the blow, and Oohoomisew remembered the lynx, his lost foot, and his
-narrow escape with his life. The old pirate might have beaten a retreat,
-but Baree was no longer the puppyish Baree of that hour in which he had
-fought young Papayuchisew. Experience and hardship had aged and
-strengthened him; his jaws had passed quickly from the bone-licking to
-the bone-cracking age—and before Oohoomisew could get away, if he was
-thinking of flight at all, Baree’s fangs closed with a vicious snap on
-his one good leg.
-
-In the stillness of night there rose a still greater thunder of wings,
-and for a few moments Baree closed his eyes to keep from being blinded
-by Oohoomisew’s furious blows. But he hung on grimly, and as his teeth
-met through the flesh of the old night-pirate’s leg, his angry snarl
-carried defiance to Oohoomisew’s ears. Rare good fortune had given him
-that grip on the leg, and Baree knew that triumph or defeat depended on
-his ability to hold it. The old owl had no other claw to sink into him,
-and it was impossible—caught as he was—for him to tear at Baree with his
-beak. So he continued to beat that thunder of blows with his four-foot
-wings.
-
-The wings made a great tumult about Baree, but they did not hurt him. He
-buried his fangs deeper. His snarls rose more fiercely as he got the
-taste of Oohoomisew’s blood, and through him there surged more hotly the
-desire to kill this monster of the night, as though in the death of this
-creature he had the opportunity of avenging himself for all the hurts
-and hardships that had befallen him since he lost his mother.
-
-Oohoomisew had never felt a great fear until now. The lynx had snapped
-at him but once—and was gone, leaving him crippled. But the lynx had not
-snarled in that wolfish way, and it had not hung on. A thousand and one
-nights Oohoomisew had listened to the wolf-howl. Instinct had told him
-what it meant. He had seen the packs pass swiftly through the night, and
-always when they passed he had kept in the deepest shadows. To him, as
-for all other wild things, the wolf-howl stood for death. But until now,
-with Baree’s fangs buried in his leg, he had never sensed fully the
-wolf-fear. It had taken it years to enter into his slow, stupid head—but
-now that it was there, it possessed him as no other thing had ever
-possessed him in all his life.
-
-Suddenly Oohoomisew ceased his beating and launched himself upward. Like
-huge fans his powerful wings churned the air, and Baree felt himself
-lifted suddenly from the earth. Still he held on—and in a moment both
-bird and beast fell back with a thud.
-
-Oohoomisew tried again. This time he was more successful, and he rose
-fully six feet into the air with Baree. They fell again. A third time
-the old outlaw fought to wing himself free of Baree’s grip; and then,
-exhausted, he lay with his giant wings outspread, hissing and cracking
-his bill.
-
-Under those wings Baree’s mind worked with the swift instincts of the
-killer. Suddenly he changed his hold, burying his fangs into the under
-part of Oohoomisew’s body. They sank into three inches of feathers.
-Swift as Baree had been, Oohoomisew was equally swift to take advantage
-of his opportunity. In an instant he had swooped upward. There was a
-jerk, a rending of feathers from flesh—and Baree was alone on the field
-of battle.
-
-Baree had not killed, but he had conquered. His first great day—or
-night—had come. The world was filled with a new promise for him, as vast
-as the night itself. And after a moment he sat back on his haunches,
-sniffing the air for his beaten enemy; and then, as if defying the
-feathered monster to come back and fight to the end, he pointed his
-sharp little muzzle up to the stars and sent forth his first babyish
-wolf-howl into the night.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI
-
-
-Baree’s fight with Oohoomisew was good medicine for him. It not only
-gave him great confidence in himself, but it also cleared the fever of
-ugliness from his blood. He no longer snapped and snarled at things as
-he went on through the night.
-
-It was a wonderful night. The moon was straight overhead, and the sky
-was filled with stars, so that in the open spaces the light was almost
-like that of day, except that it was softer and more beautiful. It was
-very still. There was no wind in the treetops, and it seemed to Baree
-that the howl he had given must have echoed to the end of the world.
-
-Now and then Baree heard a sound—and always he stopped, attentive and
-listening. Far away he heard the long, soft mooing of a cow moose; he
-heard a great splashing in the water of a small lake that he came to,
-and once there came to him the sharp cracking of horn against horn—two
-bucks settling a little difference of opinion a quarter of a mile away.
-But it was always the wolf-howl that made him sit and listen longest,
-his heart beating with a strange impulse which he did not as yet
-understand. It was the call of his breed, growing in him slowly but
-insistently.
-
-He was still a wanderer—_pupamootao_, the Indians call it. It is this
-“wander spirit” that inspires for a time nearly every creature of the
-wild as soon as it is able to care for itself—nature’s scheme, perhaps,
-for doing away with too close family relations and possibly dangerous
-interbreeding. Baree, like the young wolf seeking new hunting-grounds,
-or the young fox discovering a new world, had no reason or method in his
-wandering. He was simply “travelling”—going on. He wanted something
-which he could not find. The wolf-note brought it to him.
-
-The stars and the moon filled Baree with a yearning for this something.
-The distant sounds impinged upon him his great aloneness. And instinct
-told him that only by questing could he find. It was not so much Kazan
-and Gray Wolf that he missed now—not so much motherhood and home as it
-was companionship. Now that he had fought the wolfish rage out of him in
-his battle with Oohoomisew, the dog part of him had come into its own
-again—the lovable half of him, the part that wanted to snuggle up near
-something that was alive and friendly, small odds whether it wore
-feathers or fur, was clawed or hoofed.
-
-He was sore from the Willow’s bullet, and he was sore from battle, and
-toward dawn he lay down under a shelter of alders at the edge of a
-second small lake and rested until midday. Then he began questing in the
-reeds and close to the pond-lilies for food. He found a dead jackfish,
-partly eaten by a mink, and finished it.
-
-His wound was much less painful this afternoon, and by nightfall he
-scarcely noticed it at all. Since his almost tragic end at the hands of
-Nepeese, he had been travelling in a general northeasterly direction,
-following instinctively the run of the water-ways; but his progress had
-been slow, and when darkness came again he was not more than eight or
-ten miles from the hole into which he had fallen after the Willow had
-shot him.
-
-Baree did not travel far this night. The fact that his wound had come
-with dusk, and his fight with Oohoomisew still later, filled him with
-caution. Experience had taught him that the dark shadows and the black
-pits in the forest were possible ambuscades of danger. He was no longer
-afraid, as he had once been, but he had had fighting enough for a time,
-and so he accepted circumspection as the better part of valour and held
-himself aloof from the perils of darkness. It was a strange instinct
-that made him seek his bed on the top of a huge rock up which he had
-some difficulty in climbing. Perhaps it was a harkening back to the days
-of long ago when Gray Wolf, in her first motherhood, sought refuge at
-the summit of the Sun Rock which towered high above the forest-world of
-which she and Kazan were a part, and where later she was blinded in her
-battle with the lynx.
-
-Baree’s rock, instead of rising for a hundred feet or more straight up,
-was possibly as high as a man’s head. It was in the edge of the
-creek-bottom, with the spruce forest close at his back. For many hours
-he did not sleep, but lay keenly alert, his ears tuned to catch every
-sound that came out of the dark world about him. There was more than
-curiosity in his alertness to-night. His education had broadened
-immensely in one way: he had learned that he was a very small part of
-all this wonderful earth that lay under the stars and the moon, and he
-was keenly alive with the desire to become better acquainted with it
-without any more fighting or hurt. To-night he knew what it meant when
-he saw now and then gray shadows float silently out of the forest into
-the moonlight—the owls, monsters of the breed with which he had fought.
-He heard the crackling of hoofed feet and the smashing of heavy bodies
-in the underbrush. He heard again the mooing of the moose. Voices came
-to him that he had not heard before—the sharp _yap-yap-yap_ of a fox,
-the unearthly, laughing cry of a great Northern loon on a lake half a
-mile away, the scream of a lynx that came floating through miles of
-forest, the low, soft croaks of the nighthawks between himself and the
-stars. He heard strange whisperings in the treetops—whisperings of the
-winds; and once, in the heart of a dead stillness, a buck whistled
-shrilly close behind his rock—and at the wolf-scent in the air shot away
-in a terror-stricken gray streak.
-
-All these sounds held their new meaning for Baree. Swiftly he was coming
-into his knowledge of the wilderness. His eyes gleamed; his blood
-thrilled. For many minutes at a time he scarcely moved. But of all the
-sounds that came to him, the wolf-cry thrilled him most. Again and again
-he listened to it. At times it was far away, so far that it was like a
-whisper, dying away almost before it reached him; and then again it
-would come to him full-throated, hot with the breath of the chase,
-calling him to the red thrill of the hunt, to the wild orgy of torn
-flesh and running blood—calling, calling, calling. That was it, calling
-him to his own kin, to the bone of his bone and the flesh of his
-flesh—to the wild, fierce hunting-packs of his mother’s tribe! It was
-Gray Wolf’s voice seeking for him in the night—Gray Wolf’s blood
-inviting him to the Brotherhood of the Pack.
-
-Baree trembled as he listened. In his throat he whined softly. He edged
-to the sheer face of the rock. He wanted to go; nature was urging him to
-go. But the call of the wild was struggling against odds; for in him was
-the dog, with its generations of subdued and sleeping instincts—and all
-that night the dog in him kept Baree to the top of his rock.
-
-Next morning Baree found many crawfish along the creek, and he feasted
-on their succulent flesh until he felt that he would never be hungry
-again. Nothing had tasted quite so good since he had eaten the partridge
-of which he had robbed Sekoosew the ermine.
-
-In the middle of the afternoon Baree came into a part of the forest that
-was very quiet and very peaceful. The creek had deepened. In places its
-banks swept out until they formed small ponds. Twice he made
-considerable detours to get around these ponds. He travelled very
-quietly, listening and watching. Not since the ill-fated day he had left
-the old windfall had he felt quite so much at home as now. It seemed to
-him that at last he was treading country which he knew, and where he
-would find friends. Perhaps this was another miracle-mystery of
-instinct—of nature. For he was in old Beaver-tooth’s domain. It was here
-that his father and mother had hunted in the days before he was born. It
-was not far from here that Kazan and Beaver-tooth had fought that mighty
-duel under water, from which Kazan had escaped with his life without
-another breath to lose.
-
-Baree would never know these things. He would never know that he was
-travelling over old trails. But something deep in him gripped at him
-strangely. He sniffed the air, as if in it he found the scent of
-familiar things. It was only a faint breath—an indefinable promise that
-brought him to the point of a mysterious anticipation.
-
-The forest grew deeper. It was wonderful. There was no undergrowth, and
-travelling under the trees was like being in a vast, mystery-filled
-cavern through the roof of which the light of day broke softly,
-brightened here and there by golden splashes of the sun. For a mile
-Baree made his way quietly through this forest. He saw nothing but a few
-winged flittings of birds; there was almost no sound. Then he came to a
-still larger pond. Around this pond there was a thick growth of alders
-and willows; the larger trees had thinned out. He saw the glimmer of
-afternoon sunlight on the water—and then, all at once, he heard life.
-
-There had been few changes in Beaver-tooth’s colony since the days of
-his feud with Kazan and the otters. Old Beaver-tooth was still older. He
-was fatter. He slept a great deal, and perhaps he was less cautious. He
-was dozing on the great mud-and-brushwood dam of which he had been
-engineer-in-chief, when Baree came out softly on a high bank thirty or
-forty feet away. So noiseless had Baree been that none of the beavers
-had seen or heard him. He squatted himself flat on his belly, hidden
-behind a tuft of grass, and with eager interest watched every movement.
-Beaver-tooth was rousing himself. He stood on his short legs for a
-moment; then he tilted himself up on his broad, flat tail like a soldier
-at attention, and with a sudden whistle dived into the pond with a great
-splash.
-
-In another moment it seemed to Baree that the pond was alive with
-beavers. Heads and bodies appeared and disappeared, rushing this way and
-that through the water in a manner that amazed and puzzled him. It was
-the colony’s evening frolic. Tails hit the water like flat boards. Odd
-whistlings rose above the splashing—and then as suddenly as it had
-begun, the play came to an end. There were probably twenty beavers, not
-counting the young, and as if guided by a common signal—something which
-Baree had not heard—they became so quiet that hardly a sound could be
-heard in the pond. A few of them sank under the water and disappeared
-entirely, but most of them Baree could watch as they drew themselves out
-on shore.
-
-The beavers lost no time in getting at their labour, and Baree watched
-and listened without so much as rustling a blade of the grass in which
-he was concealed. He was trying to understand. He was striving to place
-these curious and comfortable-looking creatures in his knowledge of
-things. They did not alarm him; he felt no uneasiness at their number or
-size. His stillness was not the quiet of discretion, but rather of a
-strange and growing desire to get better acquainted with this curious
-four-legged brotherhood of the pond. Already they had begun to make the
-big forest less lonely for him. And then, close under him—not more than
-ten feet from where he lay—he saw something that almost gave voice to
-the puppyish longing for companionship that was in him.
-
-Down there, on a clean strip of the shore that rose out of the soft mud
-of the pond, waddled fat little Umisk and three of his playmates. Umisk
-was just about Baree’s age, perhaps a week or two younger. But he was
-fully as heavy, and almost as wide as he was long. Nature can produce no
-four-footed creature that is more lovable than a baby beaver, unless it
-is a baby bear; and Umisk would have taken first prize at any beaver
-baby-show in the world. His three companions were a bit smaller. They
-came waddling from behind a low willow, making queer little chuckling
-noises, their little flat tails dragging like tiny sledges behind them.
-They were fat and furry, and mighty friendly looking to Baree, and his
-heart beat a sudden swift _pit-a-pat_ of joy.
-
-But Baree did not move. He scarcely breathed. And then, suddenly, Umisk
-turned on one of his playmates and bowled him over. Instantly the other
-two were on Umisk, and the four little beavers rolled over and over,
-kicking with their short feet and spatting with their tails, and all the
-time emitting soft little squeaking cries. Baree knew that it was not
-fight but frolic. He rose up on his feet. He forgot where he was—forgot
-everything in the world but those playing, furry balls. For the moment
-all the hard training nature had been giving him was lost. He was no
-longer a fighter, no longer a hunter, no longer a seeker after food. He
-was a puppy, and in him there rose a desire that was greater than
-hunger. He wanted to go down there with Umisk and his little chums and
-roll and play. He wanted to tell them, if such a thing were possible,
-that he had lost his mother and his home, and that he had been having a
-mighty hard time of it, and that he would like to stay with them and
-their mothers and fathers if they didn’t care.
-
-In his throat there came the least bit of a whine. It was so low that
-Umisk and his playmates did not hear it. They were tremendously busy.
-
-Softly Baree took his first step toward them, and then another—and at
-last he stood on the narrow strip of shore within half a dozen feet of
-them. His sharp little ears were pitched forward, and he was wiggling
-his tail as fast as he could, and every muscle in his body was trembling
-in anticipation.
-
-It was then that Umisk saw him, and his fat little body became suddenly
-as motionless as a stone.
-
-“Hello!” said Baree, wiggling his whole body and talking as plainly as a
-human tongue could talk. “Do you care if I play with you?”
-
-Umisk made no response. His three playmates now had their eyes on Baree.
-They didn’t make a move. They looked stunned. Four pairs of staring,
-wondering eyes were fixed on the stranger.
-
-Baree made another effort. He grovelled on his fore-legs, while his tail
-and hind-legs continued to wiggle, and with a sniff he grabbed a bit of
-stick between his teeth.
-
-“Come on—let me in,” he urged. “I know how to play!”
-
-He tossed the stick in the air as if to prove what he was saying, and
-gave a little yap.
-
-Umisk and his brothers were like dummies.
-
-And then, of a sudden, some one saw Baree. It was a big beaver swimming
-down the pond with a sapling timber for the new dam that was under way.
-Instantly he loosed his hold and faced the shore. And then, like the
-report of a rifle, there came the crack of his big flat tail on the
-water—the beaver’s signal of danger that on a quiet night can be heard
-half a mile away.
-
-“_Danger_,” it warned. “_Danger—danger—danger!_”
-
-Scarcely had the signal gone forth when tails were cracking in all
-directions—in the pond, in the hidden canals, in the thick willows and
-alders. To Umisk and his companions they said:
-
-“_Run for your lives!_”
-
-Baree stood rigid and motionless now. In amazement he watched the four
-little beavers plunge into the pond and disappear. He heard the sounds
-of other and heavier bodies striking the water. And then there followed
-a strange and disquieting silence. Softly Baree whined, and his whine
-was almost a sobbing cry. Why had Umisk and his little mates run away
-from him? What had he done that they didn’t want to make friends with
-him? A great loneliness swept over him—a loneliness greater even than
-that of his first night away from his mother. The last of the sun faded
-out of the sky as he stood there. Darker shadows crept over the pond. He
-looked into the forest, where night was gathering—and with another
-whining cry he slunk back into it. He had not found friendship. He had
-not found comradeship. And his heart was very sad.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII
-
-
-For two or three days Baree’s excursions after food took him farther and
-farther away from the pond. But each afternoon he returned to it—until
-the third day, when he discovered a new creek, and Wakayoo. The creek
-was fully two miles back in the forest. This was a different sort of
-stream. It sang merrily over a gravelly bed and between chasm walls of
-split rock. It formed deep pools and foaming eddies, and where Baree
-first struck it, the air trembled with the distant thunder of a
-waterfall. It was much pleasanter than the dark and silent
-beaver-stream. It seemed possessed of life, and the rush and tumult of
-it—the song and thunder of the water—gave to Baree entirely new
-sensations. He made his way along it slowly and cautiously, and it was
-because of this slowness and caution that he came suddenly and
-unobserved upon Wakayoo, the big black bear, hard at work fishing.
-
-Wakayoo stood knee-deep in a pool that had formed behind a sand bar, and
-he was having tremendously good luck. Even as Baree shrank back, his
-eyes popping at sight of this monster he had seen but once before, in
-the gloom of night, one of Wakayoo’s big paws sent a great splash of
-water high in the air, and a fish landed on the pebbly shore. A little
-while before, the suckers had run up the creek in thousands to spawn,
-and the rapid lowering of the water had caught many of them in these
-prison-pools. Wakayoo’s fat, sleek body was evidence of the prosperity
-this circumstance had brought him. Although it was a little past the
-“prime” season for bearskins, Wakayoo’s coat was splendidly thick and
-black.
-
-For a quarter of an hour Baree watched him while he knocked fish out of
-the pool. When at last he stopped, there were twenty or thirty fish
-among the stones, some of them dead and others still flopping. From
-where he lay flattened out between two rocks, Baree could hear the
-crunching of flesh and bone as the bear devoured his dinner. It sounded
-good, and the fresh smell of fish filled him with a craving that had
-never been roused by crawfish or even partridge.
-
-In spite of his fat and his size, Wakayoo was not a glutton, and after
-he had eaten his fourth fish he pawed all the others together in a pile,
-partly covered them by raking up sand and stones with his long claws,
-and finished his work of caching by breaking down a small balsam sapling
-so that the fish were entirely concealed. Then he lumbered slowly away
-in the direction of the rumbling waterfall.
-
-Twenty seconds after the last of Wakayoo had disappeared in a turn of
-the creek, Baree was under the broken balsam. He dragged out a fish that
-was still alive. He ate the whole of it, and it was delicious.
-
-Baree now found that Wakayoo had solved the food problem for him, and
-this day he did not return to the beaver pond, nor the next. The big
-bear was incessantly fishing up and down the creek, and day after day
-Baree continued his feasts. It was not difficult for him to find
-Wakayoo’s caches. All he had to do was to follow along the shore of the
-stream, sniffing carefully. Some of the caches were getting old, and
-their perfume was anything but pleasant to Baree. These he avoided—but
-he never missed a meal or two out of a fresh one.
-
-For a week life continued to be exceedingly pleasant. And then came the
-break—the change that was destined to mean as much for Baree as that
-other day, long ago, had meant for Kazan, his father, when he killed the
-man-brute in the edge of the wilderness.
-
-This change came on the day when, in trotting around a great rock near
-the waterfall, Baree found himself face to face with Pierrot the hunter
-and Nepeese, the star-eyed girl who had shot him in the edge of the
-clearing.
-
-It was Nepeese whom he saw first. If it had been Pierrot, he would have
-turned back quickly. But again the blood of his forbear was rousing
-strange tremblings within him. Was it like this that the first woman had
-looked to Kazan?
-
-Baree stood still. Nepeese was not more than twenty feet from him. She
-sat on a rock, full in the early morning sun, and was brushing out her
-wonderful hair. Her lips parted. Her eyes shone in an instant like
-stars. One hand remained poised, weighted with the jet tresses. She
-recognized him. She saw the white star on his breast and the white tip
-on his ear, and under her breath she whispered “_Uchi moosis!_”—“The
-dog-pup!” It was the wild-dog she had shot—and thought had died!
-
-The evening before Pierrot and Nepeese had built a shelter of balsams
-behind the big rock, and on a small white plot of sand Pierrot was
-kneeling over a fire preparing breakfast while the Willow arranged her
-hair. He raised his head to speak to her, and saw Baree. In that instant
-the spell was broken. Baree saw the man-beast as he rose to his feet.
-Like a shot he was gone.
-
-Scarcely swifter was he than Nepeese.
-
-“_Dépêchez vous, mon père!_” she cried. “It is the dog-pup! Quick——”
-
-In the floating cloud of her hair she sped after Baree like the wind.
-Pierrot followed, and in going he caught up his rifle. It was difficult
-for him to catch up with the Willow. She was like a wild spirit, her
-little moccasined feet scarcely touching the sand as she ran up the long
-bar. It was wonderful to see the lithe swiftness of her, and that
-wonderful hair streaming out in the sun. Even now, in this moment’s
-excitement, it made Pierrot think of McTaggart, the Hudson’s Bay
-Company’s factor over at Lac Bain, and what he had said yesterday. Half
-the night Pierrot had lain awake, gritting his teeth at thought of it;
-and this morning, before Baree ran upon them, he had looked at Nepeese
-more closely than ever before in his life. She was beautiful. She was
-lovelier even than Wyola, her princess mother, who was dead. That
-hair—which made men stare as if they could not believe! Those eyes—like
-pools filled with wonderful starlight! Her slimness, that was like a
-flower! And McTaggart had said——
-
-Floating back to him there came an excited cry.
-
-“Hurry, Nootawe! He has turned into the blind cañon. He cannot escape us
-now.”
-
-She was panting when he came up to her. The French blood in her glowed a
-vivid crimson in her cheeks and lips. Her white teeth gleamed like milk.
-
-“In there!” And she pointed.
-
-They went in.
-
-Ahead of them Baree was running for his life. He sensed instinctively
-the fact that these wonderful two-legged beings he had looked upon were
-all-powerful. And they were after him! He could hear them. Nepeese was
-following almost as swiftly as he could run. Suddenly he turned into a
-cleft between two great rocks. Twenty feet in, his way was barred, and
-he ran back. When he darted out, straight up the cañon, Nepeese was not
-a dozen yards behind him, and he saw Pierrot almost at her side. The
-Willow gave a cry.
-
-“_Mana_—_mana_—there he is!”
-
-She caught her breath, and darted into a copse of young balsams where
-Baree had disappeared. Like a great entangling web her loose hair
-impeded her in the brush, and with an encouraging cry to Pierrot she
-stopped to gather it over her shoulder as he ran past her. She lost only
-a moment or two, and was after him. Fifty yards ahead of her Pierrot
-gave a warning shout. Baree had turned. Almost in the same breath he was
-tearing over his back-trail, directly toward the Willow. He did not see
-her in time to stop or swerve aside, and Nepeese flung herself down in
-his path. For an instant or two they were together. Baree felt the
-smother of her hair, and the clutch of her hands. Then he squirmed away
-and darted again toward the blind end of the cañon.
-
-Nepeese sprang to her feet. She was panting—and laughing. Pierrot came
-back wildly, and the Willow pointed beyond him.
-
-“I had him—and he didn’t bite!” she said, breathing swiftly. She still
-pointed to the end of the cañon, and she said again: “I had him—and he
-didn’t bite me, Nootawe!”
-
-That was the wonder of it. She had been reckless—and Baree had not
-bitten her! It was then, with her eyes shining at Pierrot, and the smile
-fading slowly from her lips, that she spoke softly the word “_Baree_,”
-which in her tongue meant “the wild dog”—a little brother of the wolf.
-
-“Come,” cried Pierrot, “or we will lose him!”
-
-Pierrot was confident. The cañon had narrowed. Baree could not get past
-them unseen. Three minutes later Baree came to the blind end of the
-cañon—a wall of rock that rose straight up like the curve of a dish.
-Feasting on fish and long hours of sleep had fattened him, and he was
-half winded as he sought vainly for an exit. He was at the far end of
-the dishlike curve of rock, without a bush or a clump of grass to hide
-him, when Pierrot and Nepeese saw him again. Nepeese made straight
-toward him. Pierrot, foreseeing what Baree would do, hurried to the
-left, at right-angles to the end of the cañon.
-
-In and out among the rocks Baree sought swiftly for a way of escape. In
-a moment more he had come to the “box,” or cup of the cañon. This was a
-break in the wall, fifty or sixty feet wide, which opened into a natural
-prison about an acre in extent. It was a beautiful spot. On all sides
-but that leading into the coulée it was shut in by walls of rock. At the
-far end a waterfall broke down in a series of rippling cascades. The
-grass was thick underfoot and strewn with flowers. In this trap Pierrot
-had got more than one fine haunch of venison. From it there was no
-escape, except in the face of his rifle. He called to Nepeese as he saw
-Baree entering it, and together they climbed the slope.
-
-Baree had almost reached the edge of the little prison-meadow when
-suddenly he stopped himself so quickly that he fell back on his
-haunches, and his heart jumped up into his throat.
-
-Full in his path stood Wakayoo, the huge black bear!
-
-For perhaps a half-minute Baree hesitated between the two perils. He
-heard the voices of Nepeese and Pierrot. He caught the rattle of stones
-under their feet. And he was filled with a great dread. Then he looked
-at Wakayoo. The big bear had not moved an inch. He, too, was listening.
-But to him there was a thing more disturbing than the sounds he heard.
-It was the scent which he caught in the air—the man-scent.
-
-Baree, watching him, saw his head swing slowly even as the footsteps of
-Nepeese and Pierrot became more and more distinct. It was the first time
-Baree had ever stood face to face with the big bear. He had watched him
-fish; he had fattened on Wakayoo’s prowess; he had held him in splendid
-awe. Now there was something about the bear that took away his fear and
-gave him in its place a new and thrilling confidence. Wakayoo, big and
-powerful as he was, would not run from the two-legged creatures who
-pursued him! If Baree could only get past Wakayoo he was safe!
-
-Baree darted to one side and ran for the open meadow. Wakayoo did not
-stir as Baree sped past him—no more than if he had been a bird or a
-rabbit. Then came another breath of air, heavy with the scent of man.
-This, at last, put life into him. He turned and began lumbering after
-Baree into the meadow-trap. Baree, looking back, saw him coming—and
-thought it was pursuit. Nepeese and Pierrot came over the slope, and at
-the same instant they saw both Wakayoo and Baree.
-
-Where they entered into the grassy dip under the rock walls, Baree
-turned sharply to the right. Here was a great boulder, one end of it
-tilted up off the earth. It looked like a splendid hiding-place, and
-Baree crawled under it.
-
-But Wakayoo kept straight ahead into the meadow.
-
-From where he lay Baree could see what happened. Scarcely had he crawled
-under the rock when Nepeese and Pierrot appeared through the break in
-the dip, and stopped. The fact that they stopped thrilled Baree. They
-were afraid of Wakayoo! The big bear was two thirds of the way across
-the meadow. The sun fell on him, so that his coat shone like black
-satin. Pierrot stared at him for a moment. Pierrot did not kill for the
-love of killing. Necessity made him a conservationist. But he saw that
-in spite of the lateness of the season, Wakayoo’s coat was splendid—and
-he raised his rifle.
-
-Baree saw this action. He saw, a moment later, something spit from the
-end of the gun, and then he heard that deafening crash that had come
-with his own hurt, when the Willow’s bullet had burned through his
-flesh. He turned his eyes swiftly to Wakayoo. The big bear had stumbled;
-he was on his knees; and then he struggled up and lumbered on.
-
-The roar of the rifle came again, and a second time Wakayoo went down.
-Pierrot could not miss at that distance. Wakayoo made a splendid mark.
-It was slaughter; yet for Pierrot and Nepeese it was business—the
-business of life.
-
-Baree was shivering. It was more from excitement than fear, for he had
-lost his own fear in the tragedy of these moments. A low whine rose in
-his throat as he looked at Wakayoo, who had risen again and faced his
-enemies—his jaws gaping, his head swinging slowly, his legs weakening
-under him as the blood poured through his torn lungs. Baree
-whined—because Wakayoo had fished for him, because he had come to look
-on him as a friend, and because he knew it was death that Wakayoo was
-facing now. There was a third shot—the last. Wakayoo sank down in his
-tracks. His big head dropped between his forepaws. A racking cough or
-two came to Baree. And then there was silence.
-
-It was slaughter—but business.
-
-A minute later, standing over Wakayoo, Pierrot said to Nepeese:
-
-“_Mon Dieu_, but it is a fine skin, _Sakahet!_ It is worth twenty
-dollars over at Lac Bain!”
-
-He drew forth his knife and began whetting if on a stone which he
-carried in his pocket. In these minutes Baree might have crawled out
-from under his rock and escaped down the cañon; for a space he was
-forgotten. Then Nepeese thought of him, and in that same strange,
-wondering voice she spoke again the word “_Baree_.”
-
-Pierrot, who was kneeling, looked up at her.
-
-“_Oui, Sakahet._ He was born of the wild. And now he is gone——”
-
-The Willow shook her head.
-
-“_Non_, he is not gone,” she said, and her dark eyes quested the sunlit
-meadow.
-
-[Illustration: Baree stood still. Nepeese was not more than twenty feet
-from him. He sat on a rock, full in the early morning sun. She saw the
-white star on his breast and the white tip on his ear, and under her
-breath she whispered “_Uchi moosis!_”—“The dog-pup!” It was the wild-dog
-she had shot—and thought had died!]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII
-
-
-As Nepeese gazed about the rock-walled end of the cañon, the prison into
-which they had driven Wakayoo and Baree, Pierrot looked up again from
-his skinning of the big black bear, and he muttered something that no
-one but himself could have heard. “_Non_, it is not possible,” he had
-said a moment before; but to Nepeese it was possible—the thought that
-was in her mind. It was a wonderful thought. It thrilled her to the
-depth of her wild, beautiful soul. It sent a glow into her eyes and a
-deeper flush of excitement into her cheeks and lips.
-
-As she quested the ragged edges of the little meadow for signs of the
-dog-pup, her thoughts flashed back swiftly. Two years ago they had
-buried her princess mother under the tall spruce near their cabin. That
-day Pierrot’s sun had set for all time, and her own life was filled with
-a vast loneliness. There had been three at the graveside that afternoon
-as the sun went down—Pierrot, herself, and a dog, a great, powerful
-husky with a white star on his breast and a white-tipped ear. He had
-been her dead mother’s pet from puppyhood—her bodyguard, with her
-always, even with his head resting on the side of her bed as she died.
-And that night, the night of the day they buried her, the dog had
-disappeared. He had gone as quietly and as completely as her spirit. No
-one ever saw him after that. It was strange, and to Pierrot it was a
-miracle. Deep in his heart he was filled with the wonderful conviction
-that the dog had gone with his beloved Wyola into heaven.
-
-But Nepeese had spent three winters at the Missioner’s school at Nelson
-House. She had learned a great deal about white people and the real God,
-and she knew that Pierrot’s thought was impossible. She believed that
-her mother’s husky was either dead or had joined the wolves. Probably he
-had gone to the wolves. So—was it not possible that this youngster she
-and her father had pursued was of the flesh and blood of her mother’s
-pet? It was more than possible. The white star on his breast, the
-white-tipped ear—the fact that he had not bitten her when he might
-easily have buried his fangs in the soft flesh of her arms! She was
-convinced. While Pierrot skinned the bear, she began hunting for Baree.
-
-Baree had not moved an inch from under his rock. He lay like a thing
-stunned, his eyes fixed steadily on the scene of the tragedy out in the
-meadow. He had seen something that he would never forget—even as he
-would never quite forget his mother and Kazan and the old windfall. He
-had witnessed the death of the creature he had thought all-powerful.
-Wakayoo, the big bear, had not even put up a fight. Pierrot and Nepeese
-had killed him _without touching him_; now Pierrot was cutting him with
-a knife which shot silvery flashes in the sun; and Wakayoo made no
-movement. It made Baree shiver, and he drew himself an inch farther back
-under the rock, where he was already wedged as if he had been shoved
-there by a strong hand.
-
-He could see Nepeese. She came straight back to the break through which
-his flight had taken him, and stood at last not more than twenty feet
-from where he was hidden. Now that she stood where he could not escape,
-she began weaving her shining hair into two thick braids. Baree had
-taken his eyes from Pierrot, and he watched her curiously. He was not
-afraid now. His nerves tingled. In him a strange and growing force was
-struggling to solve a great mystery—the reason for his desire to creep
-out from under his rock and approach that wonderful creature with the
-shining eyes and the beautiful hair.
-
-Baree wanted to approach. It was like an invisible string tugging at his
-very heart. It was Kazan, and not Gray Wolf, calling to him back through
-the centuries, a “call” that was as old as the Egyptian pyramids and
-perhaps ten thousand years older. But against that desire Gray Wolf was
-pulling from out the black ages of the forests. The wolf held him quiet
-and motionless. Nepeese was looking about her. She was smiling. For a
-moment her face was turned toward him, and he saw the white shine of her
-teeth, and her beautiful eyes seemed glowing straight at him.
-
-And then, suddenly, she dropped on her knees and peered under the rock.
-
-Their eyes met. For at least half a minute there was not a sound.
-Nepeese did not move, and her breath came so softly that Baree could not
-hear it. Then she said, almost in a whisper:
-
-“_Baree! Baree! Upi Baree!_”
-
-It was the first time Baree had heard his name, and there was something
-so soft and assuring in the sound of it that in spite of himself the dog
-in him responded to it in a whimper that just reached the Willow’s ears.
-Slowly she stretched in an arm. It was bare and round and soft. He might
-have darted forward the length of his body and buried his fangs in it
-easily. But something held him back. He knew that it was not an enemy;
-he knew that the dark eyes shining at him so wonderfully were not filled
-with the desire to harm—and the voice that came to him softly was like a
-strange and thrilling music.
-
-“_Baree! Baree! Upi Baree!_”
-
-Over and over again the Willow called to him like that, while on her
-face she tried to draw herself a few inches farther under the rock. She
-could not reach him. There was still a foot between her hand and Baree,
-and she could not wedge herself in an inch more. And then she saw where
-on the other side of the rock there was a hollow, shut in by a stone. If
-she had removed the stone, and come in that way——
-
-She drew herself out and stood once more in the sunshine. Her heart
-thrilled. Pierrot was busy over his bear—and she would not call him. She
-made an effort to move the stone which closed in the hollow under the
-big boulder, but it was wedged in tightly. Then she began digging with a
-stick. If Pierrot had been there, his sharp eyes would have discovered
-the significance of that stone, which was not larger than a water pail.
-Possibly for centuries it had lain there, its support keeping the huge
-rock from toppling down, just as an ounce-weight may swing the balance
-of a wheel that weighs a ton.
-
-Five minutes—and Nepeese could move the stone. She tugged at it. Inch by
-inch she dragged it out until at last it lay at her feet and the opening
-was ready for her body. She looked again toward Pierrot. He was still
-busy, and she laughed softly as she untied a big red-and-white Bay
-handkerchief from about her shoulders. With this she would secure Baree.
-She dropped on her hands and knees and then lowered herself flat on the
-ground and began crawling into the hollow under the boulder.
-
-Baree had moved. With the back of his head flattened against the rock,
-he had heard something which Nepeese had not heard; he had felt a slow
-and growing pressure, and from this pressure he had dragged himself
-slowly—and the pressure still followed. The mass of rock was settling!
-Nepeese did not see or hear or understand. She was calling to him more
-and more pleadingly:
-
-“Baree—Baree—Baree——”
-
-Her head and shoulders and both arms were under the rock now. The glow
-of her eyes was very close to Baree. He whined. The thrill of a great
-and impending danger stirred in his blood. And then——
-
-In that moment Nepeese felt the pressure of the rock on her shoulder,
-and into the eyes that had been glowing softly at Baree there shot a
-sudden wild look of horror. And then there came from her lips a cry that
-was not like any other sound Baree had ever heard in the
-wilderness—wild, piercing, filled with agonized fear. Pierrot did not
-hear that first cry. But he heard the second and the third—and then
-scream after scream as the Willow’s tender body was slowly crushed under
-the settling mass. He ran toward it with the speed of the wind. The
-cries were weaker—dying away. He saw Baree as he came out from under the
-rock and ran into the cañon, and in the same instant he saw a part of
-the Willow’s dress and her moccasined feet. The rest of her was hidden
-under the death-trap. Like a madman Pierrot began digging. When a few
-moments later he drew Nepeese out from under the boulder she was white
-and deathly still. Her eyes were closed. His hand could not feel that
-she was living, and a great moan of anguish rose out of his soul. But he
-knew how to fight for a life. He tore open her dress and found that she
-was not crushed as he had feared. Then he ran for water. When he
-returned, the Willow’s eyes were open and she was gasping for breath.
-
-“The blessed saints be praised!” sobbed Pierrot, falling on his knees at
-her side. “_Nepeese, ma Nepeese!_”
-
-She smiled at him, with her two hands on her bare breast, and Pierrot
-hugged her up to him, forgetting the water he had run so hard to get.
-
-Still later, when he got down on his knees and peered under the rock,
-his face turned white and he said:
-
-“_Mon Dieu_, if it had not been for that little hollow in the earth,
-Nepeese——”
-
-He shuddered, and said no more. But Nepeese, happy in her salvation,
-made a movement with her hand and said, smiling at him:
-
-“I would have been like—_that_. Ah, _mon père_, I hope I shall never
-have a lover like that rock!”
-
-Pierrot’s face darkened as he bent over her.
-
-“_Non!_” he said fiercely. “Never!”
-
-He was thinking again of McTaggart, the factor at Lac Bain, and his
-hands clenched while his lips softly touched the Willow’s hair.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
-
-Impelled by the wild alarm of the Willow’s terrible cries and the sight
-of Pierrot dashing madly toward him from the dead body of Wakayoo, Baree
-did not stop running until it seemed as though his lungs could not draw
-another breath. When he stopped, he was well out of the cañon and headed
-for the beaver-pond. For almost a week Baree had not been near the pond.
-He had not forgotten Beaver-tooth and Umisk and the other little
-beavers, but Wakayoo and his daily catch of fresh fish had been too big
-a temptation for him. Now Wakayoo was gone. He sensed the fact that the
-big black bear would never fish again in the quiet pools and shimmering
-eddies, and that where for many days there had been peace and plenty,
-there was now great danger; and just as in another country he would have
-fled for safety to the old windfall, he now fled desperately for the
-beaver-pond.
-
-Exactly wherein lay Baree’s fears it would be difficult to say—but
-surely it was not because of Nepeese. The Willow had chased him hard.
-She had flung herself upon him. He had felt the clutch of her hands and
-the smother of her soft hair, and yet of her he was not afraid! If he
-stopped now and then in his flight and looked back, it was to see if
-Nepeese was following. He would not have run hard from her—alone. Her
-eyes and voice and hands had set something stirring in him; he was
-filled with a greater yearning and a greater loneliness now—and that
-night he dreamed troubled dreams.
-
-He found himself a bed under a spruce root not far from the beaver-pond,
-and all through the night his sleep was filled with that restless
-dreaming—dreams of his mother, of Kazan, the old windfall, of Umisk—and
-of Nepeese. Once, when he awoke, he thought the spruce root was Gray
-Wolf; and when he found that she was not there, Pierrot and the Willow
-could have told what his crying meant if they had heard it. Again and
-again he had visions of the thrilling happenings of that day. He saw the
-flight of Wakayoo over the little meadow—he saw him die again. He saw
-the glow of the Willow’s eyes close to his own, heard her voice—so sweet
-and low that it was like strange music to him—and again he heard her
-terrible screams.
-
-Baree was glad when the dawn came. He did not seek for food, but went
-down to the pond. There was little hope and anticipation in his manner
-now. He remembered that, as plainly as animal ways could talk, Umisk and
-his playmates had told him they wanted nothing to do with him. And yet
-the fact that they were there took away some of his loneliness. It was
-more than loneliness. The wolf in him was submerged. The dog was master.
-And in these passing moments, when the blood of the wild was almost
-dormant in him, he was depressed by the instinctive and growing feeling
-that he was not of that wild, but a fugitive in it, menaced on all sides
-by strange dangers.
-
-Deep in the northern forests the beaver does not work and play in
-darkness only, but uses day even more than night, and many of
-Beaver-tooth’s people were awake when Baree began disconsolately to
-investigate the shores of the pond. The little beavers were still with
-their mothers in the big houses that looked like great domes of sticks
-and mud out in the middle of the lake. There were three of these houses,
-one of them at least twenty feet in diameter. Baree had some difficulty
-in following his side of the pond. When he got back among the willows
-and alders and birch, dozens of little canals crossed and criss-crossed
-in his path. Some of these canals were a foot wide, and others three or
-four feet, and all were filled with water. No country in the world ever
-had a better system of traffic than this domain of the beavers, down
-which they brought their working materials and food into the main
-reservoir—the pond.
-
-In one of the larger canals Baree surprised a big beaver towing a
-four-foot cutting of birch as thick through as a man’s leg—half a dozen
-breakfasts and dinners and suppers in that one cargo. The four or five
-inner barks of the birch are what might be called the bread and butter
-and potatoes of the beaver menu, while the more highly prized barks of
-the willow and young alder take the place of meat and pie.
-
-Baree smelled curiously of the birch cutting after the old beaver had
-abandoned it in flight, and then went on. He did not try to hide himself
-now, and at least half a dozen beavers had a good look at him before he
-came to the point where the pond narrowed down to the width of the
-stream, almost half a mile from the dam. Then he wandered back. All that
-morning he hovered about the pond, showing himself openly.
-
-In their big mud-and-stick strongholds the beavers held a council of
-war. They were distinctly puzzled. There were four enemies which they
-dreaded above all others: the otter, who destroyed their dams in the
-winter-time and brought death to them from cold and by lowering the
-water so they could not get to their food-supplies; the lynx, who preyed
-on them all, young and old alike; and the fox and wolf, who would lie in
-ambush for hours in order to pounce on the very young, like Umisk and
-his playmates. If Baree had been any one of these four, wily
-Beaver-tooth and his people would have known what to do. But Baree was
-surely not an otter, and if he was a fox or a wolf or a lynx, his
-actions were very strange, to say the least. Half a dozen times he had
-had the opportunity to pounce on his prey, if he had been seeking prey.
-But at no time had he shown the desire to harm them.
-
-It may be that the beavers discussed the matter fully among themselves.
-It is possible that Umisk and his playmates told their parents of their
-adventure, and of how Baree made no move to harm them when he could
-quite easily have caught them. It is also more than likely that the
-older beavers who had fled from Baree that morning gave an account of
-their adventures, again emphasizing the fact that the stranger, while
-frightening them, had shown no disposition to attack them. All this is
-quite possible, for if beavers can make a large part of a continent’s
-history, and can perform engineering feats that nothing less than
-dynamite can destroy, it is only reasonable to suppose that they have
-some way of making one another understand.
-
-However this may be, courageous old Beaver-tooth took it upon himself to
-end the suspense.
-
-It was early in the afternoon that for the third or fourth time Baree
-walked out on the dam. This dam was fully two hundred feet in length,
-but at no point did the water run over it, the overflow finding its way
-through narrow sluices. A week or two ago Baree could have crossed to
-the opposite side of the pond on this dam, but now—at the far
-end—Beaver-tooth and his engineers were adding a new section of dam, and
-in order to accomplish their work more easily, they had flooded fully
-fifty yards of the low ground on which they were working. The main dam
-held a fascination for Baree. It was strong with the smell of beaver.
-The top of it was high and dry, and there were dozens of smoothly worn
-little hollows in which the beavers had taken their sun-baths. In one of
-these hollows Baree stretched himself out, with his eyes on the pond.
-Not a ripple stirred its velvety smoothness. Not a sound broke the
-drowsy stillness of the afternoon. The beavers might have been dead or
-asleep, for all the stir they made. And yet they knew that Baree was on
-the dam. Where he lay, the sun fell in a warm flood, and it was so
-comfortable that after a time he had difficulty in keeping his eyes open
-to watch the pond. Then he fell asleep.
-
-Just how Beaver-tooth sensed this fact is a mystery. Five minutes later
-he came up quietly, without a splash or a sound, within fifty yards of
-Baree. For a few moments he scarcely moved in the water. Then he swam
-very slowly parallel with the dam across the pond. At the other side he
-drew himself ashore, and for another minute sat as motionless as a
-stone, with his eyes on that part of the dam where Baree was lying. Not
-another beaver was moving, and it was very soon apparent that
-Beaver-tooth had but one object in mind—getting a closer observation of
-Baree. When he entered the water again, he swam along close to the dam.
-Ten feet beyond Baree he began to climb out. He did this with great
-slowness and caution. At last he reached the top of the dam.
-
-A few yards away Baree was almost hidden in his hollow, only the top of
-his shiny black body appearing to Beaver-tooth’s scrutiny. To get a
-better look, the old beaver spread his flat tail out beyond him and rose
-to a sitting posture on his hind-quarters, his two front paws held
-squirrel-like over his breast. In this pose he was fully three feet
-tall. He probably weighed forty pounds, and in some ways he resembled
-one of those fat, good-natured, silly-looking dogs that go largely to
-stomach. But his brain was working with amazing celerity. Suddenly he
-gave the hard mud of the dam a single slap with his tail—and Baree sat
-up. Instantly he saw Beaver-tooth, and stared. Beaver-tooth stared. For
-a full half-minute neither moved the thousandth part of an inch. Then
-Baree stood up and wagged his tail.
-
-That was enough. Dropping to his forefeet. Beaver-tooth waddled
-leisurely to the edge of the dam and dived over. He was neither cautious
-nor in very great haste now. He made a great commotion in the water and
-swam boldly back and forth under Baree. When he had done this several
-times, he cut straight up the pond to the largest of the three houses
-and disappeared. Five minutes after Beaver-tooth’s exploit word was
-passing quickly among the colony. The stranger—Baree—was not a lynx. He
-was not a fox. He was not a wolf. Moreover, he was very young—and
-harmless. Work could be resumed. Play could be resumed. There was no
-danger. Such was Beaver-tooth’s verdict.
-
-If some one had shouted these facts in beaver-language through a
-megaphone, the response could not have been quicker. All at once it
-seemed to Baree, who was still standing on the edge of the dam, that the
-pond was alive with beavers. He had never seen so many at one time
-before. They were popping up everywhere, and some of them swam up within
-a dozen feet of him and looked him over in a leisurely and curious way.
-For perhaps five minutes the beavers seemed to have no particular object
-in view. Then Beaver-tooth himself struck straight for the shore and
-climbed out. Others followed him. Half a dozen workers disappeared in
-the canals. As many more waddled out among the alders and willows.
-Eagerly Baree watched for Umisk and his chums. At last he saw them,
-swimming forth from one of the smaller houses. They climbed out on their
-playground—the smooth bar above the shore of mud. Baree wagged his tail
-so hard that his whole body shook, and hurried along the dam.
-
-When he came out on the level strip of shore, Umisk was there alone,
-nibbling his supper from a long, freshly cut willow. The other little
-beavers had gone into a thick clump of young alders.
-
-This time Umisk did not run. He looked up from his stick. Baree squatted
-himself, wiggling in a most friendly and ingratiating manner. For a few
-seconds Umisk regarded him.
-
-Then, very coolly, he resumed his supper.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X
-
-
-Just as in the life of every man there is one big, controlling
-influence, either for good or bad, so in the life of Baree the
-beaver-pond was largely an arbiter of destiny. Where he might have gone
-if he had not discovered it, and what might have happened to him, are
-matters of conjecture. But it held him. It began to take the place of
-the old windfall, and in the beavers themselves he found a companionship
-which made up, in a way, for his loss of the protection and friendship
-of Kazan and Gray Wolf.
-
-This companionship, if it could be called that, went just so far and no
-farther. With each day that passed the older beavers became more
-accustomed to seeing Baree. At the end of two weeks, if Baree had gone
-away, they would have missed him—but not in the same way that Baree
-would have missed the beavers. It was a matter of good-natured
-toleration on their part. With Baree it was different. He was still
-_uskahis_, as Nepeese would have said; he still wanted mothering; he was
-still moved by the puppyish yearnings which he had not yet had the time
-to outgrow; and when night came—to speak that yearning quite plainly—he
-had the desire to go into the big beaver house with Umisk and his chums
-and sleep.
-
-During this fortnight that followed Beaver-tooth’s exploit on the dam
-Baree ate his meals a mile up the creek, where there were plenty of
-crawfish. But the pond was home. Night always found him there, and a
-large part of his day. He slept at the end of the dam, or on top of it
-on particularly clear nights, and the beavers accepted him as a
-permanent guest. They worked in his presence as if he did not exist.
-
-Baree was fascinated by this work, and he never grew tired of watching
-it. It puzzled and bewildered him. Day after day he saw them float
-timber and brush through the water for the new dam. He saw this dam
-growing steadily under their efforts. One day he lay within a dozen feet
-of an old beaver who was cutting down a tree six inches through. When
-the tree fell, and the old beaver scurried away, Baree scurried, too.
-Then he came back and smelled of the cutting, wondering what it was all
-about, and why Umisk’s uncle or grandfather or aunt had gone to all that
-trouble.
-
-He still could not induce Umisk and the other young beavers to join him
-in play, and after the first week or so he gave up his efforts. In fact,
-their play puzzled him almost as much as the dam-building operations of
-the older beavers. Umisk, for instance, was fond of playing in the mud
-at the edge of the pond. He was like a very small boy. Where his elders
-floated timbers from three inches to a foot in diameter to the big dam,
-Umisk brought small sticks and twigs no larger around than a lead-pencil
-to his playground, and built a make-believe dam of his own.
-
-Umisk would work an hour at a time on this play-dam as industriously as
-his father and mother were working on the big dam, and Baree would lie
-flat on his belly a few feet away, watching him and wondering mightily.
-And through this half-dry mud Umisk would also dig his miniature canals,
-just as a small boy might have dug his Mississippi River and
-pirate-infested oceans in the outflow of some back-lot spring. With his
-sharp little teeth he cut down his big timber—willow-sprouts never more
-than an inch in diameter; and when one of these four or five-foot
-sprouts toppled down, he undoubtedly felt as great a satisfaction as
-Beaver-tooth felt when he sent a seventy-foot birch crashing into the
-edge of the pond. Baree could not understand the fun of all this. He
-could see some reason for nibbling at sticks—he liked to sharpen his
-teeth on sticks himself; but it puzzled him to explain why Umisk so
-painstakingly stripped the bark from the sticks and swallowed it.
-
-Another method of play still further discouraged Baree’s advances. A
-short distance from the spot where he had first seen Umisk there was a
-shelving bank that rose ten or twelve feet from the water, and this bank
-was used by the young beavers as a slide. It was worn smooth and hard.
-Umisk would climb up the bank at a point where it was not so steep. At
-the top of the slide he would put his tail out flat behind him and give
-himself a shove, shooting down the toboggan and landing in the water
-with a big splash. At times there were from six to ten young beavers
-engaged in this sport, and now and then one of the older beavers would
-waddle to the top of the slide and take a turn with the youngsters.
-
-One afternoon, when the toboggan was particularly wet and slippery from
-recent use, Baree went up the beaver-path to the top of the bank, and
-began investigating. Nowhere had he found the beaver-smell so strong as
-on the slide. He began sniffing and incautiously went too far. In an
-instant his feet shot out from under him, and with a single wild yelp he
-went shooting down the toboggan. For the second time in his life he
-found himself struggling under water, and when a minute or two later he
-dragged himself up through the soft mud to the firmer footing of the
-shore, he had at last a very well-defined opinion of beaver play.
-
-It may be that Umisk saw him. It may be that very soon the story of his
-adventure was known by all the inhabitants of Beaver Town. For when
-Baree came upon Umisk eating his supper of alder-bark that evening,
-Umisk stood his ground to the last inch, and for the first time they
-smelled noses. At least Baree sniffed audibly, and plucky little Umisk
-sat like a rolled-up sphinx. That was the final cementing of their
-friendship—on Baree’s part. He capered about extravagantly for a few
-moments, telling Umisk how much he liked him, and that they’d be great
-chums. Umisk didn’t talk. He didn’t make a move until he resumed his
-supper. But he was a companionable looking little fellow, for all that,
-and Baree was happier than he had been since the day he left the old
-windfall.
-
-This friendship, even though it outwardly appeared to be quite
-one-sided, was decidedly fortunate for Umisk. When Baree was at the
-pond, he always kept as near to Umisk as possible, when he could find
-him. One day he was lying in a patch of grass, half asleep, while Umisk
-busied himself in a clump of alder-shoots a few yards away. It was the
-warning crack of a beaver tail that fully roused Baree; and then another
-and another, like pistol-shots. He jumped up. Everywhere beavers were
-scurrying for the pond.
-
-Just then Umisk came out of the alders and hurried as fast as his short,
-fat legs would carry him toward the water. He had almost reached the mud
-when a lightning flash of red passed before Baree’s eyes in the
-afternoon sun, and in another instant Napakasew—the he-fox—had fastened
-his sharp fangs in Umisk’s throat. Baree heard his little friend’s
-agonized cry; he heard the frenzied _flap-flap-flap_ of many tails—and
-his blood pounded suddenly with the thrill of excitement and rage.
-
-As swiftly as the red fox himself, Baree darted to the rescue. He was as
-big and as heavy as the fox, and when he struck Napakasew, it was with a
-ferocious snarl that Pierrot might have heard on the farther side of the
-pond, and his teeth sank like knives into the shoulder of Umisk’s
-assailant. The fox was of a breed of forest highwaymen which kills from
-behind. He was not a fighter when it came fang-to-fang, unless
-cornered—and so fierce and sudden was Baree’s assault that Napakasew
-took to flight almost as quickly as he had begun his attack on Umisk.
-
-Baree did not follow him, but went to Umisk, who lay half in the mud,
-whimpering and snuffling in a curious sort of way. Gently Baree nosed
-him, and after a moment or two Umisk got up on his webbed feet, while
-fully twenty or thirty beavers were making a tremendous fuss in the
-water near the shore.
-
-After this the beaver-pond seemed more than ever like home to Baree.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
-
-While lovely Nepeese was shuddering over her thrilling experience under
-the rock—while Pierrot still offered grateful thanks in his prayers for
-her deliverance and Baree was becoming more and more a fixture at the
-beaver-pond—Bush McTaggart was perfecting a little scheme of his own up
-at Post Lac Bain, about forty miles north and west. McTaggart had been
-factor at Lac Bain for seven years. In the Company’s books down in
-Winnipeg he was counted a remarkably successful man. The expense of his
-post was below the average, and his semi-annual report of furs always
-ranked among the first. After his name, kept on file in the main office,
-was one notation which said: “Gets more out of a dollar than any other
-man north of God’s Lake.”
-
-The Indians knew why this was so. They called him _Napao Wetikoo_—the
-man-devil. This was under their breath—a name whispered sinisterly in
-the glow of tepee fires, or spoken softly where not even the winds might
-carry it to the ears of Bush McTaggart. They feared him; they hated him.
-They died of starvation and sickness, and the tighter Bush McTaggart
-clenched the fingers of his iron rule, the more meekly, it seemed to
-him, did they respond to his mastery. His was a small soul, hidden in
-the hulk of a brute, which rejoiced in power. And here—with the raw
-wilderness on four sides of him—his power knew no end. The Big Company
-was behind him. It had made him king of a domain in which there was
-little law except his own. And in return he gave back to the Company
-bales and bundles of furs beyond their expectation. It was not for them
-to have suspicions. They were a thousand or more miles away—and dollars
-counted.
-
-Gregson might have told. Gregson was the Investigating Agent of that
-district, who visited McTaggart once each year. He might have reported
-that the Indians called McTaggart _Napao Wetikoo_ because he gave them
-only half price for their furs; he might have told the Company quite
-plainly that he kept the people of the trap-lines at the edge of
-starvation through every month of the winter, that he had them on their
-knees with his hands at their throats—putting the truth in a mild and
-pretty way—and that he always had a woman or a girl, Indian or
-halfbreed, living with him at the Post. But Gregson enjoyed his visits
-too much at Lac Bain. Always he could count on two weeks of coarse
-pleasures; and in addition to that, his own womenfolk at home wore a
-rich treasure of fur that came to them from McTaggart.
-
-One evening, a week after the adventure of Nepeese and Baree under the
-rock, McTaggart sat under the glow of an oil lamp in his “store.” He had
-sent his little pippin-faced English clerk to bed, and he was alone. For
-six weeks there had been in him a great unrest. It was just six weeks
-ago that Pierrot had brought Nepeese on her first visit to Lac Bain
-since McTaggart had been factor there. She had taken his breath away.
-Since then he had been able to think of nothing but her. Twice in that
-six weeks he had gone down to Pierrot’s cabin. To-morrow he was going
-again. Marie, the slim Cree girl over in his cabin, he had
-forgotten—just as a dozen others before Marie had slipped out of his
-memory. It was Nepeese now. He had never seen anything quite so
-beautiful as Pierrot’s girl.
-
-Audibly he cursed Pierrot as he looked at a sheet of paper under his
-hand, on which for an hour or more he had been making notes out of worn
-and dusty Company ledgers. It was Pierrot who stood in his way.
-Pierrot’s father, according to those notes, had been a full-blooded
-Frenchman. Therefore Pierrot was half French, and Nepeese was quarter
-French—though she was so beautiful he could have sworn there was not
-more than a drop or two of Indian blood in her veins. If they had been
-all Indian—Chippewayan, Cree, Ojibway, Dog Rib—anything—there would have
-been no trouble at all in the matter. He would have bent them to his
-power, and Nepeese would have come to his cabin, as Marie came six
-months ago. But there was the accursed French of it! Pierrot and Nepeese
-were different. And yet——
-
-He smiled grimly, and his hands clenched tighter. After all, was not his
-power sufficient? Would even Pierrot dare stand against that? If Pierrot
-objected, he would drive him from the country—from the trapping regions
-that had come down to him as heritage from father and grandfather, and
-even before their day. He would make of Pierrot a wanderer and an
-outcast, as he had made wanderers and outcasts of a score of others who
-had lost his favour. No other Post would sell to or buy from Pierrot if
-_Le Bête_—the black cross—was put after his name. That was his power—a
-law of the Factors that had come down through the centuries. It was a
-tremendous power for evil. It had brought him Marie, the slim, dark-eyed
-Cree girl, who hated him—and in spite of her hatred “kept house for
-him.” That was the polite way of explaining her presence if explanations
-were ever necessary.
-
-McTaggart looked again at the notes he had made on the sheet of paper.
-Pierrot’s trapping-country, his own property according to the common law
-of the wilderness, was very valuable. During the last seven years he had
-received an average of a thousand dollars a year for his furs, for
-McTaggart had been unable to cheat Pierrot quite as completely as he had
-cheated the Indians. A thousand dollars a year! Pierrot would think
-twice before he gave that up. McTaggart chuckled as he crumpled the
-paper in his hand and prepared to put out the light. Under his
-close-cropped shaggy beard his reddish face blazed with the fire that
-was in his blood. It was an unpleasant face—like iron, merciless, filled
-with the look that gave him his name of _Napao Wetikoo_. His eyes
-gleamed, and he drew a quick breath as he put out the light.
-
-He chuckled again as he made his way through the darkness to the door.
-Nepeese as good as belonged to him. He would have her if it
-cost—_Pierrot’s life_. And—_why not_? It was all so easy. A shot on a
-lonely trap-line, a single knife-thrust—and who would know? Who would
-guess where Pierrot had gone? And it would all be Pierrot’s fault. For
-the last time he had seen Pierrot, he had made an honest proposition: he
-would marry Nepeese. Yes, even that. He had told Pierrot so. He had told
-Pierrot that when the latter was his father-in-law, he would pay him
-double price for furs.
-
-And Pierrot had stared—had stared with that strange, stunned look in his
-face, like a man dazed by a blow from a club. And so if he did not get
-Nepeese without trouble it would all be Pierrot’s fault. To-morrow
-McTaggart would start again for the halfbreed’s country. And the next
-day Pierrot would have an answer for him. Bush McTaggart chuckled again
-when he went to bed.
-
-Until the next to the last day Pierrot said nothing to Nepeese about
-what had passed between him and the factor at Lac Bain. Then he told
-her.
-
-“He is a beast—a man-devil,” he said, when he had finished. “I would
-rather see you out there—with her—dead.” And he pointed to the tall
-spruce under which the princess mother lay.
-
-Nepeese had not uttered a sound. But her eyes had grown bigger and
-darker, and there was a flush in her cheeks which Pierrot had never seen
-there before. She stood up when he had done, and she seemed taller to
-him. Never had she looked quite so much like a woman, and Pierrot’s eyes
-were deep-shadowed with fear and uneasiness as he watched her while she
-gazed off into the northwest—toward Lac Bain.
-
-She was wonderful, this slip of a girl-woman. Her beauty troubled him.
-He had seen the look in Bush McTaggart’s eyes. He had heard the thrill
-in McTaggart’s voice. He had caught the desire of a beast in McTaggart’s
-face. It had frightened him at first. But now—he was not frightened. He
-was uneasy, but his hands were clenched. In his heart there was a
-smoldering fire. At last Nepeese turned and came and sat down beside him
-again, at his feet.
-
-“He is coming to-morrow, _ma chérie_,” he said. “What shall I tell him?”
-
-The Willow’s lips were red. Her eyes shone. But she did not look up at
-her father.
-
-“Nothing, Nootawe—except that you are to say to him that I am the one to
-whom he must come—for what he seeks.”
-
-Pierrot bent over and caught her smiling. The sun went down. His heart
-sank with it, like cold lead.
-
- * * * * *
-
-From Lac Bain to Pierrot’s cabin the trail cut within half a mile of the
-beaver-pond, a dozen miles from where Pierrot lived; and it was here, on
-a twist of the creek in which Wakayoo had caught fish for Baree, that
-Bush McTaggart made his camp for the night. Only twenty miles of the
-journey could be made by canoe, and as McTaggart was travelling the last
-stretch afoot, his camp was a simple affair—a few cut balsams, a light
-blanket, a small fire. Before he prepared his supper, the Factor drew a
-number of copper-wire snares from his small pack and spent half an hour
-in setting them in rabbit runways. This method of securing meat was far
-less arduous than carrying a gun in hot weather, and it was certain.
-Half a dozen snares were good for at least three rabbits, and one of
-these three was sure to be young and tender enough for the frying-pan.
-After he had placed his snares McTaggart set a skillet of bacon over the
-coals and boiled his coffee.
-
-Of all the odours of a camp, the smell of bacon reaches farthest in the
-forest. It needs no wind. It drifts on its own wings. On a still night a
-fox will sniff it a mile away—twice that far if the air is moving in the
-right direction. It was this smell of bacon that came to Baree where he
-lay in his hollow on top of the beaver-dam.
-
-Since his experience in the cañon and the death of Wakayoo, he had not
-fared particularly well. Caution had held him near the pond, and he had
-lived almost entirely on crawfish. This new perfume that came with the
-night wind roused his hunger. But it was elusive: now he could smell
-it—the next instant it was gone. He left the dam and began questing for
-the source of it in the forest, until after a time he lost it
-altogether. McTaggart had finished frying his bacon and was eating it.
-
-It was a splendid night that followed. Perhaps Baree would have slept
-through it in his nest on the top of the dam if the bacon smell had not
-stirred the new hunger in him. Since his adventure in the cañon, the
-deeper forest had held a dread for him, especially at night. But this
-night was like a pale, golden day: it was moonless; but the stars shone
-like a billion distant lamps, flooding the world in a soft and billowy
-sea of light. A gentle whisper of wind made pleasant sounds in the
-treetops. Beyond that it was very quiet, for it was _Puskowepesim_—the
-Moulting Moon—and the wolves were not hunting, the owls had lost their
-voice, the foxes slunk with he silence of shadows, and even the beavers
-had begun to cease their labours. The horns of the moose, the deer, and
-the caribou were in tender velvet, and they moved but little and fought
-not at all. It was late July, Moulting Moon of the Cree, Moon of Silence
-for the Chippewayan.
-
-In this silence Baree began to hunt. He stirred up a family of
-half-grown partridges, but they escaped him. He pursued a rabbit that
-was swifter than he. For an hour he had no luck. Then he heard a sound
-that made every drop of blood in him thrill. He was close to McTaggart’s
-camp, and what he had heard was a rabbit in one of McTaggart’s snares.
-He came out into a little starlit open and there he saw the rabbit going
-through a most marvellous pantomime. It amazed him for a moment, and he
-stopped in his tracks.
-
-Wapoos, the rabbit, had run his furry head into the snare, and his first
-frightened jump had “shot” the sapling to which the copper wire was
-attached so that he was now hung half in midair, with only his hind feet
-touching the ground. And there he was dancing madly while the noose
-about his neck slowly choked him to death.
-
-Baree gave a sort of gasp. He could understand nothing of the part that
-the wire and the sapling were playing in this curious game. All he could
-see was that Wapoos was hopping and dancing about on his hind legs in a
-most puzzling and unrabbit-like fashion. It may be that he thought it
-some sort of play. In this instance, however, he did not regard Wapoos
-as he had looked on Umisk the beaver. He knew that Wapoos made mighty
-fine eating, and after another moment or two of hesitation he darted
-upon his prey.
-
-Wapoos, half gone already, made almost no struggle, and in the glow of
-the stars Baree finished him, and for half an hour afterward he feasted.
-
-McTaggart had heard no sound, for the snare into which Wapoos had run
-his head was the one set farthest from his camp. Beside the smouldering
-coals of his fire he sat with his back to a tree, smoking his black pipe
-and dreaming covetously of Nepeese, when Baree continued his
-night-wandering. Baree no longer had the desire to hunt. He was too
-full. But he nosed in and out of the starlit spaces, enjoying immensely
-the stillness and the golden glow of the night. He was following a
-rabbit-run when he came to a place where two fallen logs left a trail no
-wider than his body. He squeezed through; something tightened about his
-neck; there was a sudden snap—a swish as the sapling was released from
-its “trigger”—and Baree was jerked off his feet so suddenly that he had
-no time to conjecture as to what was happening.
-
-The yelp in his throat died in a gurgle, and the next moment he was
-going through the pantomimic actions of Wapoos, who was having his
-vengeance inside him. For the life of him Baree could not keep from
-dancing about, while the wire grew tighter and tighter about his neck.
-When he snapped at the wire and flung the weight of his body to the
-ground, the sapling would bend obligingly, and then—in its rebound—would
-yank him for an instant completely off the earth. Furiously he
-struggled. It was a miracle that the fine wire held him. In a few
-moments more it must have broken—but McTaggart had heard him! The Factor
-caught up his blanket and a heavy stick as he hurried toward the snare.
-It was not a rabbit making those sounds—he knew that. Perhaps a
-fisher-cat—a lynx, a fox, a young wolf——
-
-It was the wolf he thought of first when he saw Baree at the end of the
-wire. He dropped the blanket and raised the club. If there had been
-clouds overhead, or the stars had been less brilliant, Baree would have
-died as surely as Wapoos had died. With the club raised over his head
-McTaggart saw in time the white star, the white-tipped ear, and the jet
-black of Baree’s coat.
-
-With a swift movement he exchanged the club for the blanket.
-
-In that hour, could McTaggart have looked ahead to the days that were to
-come, he would have used the club. Could he have foreseen the great
-tragedy in which Baree was to play a vital part, wrecking his hopes and
-destroying his world, he would have beaten him to a pulp there under the
-light of the stars. And Baree, could he have foreseen what was to happen
-between this brute with a white skin and the most beautiful thing in the
-forests, would have fought even more bitterly before he surrendered
-himself to the smothering embrace of the Factor’s blanket. On this night
-Fate had played a strange hand for them both, and only that Fate, and
-perhaps the stars above, held a knowledge of what its outcome was to be.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
-
-Half an hour later Rush McTaggart’s fire was burning brightly again. In
-the glow of it Baree lay trussed up like an Indian papoose, tied into a
-balloon-shaped ball with _babiche_ thong, his head alone showing where
-his captor had cut a hole for it in the blanket. He was hopelessly
-caught—so closely imprisoned in the blanket that he could scarcely move
-a muscle of his body. A few feet away from him McTaggart was bathing a
-bleeding hand in a basin of water. There was also a red streak down the
-side of McTaggart’s bullish neck.
-
-“You little devil!” he snarled at Baree. “You little devil!”
-
-He reached over suddenly and gave Baree’s head a vicious blow with his
-heavy hand.
-
-“I ought to beat your brains out, and—I believe I will!”
-
-Baree watched him as he picked up a stick close at his side—a bit of
-firewood. Pierrot had chased him, but this was the first time he had
-been near enough to the man-monster to see the red glow in his eyes.
-They were not like the eyes of the wonderful creature who had almost
-caught him in the web of her hair, and who had crawled after him under
-the rock. They were beast-eyes. They made him shrink and try to draw his
-head back into the blanket as the stick was raised. At the same time he
-snarled. His white fangs gleamed in the firelight. His ears were flat.
-He wanted to sink his teeth in the red throat where he had already drawn
-blood.
-
-The stick fell. It fell again and again, and when McTaggart was done,
-Baree lay half stunned, his eyes partly closed by the blows, and his
-mouth bleeding.
-
-“That’s the way we take the devil out of a wild dog,” snarled McTaggart.
-“I guess you won’t try the biting game again, eh, youngster? A thousand
-devils—but you went almost to the bone of this hand!”
-
-He began washing the wound again. Baree’s teeth had sunk deep, and there
-was a troubled look in the Factor’s face. It was July—a bad month for
-bites. From his kit he got a small flask of whisky and turned a bit of
-the raw liquor on the wound, cursing Baree as it burned into his flesh.
-
-Baree’s half-shut eyes were fixed on him steadily. He knew that at last
-he had met the deadliest of all his enemies. And yet he was not afraid.
-The club in Bush McTaggart’s hand had not killed his spirit. It had
-killed his fear. It had roused in him a hatred such as he had never
-known—not even when he was fighting Oohoomisew, the outlaw owl. The
-vengeful animosity of the wolf was burning in him now, along with the
-savage courage of the dog. He did not flinch when McTaggart approached
-him again. He made an effort to raise himself, that he might spring at
-this man-monster. In the effort, swaddled as he was in the blanket, he
-rolled over in a helpless and ludicrous heap.
-
-The sight of it touched McTaggart’s risibilities, and he laughed. He sat
-down with his back to the tree again and filled his pipe.
-
-Baree did not take his eyes from McTaggart as he smoked. He watched the
-man when the latter stretched himself out on the bare ground and went to
-sleep. He listened, still later, to the man-monster’s heinous snoring.
-Again and again during the long night he struggled to free himself. He
-would never forget that night. It was terrible. In the thick, hot folds
-of the blanket his limbs and body were suffocated until the blood almost
-stood still in his veins. Yet he did not whine.
-
-They began to journey before the sun was up, for if Baree’s blood was
-almost dead within him, Bush McTaggart’s was scorching his body with the
-heat of its anticipation. He made his last plans as he walked swiftly
-through the forest with Baree under his arm. He would send Pierrot at
-once for Father Grotin at his Mission seventy miles to the west. He
-would marry Nepeese—yes, marry her! That would tickle Pierrot. And he
-would be alone with Nepeese while Pierrot was gone for the missioner.
-
-This thought flamed McTaggart’s blood like strong whisky. There was no
-thought in his hot and unreasoning brain of what Nepeese might say—of
-what she might think. He was not after the soul of her. His hand
-clenched, and he laughed harshly as there flashed on him for an instant
-the thought that perhaps Pierrot would not want to give her up. Pierrot!
-Bah! It would not be the first time he had killed a man—or the second.
-
-McTaggart laughed again, and he walked still faster. There was no chance
-of his losing—no chance for Nepeese to get away from him. He—Bush
-McTaggart—was lord of this wilderness, master of its people, arbiter of
-their destinies. He was power—and the law.
-
-The sun was well up when Pierrot, standing in front of his cabin with
-Nepeese, pointed to a rise in the trail three or four hundred yards
-away, over which McTaggart had just appeared.
-
-“He is coming.”
-
-With a face which had aged since last night he looked at Nepeese. Again
-he saw the dark glow in her eyes and the deepening red of her parted
-lips, and his heart was sick again with dread. Was it possible——
-
-She turned on him, her eyes shining, her voice trembling.
-
-“Remember, Nootawe—you must send him to me for his answer,” she cried
-quickly, and she darted into the cabin. With a cold, gray face Pierrot
-faced Bush McTaggart.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII
-
-
-From the window, her face screened by the folds of the curtain which she
-had made for it, the Willow saw what happened outside. She was not
-smiling now. She was breathing quickly, and her body was tense. Bush
-McTaggart paused not a dozen feet from the window and shook hands with
-Pierrot, her father. She heard McTaggart’s coarse voice, his boisterous
-greeting, and then she saw him showing Pierrot what he carried under his
-arm. There came to her distinctly his explanation of how he had caught
-his captive in a rabbit-snare. He unwrapped the blanket. Nepeese gave a
-cry of amazement. In an instant she was out beside them. She did not
-look at McTaggart’s red face, blazing in its joy and exultation.
-
-“It is Baree!” she cried.
-
-She took the bundle from McTaggart and turned to Pierrot.
-
-“Tell him that Baree belongs to me,” she said.
-
-She hurried into the cabin. McTaggart looked after her, stunned and
-amazed. Then he looked at Pierrot. A man half blind could have seen that
-Pierrot was as amazed as he. Nepeese had not spoken to him—the Factor of
-Lac Bain! She had not _looked_ at him! And she had taken the dog from
-him with as little concern as though he had been a wooden man. The red
-in his face deepened as he stared from Pierrot to the door through which
-she had gone, and which she had closed behind her.
-
-On the floor of the cabin Nepeese dropped on her knees and finished
-unwrapping the blanket. She was not afraid of Baree. She had forgotten
-McTaggart. And then, as Baree rolled in a limp heap on the floor, she
-saw his half-closed eyes and the dry blood on his jaws, and the light
-left her face as swiftly as the sun is shadowed by a cloud. “Baree,” she
-cried softly. “Baree—Baree!”
-
-She partly lifted him in her two hands. Baree’s head sagged. His body
-was numbed until he was powerless to move. His legs were without
-feeling. He could scarcely see. But he heard her voice! It was the same
-voice that had come to him that day he had felt the sting of the bullet,
-the voice that had pleaded with him under the rock!
-
-The voice of the Willow thrilled Baree. It seemed to stir the sluggish
-blood in his veins, and he opened his eyes wider and saw again the
-wonderful stars that had glowed at him so softly the day of Wakayoo’s
-death. One of the Willow’s long braids fell over her shoulder, and he
-smelled again the sweet scent of her hair as her hand caressed him and
-her voice talked to him. Then she got up suddenly and left him, and he
-did not move while he waited for her. In a moment she was back with a
-basin of water and a cloth. Gently she washed the blood from his eyes
-and mouth. And still Baree made no move. He scarcely breathed. But
-Nepeese saw the little quivers that shot through his body when her hand
-touched him, like electric shocks.
-
-“He beat you with a club,” she was saying, her dark eyes within a foot
-of Baree’s. “He beat you! That man-beast!”
-
-There came an interruption. The door opened, and the man-beast stood
-looking down on them, a grin on his red face. Instantly Baree showed
-that he was alive. He sprang back from under the Willow’s hand with a
-sudden snarl and faced McTaggart. The hair of his spine stood up like a
-brush; his fangs gleamed menacingly, and his eyes burned like living
-coals.
-
-“There is a devil in him,” said McTaggart. “He is wild—born of the wolf.
-You must be careful or he will take off a hand, _ka sakahet_!” It was
-the first time he had called her that lover’s name in Cree—_sweetheart_!
-Her heart pounded. She bent her head for a moment over her clenched
-hands, and McTaggart—looking down on what he thought was her
-confusion—laid his hand caressingly on her hair. From the door Pierrot
-had heard the word, and now he saw the caress, and he raised a hand as
-if to shut out the sight of a sacrilege.
-
-“_Mon Dieu!_” he breathed.
-
-In the next instant he had given a sharp cry of wonder that mingled with
-a sudden yell of pain from McTaggart. Like a flash Baree had darted
-across the floor and fastened his teeth in the Factor’s leg. They had
-bitten deep before McTaggart freed himself with a powerful kick. With an
-oath he snatched his revolver from its holster. The Willow was ahead of
-him. With a little cry she darted to Baree and caught him in her arms.
-As she looked up at McTaggart, her soft, bare throat was within a few
-inches of Baree’s naked fangs. Her eyes blazed.
-
-“You beat him!” she cried. “He hates you—hates you——”
-
-[Illustration: With an oath McTaggart snatched his revolver from its
-holster. The Willow was ahead of him. With a little cry she darted to
-Baree and caught him in her arms.... Her eyes blazed. “You beat him!”
-she cried. “He hates you—hates you—hates you.”]
-
-“Let him go!” called Pierrot in an agony of fear.
-
-“_Mon Dieu!_ I say let him go or he will tear the life from you!”
-
-“He hates you—hates you—hates you——” the Willow was repeating over and
-over again into McTaggart’s startled face. Then suddenly she turned to
-her father. “No, he will not tear the life from me,” she cried. “See! It
-is Baree. Did I not tell you that? It is Baree! Is it not proof that he
-defended me——”
-
-“From me!” gasped McTaggart, his face darkening.
-
-Pierrot advanced and laid a hand on McTaggart’s arm. He was smiling.
-
-“Let us leave them to fight it out between themselves, m’sieu,” he said.
-“They are two little firebrands, and we are not safe. If she is
-bitten——”
-
-He shrugged his shoulders. A great load had been lifted from them
-suddenly. His voice was soft and persuasive. And now the anger had gone
-out of the Willow’s face. A coquettish uplift of her eyes caught
-McTaggart, and she looked straight at him half smiling, as she spoke to
-her father:
-
-“I will join you soon, _mon père_—you and M’sieu the Factor from Lac
-Bain!”
-
-There were undeniable little devils in her eyes, McTaggart
-thought—little devils laughing full at him as she spoke, setting his
-brain afire and his blood to running wildly. Those eyes—full of dancing
-witches! How he would tame them and play with them—very soon now! He
-followed Pierrot outside. In his exultation he no longer felt the smart
-of Baree’s teeth.
-
-“I will show you my new cariole that I have made for winter, m’sieu,”
-said Pierrot as the door closed behind them.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Half an hour later Nepeese came out of the cabin. She could see that
-Pierrot and the Factor had been talking about something that had not
-been pleasant to her father. His face was strained. She caught in his
-eyes the smoulder of fire which he was trying to smother, as one might
-smother flames under a blanket. McTaggart’s jaws were set, but his eyes
-flared up with pleasure when he saw her. She knew what it was about. The
-Factor from Lac Bain had been demanding his answer of Pierrot, and
-Pierrot had been telling him what she had insisted upon—that he must
-come to her. And he was coming! She turned with a quick beating of the
-heart and hurried down a little path. She heard McTaggart’s footsteps
-behind her, and threw the flash of a smile over her shoulder. But her
-teeth were set tight. The nails of her fingers were cutting into the
-palms of her hands.
-
-Pierrot stood without moving. He watched them as they disappeared into
-the edge of the forest, Nepeese still a few steps ahead of McTaggart.
-Out of his breast rose a sharp breath.
-
-“_Par les mille cornes du diable!_” he swore softly. “Is it
-possible—that she smiles from her heart at that beast? _Non!_ It is
-impossible. And yet—if it is so——”
-
-One of his brown hands tightened convulsively about the handle of the
-knife in his belt, and slowly he began to follow them.
-
-McTaggart did not hurry to overtake Nepeese. She was following the
-narrow path deeper into the forest, and he was glad of that. They would
-be alone—away from Pierrot. He was ten steps behind her, and again the
-Willow smiled at him over her shoulder. Her body moved sinuously and
-swiftly. She was keeping accurate measurement of the distance between
-them—but McTaggart did not guess that this was why she looked back every
-now and then. He was satisfied to let her go on. When she turned from
-the narrow trail into a side path that scarcely bore the mark of travel,
-his heart gave an exultant jump. If she kept on, he would very soon have
-her alone—a good distance from the cabin. The blood ran hot in his face.
-He did not speak to her, through fear that she would stop. Ahead of them
-he heard the rumble of water. It was the creek running through the
-chasm.
-
-Nepeese was making straight for that sound. With a little laugh she
-started to run, and when she stood at the edge of the chasm, McTaggart
-was fully fifty yards behind her. Twenty feet sheer down there was a
-deep pool between the rock walls, a pool so deep that it was like blue
-ink. She turned to face the Factor from Lac Bain. He had never looked
-more like a red beast to her. Until this moment she had been unafraid.
-But now—in an instant—he terrified her. Before she could speak what she
-had planned to say, he was at her side, and had taken her face between
-his two great hands, his coarse fingers twining in the silken strands of
-her thick braids where they fell over her shoulders at the neck.
-
-“_Ka sakahet!_” he cried passionately. “Pierrot said you would have an
-answer for me. But I need no answer now. You are mine! Mine!”
-
-She gave a cry. It was a gasping, broken cry. His arms were about her
-like bands of iron, crushing her slender body, shutting off her breath,
-turning the world almost black for her. She could neither struggle nor
-cry out. She felt the hot passion of his lips on her face, heard his
-voice—and then came a moment’s freedom, and air into her strangled
-lungs. Pierrot was calling! He had come to the fork in the trail, and he
-was calling the Willow’s name!
-
-McTaggart’s hot hand came over her mouth.
-
-“Don’t answer,” she heard him say.
-
-Strength—anger—hatred flared up in her, and fiercely she struck the hand
-down. Something in her wonderful eyes held McTaggart. They blazed into
-his very soul.
-
-“_Bête noir!_” she panted at him, freeing herself from the last touch of
-his hands. “Beast—black beast!” Her voice trembled, and her face flamed.
-“See—I came to show you my pool—and tell you what you wanted to hear—and
-you—you—have crushed me like a beast—like a great rock——See! down
-there—it is my pool!”
-
-She had not planned it like this. She had intended to be smiling, even
-laughing, in this moment. But McTaggart had spoiled them—her carefully
-made plans! And yet, as she pointed, the Factor from Lac Bain looked for
-an instant over the edge of the chasm. And then she laughed—laughed as
-she gave him a sudden shove from behind.
-
-“And that is my answer, M’sieu le Facteur from Lac Bain!” she cried
-tauntingly as he plunged headlong into the deep pool between the rock
-walls.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV
-
-
-From the edge of the open Pierrot saw what had happened, and he gave a
-great gasp. He drew back among the balsams. This was not a moment for
-him to show himself. While his heart drummed like a hammer, his face was
-filled with joy.
-
-On her hands and knees the Willow was peering over the edge. Bush
-McTaggart had disappeared. He had gone down like the great clod he was;
-the water of her pool had closed over him with a dull splash that was
-like a chuckle of triumph. He appeared now, beating out with his arms
-and legs to keep himself afloat, while the Willow’s voice came to him in
-taunting cries.
-
-“_Bête noir!_ _Bête noir!_ Beast! Beast——”
-
-She flung small sticks and tufts of earth down at him fiercely; and
-McTaggart, looking up as he gained his equilibrium, saw her leaning so
-far over that she seemed about to fall. Her long braids hung down into
-the chasm, gleaming in the sun; her eyes were laughing while her lips
-taunted him; he could see the flash of her white teeth.
-
-“Beast! Beast!”
-
-He began swimming, still looking up at her. It was a hundred yards down
-the slow-going current to the beach of shale where he could climb out,
-and a half of that distance she followed him, laughing and taunting him,
-and flinging down sticks and pebbles. He noted that none of the sticks
-or stones was large enough to hurt him. When at last his feet touched
-bottom, she was gone.
-
-Swiftly Nepeese ran back over the trail, and almost into Pierrot’s arms.
-She was panting and laughing when for a moment she stopped.
-
-“I have given him the answer, Nootawe! He is in the pool!”
-
-Into the balsams she disappeared like a bird. Pierrot made no effort to
-stop her or to follow.
-
-“_Tonnerre de Dieu!_” he chuckled—and cut straight across for the other
-trail.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Nepeese was out of breath when she reached the cabin. Baree, fastened to
-a table-leg by a _babiche_ thong, heard her pause for a moment at the
-door. Then she entered and came straight to him. During the half-hour of
-her absence Baree had scarcely moved. That half-hour, and the few
-minutes that had preceded it, had made tremendous impressions upon him.
-Nature, heredity, and instinct were at work, clashing and readjusting,
-impinging on him a new intelligence—the beginning of a new
-understanding. A swift and savage impulse had made him leap at Bush
-McTaggart when the Factor put his hand on the Willow’s head. It was not
-reason. It was a hearkening back of the dog to that day long ago when
-Kazan, his father, had killed the man-brute in the tent, the man-brute
-who had dared to attempt the sacrilege of Thorpe’s wife, whom Kazan
-worshipped. It was the dog—and woman.
-
-And here again it was the woman. She had called to the great hidden
-passion that was in Baree and that had come to him from Kazan. Of all
-the living things in the world, he knew that he must not hurt this
-creature that appeared to him through the door. He trembled as she knelt
-before him again, and up through the years came the wild and glorious
-surge of Kazan’s blood, overwhelming the wolf, submerging the savagery
-of his birth—and with his head flat on the floor he whined softly, and
-_wagged his tail_.
-
-Nepeese gave a cry of joy.
-
-“Baree!” she whispered, taking his head in her hands. “Baree!”
-
-Her touch thrilled him. It sent little throbs through his body, a
-tremulous quivering which she could feel and which deepened the glow in
-her eyes. Gently her hand stroked his head and his back. It seemed to
-Nepeese that he did not breathe. Under the caress of her hand his eyes
-closed. In another moment she was talking to him, and at the sound of
-her voice his eyes shot open.
-
-“He will come here—that beast—and he will kill us,” she was saying. “He
-will kill you because you bit him, Baree. Ugh, I wish you were bigger,
-and stronger, so that you could take off his head for me!”
-
-She was untying the _babiche_ from about the table-leg, and under her
-breath she laughed. She was not frightened. It was a tremendous
-adventure—and she throbbed with exultation at the thought of having
-beaten the man-beast in her own way. She could see him in the pool
-struggling and beating about like a great fish. He was just about
-crawling out of the chasm now—and she laughed again as she caught Baree
-up under her arm.
-
-“Oh—_oopi-nao_—but you are heavy!” she gasped. “And yet I must carry
-you—because I am going to run!”
-
-She hurried outside. Pierrot had not come, and she darted swiftly into
-the balsams back of the cabin, with Baree hung in the crook of her arm,
-like a sack filled at both ends and tied in the middle. He felt like
-that, too. But he still had no inclination to wriggle himself free.
-Nepeese ran with him until her arm ached. Then she stopped and put him
-down on his feet, holding to the end of the caribou-skin thong that was
-tied about his neck. She was prepared for any lunge he might make to
-escape. She expected that he would make an attempt, and for a few
-moments she watched him closely, while Baree, with his feet on earth
-once more, looked about him. And then the Willow spoke to him softly.
-
-“You are not going to run away, Baree. _Non_, you are going to stay with
-me, and we will kill that man-beast if he dares do to me again what he
-did back there.” She flung back the loose hair from about her flushed
-face, and for a moment she forgot Baree as she thought of that
-half-minute at the edge of the chasm. He was looking straight up at her
-when her glance fell on him again. “_Non_, you are not going to run
-away—you are going to follow me,” she whispered. “Come.”
-
-The _babiche_ string tightened about Baree’s neck as she urged him to
-follow. It was like another rabbit-snare, and he braced his forefeet and
-bared his fangs just a little. The Willow did not pull. Fearlessly she
-put her hand on his head again. From the direction of the cabin came a
-shout, and at the sound of it she took Baree up under her arm once more.
-
-“_Bête noir—bête noir!_” she called back tauntingly, but only loud
-enough to be heard a few yards away. “Go back to Lac Bain—_owases_—you
-wild beast!”
-
-Nepeese began to make her way swiftly through the forest. It grew deeper
-and darker, and there were no trails. Three times in the next half-hour
-she stopped to put Baree down and rest her arm. Each time she pleaded
-with him coaxingly to follow her. The second and third times Baree
-wriggled and wagged his tail, but beyond those demonstrations of his
-satisfaction at the turn his affairs had taken he would not go. When the
-string tightened around his neck, he braced himself; once he
-growled—again he snapped viciously at the _babiche_. So Nepeese
-continued to carry him.
-
-They came at last into an open. It was a tiny meadow in the heart of the
-forest, not more than three or four times as big as the cabin; underfoot
-the grass was soft and green, and thick with flowers. Straight through
-the heart of this little oasis trickled a streamlet across which the
-Willow jumped with Baree under her arm, and on the edge of the rill was
-a small wigwam made of freshly cut spruce- and balsam-boughs. Into her
-diminutive _mekewap_ the Willow thrust her head to see that things were
-as she had left them yesterday. Then, with a long breath of relief, she
-put down her four-legged burden and fastened the end of the _babiche_ to
-one of the cut spruce-limbs.
-
-Baree burrowed himself back into the wall of the wigwam, and with head
-alert—and eyes wide open—watched attentively what happened after this.
-Not a movement of the Willow escaped him. She was radiant—and happy. Her
-laugh, sweet and wild as a bird’s trill, set Baree’s heart throbbing
-with a desire to jump about with her among the flowers.
-
-For a time Nepeese seemed to forget Baree. Her wild blood raced with the
-joy of her triumph over the Factor from Lac Bain. She saw him again,
-floundering about in the pool—pictured him at the cabin now, soaked and
-angry, demanding of _mon père_ where she had gone. And _mon père_, with
-a shrug of his shoulders, was telling him that he didn’t know—that
-probably she had run off into the forest. It did not enter into her head
-that in tricking Bush McTaggart in that way she had played with
-dynamite. She did not foresee the peril that in an instant would have
-stamped the wild flush from her face and curdled the blood in her
-veins—did not guess that McTaggart had become for her a deadlier menace
-than ever.
-
-Nepeese knew that he was angry. But what had she to fear? _Mon père_
-would be angry, too, if she told him what had happened at the edge of
-the chasm. But she would not tell him. He might kill the beast from Lac
-Bain. A factor was great. But Pierrot, her father, was greater. It was
-an unlimited faith in her, born of her mother. Perhaps even now Pierrot
-was sending him back to Lac Bain, telling him that his business was
-there. But she would not return to the cabin to see. She would wait
-here. _Mon père_ would understand—and he knew where to find her when the
-beast was gone. But it would have been such fun to throw sticks at him
-as he went!
-
-After a little Nepeese returned to Baree. She brought him water and gave
-him a piece of raw fish. For hours they were alone, and with each hour
-there grew stronger in Baree the desire to follow the girl in every
-movement she made, to crawl close to her when she sat down, to feel the
-touch of her dress, of her hand—and hear her voice. But he did not show
-this desire. He was still a little savage of the forests—a four-footed
-barbarian born half of a wolf and half of a dog; and he lay still. With
-Umisk he would have played. With Oohoomisew he would have fought. At
-Bush McTaggart he would have bared his fangs, and buried them deep when
-the chance came. But the girl was different. Like the Kazan of old, he
-had begun to worship. If the Willow had freed Baree, he would not have
-run away. If she had left him, he would possibly have followed her—at a
-distance. His eyes were never away from her. He watched her build a
-small fire and cook a piece of the fish. He watched her eat her dinner.
-It was quite late in the afternoon when she came and sat down close to
-him, with her lap full of flowers which she twined in the long, shining
-braids of her hair. Then, playfully, she began beating Baree with the
-end of one of these braids. He shrank under the soft blows, and with
-that low, birdlike laughter in her throat, Nepeese drew his head into
-her lap where the scatter of flowers lay. She talked to him. Her hand
-stroked his head. Then it remained still, so near that he wanted to
-thrust out his warm red tongue and caress it. He breathed in the
-flower-scented perfume of it—and lay as if dead. It was a glorious
-moment. Nepeese, looking down on him, could not see that he was
-breathing.
-
-There came an interruption. It was the snapping of a dry stick. Through
-the forest Pierrot had come with the stealth of a cat, and when they
-looked up, he stood at the edge of the open. Baree knew that it was not
-Bush McTaggart. But it was a man-beast! Instantly his body stiffened
-under the Willow’s hand. He drew back slowly and cautiously from her
-lap, and as Pierrot advanced, Baree snarled. The next instant Nepeese
-had risen and had run to Pierrot. The look in her father’s face alarmed
-her.
-
-“What has happened, _mon père_?” she cried.
-
-Pierrot shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Nothing, _ma Nepeese_—except that you have roused a thousand devils in
-the heart of the Factor from Lac Bain, and that——”
-
-He stopped as he saw Baree, and pointed at him.
-
-“Last night when M’sieu the Factor caught him in a snare, he bit
-M’sieu’s hand. M’sieu’s hand is swollen twice its size, and I can see
-his blood turning black. It is _pechipoo_.”
-
-“_Pechipoo!_” gasped Nepeese.
-
-She looked into Pierrot’s eyes. They were dark, and filled with a
-sinister gleam—a flash of exultation, she thought.
-
-“Yes, it is the blood-poison,” said Pierrot. A gleam of cunning shot
-into his eyes as he looked over his shoulder, and nodded. “I have hidden
-the medicine—and told him there is no time to lose in getting back to
-Lac Bain. And he is afraid—that devil! He is waiting. With that
-blackening hand, he is afraid to start back alone—and so I go with him.
-And—listen, _ma Nepeese_. We will be away by sundown, and there is
-something you must know before I go.”
-
-Baree saw them there, close together in the shadows thrown by the tall
-spruce trees. He heard the low murmur of their voices—chiefly of
-Pierrot’s, and at last he saw Nepeese put her two arms up around the
-man-beast’s neck, and then Pierrot went away again into the forest. He
-thought that the Willow would never turn her face toward him after that.
-For a long time she stood looking in the direction which Pierrot had
-taken. And when after a time she turned and came back to Baree, she did
-not look like the Nepeese who had been twining flowers in her hair. The
-laughter was gone from her face and eyes. She knelt down beside him and
-with sudden fierceness she cried:
-
-“It is _pechipoo_, Baree! It was you—you—who put the poison in his
-blood. And I hope he dies! For I am afraid—afraid!”
-
-She shivered.
-
-Perhaps it was in this moment that the Great Spirit of things meant
-Baree to understand—that at last it was given him to comprehend that his
-day had dawned, that the rising and the setting of his sun no longer
-existed in the sky but in this girl whose hand rested on his head. He
-whined softly, and inch by inch he dragged himself nearer to her until
-again his head rested in the hollow of her lap.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV
-
-
-For a long time after Pierrot left them the Willow did not move from
-where she had seated herself beside Baree. It was at last the deepening
-shadows and a near rumble in the sky that roused her from the fear of
-the things Pierrot had told her. When she looked up, black clouds were
-massing slowly over the open space above the spruce-tops. Darkness was
-falling. In the whisper of the wind and the dead stillness of the
-thickening gloom there was the sullen brewing of storm. To-night there
-would be no glorious sunset. There would be no twilight hour in which to
-follow the trail, no moon, no stars—and unless Pierrot and the Factor
-were already on their way, they would not start in the face of the pitch
-blackness that would soon shroud the land.
-
-Nepeese shivered and rose to her feet. For the first time Baree got up,
-and he stood close at her side. Above them a lightning-flash cut the
-clouds like a knife of fire, followed in an instant by a terrific crash
-of thunder. Baree shrank back as if struck a blow. He would have slunk
-into the shelter of the brush wall of the wigwam, but there was
-something about the Willow as he looked at her which gave him
-confidence. The thunder crashed again. But he retreated no farther. His
-eyes were fixed on Nepeese.
-
-She stood straight and slim in that gathering gloom riven by the
-lightning, her beautiful head thrown back, her lips parted, and her eyes
-glowing with an almost eager anticipation—a sculptured goddess welcoming
-with bated breath the onrushing forces of the heavens. Perhaps it was
-because she was born on a night of storm. Many times Pierrot and the
-dead princess mother had told her that—how on the night she had come
-into the world the crash of thunder and the flare of lightning had made
-the hours an inferno, how the streams had burst over their banks and the
-stems of ten thousand forest trees had snapped in its fury—and the beat
-of the deluge on their cabin roof had drowned the sound of her mother’s
-pain, and of her own first babyish cries.
-
-On that night, it may be, the Spirit of Storm was born in Nepeese. She
-loved to face it, as she was facing it now. It made her forget all
-things but the splendid might of nature; her half-wild soul thrilled to
-the crash and fire of it; often she had reached up her bare arms and
-laughed with joy as the deluge burst about her. Even now she might have
-stood there in the little open until the rain fell, if a whine from
-Baree had not turned her. As the first big drops struck with the dull
-thud of leaden bullets about them, she went with him into the balsam
-shelter.
-
-Once before Baree had passed through a night of terrible storm—the night
-he had hidden himself under a root and saw the tree riven by lightning;
-but now he had company, and the warmth and soft pressure of the Willow’s
-hand on his head and neck filled him with a strange courage. He growled
-softly at the crashing thunder. He wanted to snap at the
-lightning-flashes. Under her hand Nepeese felt the stiffening of his
-body, and in a moment of uncanny stillness she heard the sharp, uneasy
-click of his teeth. Then the rain fell.
-
-It was not like other rains Baree had known. It was an inundation
-sweeping down out of the blackness of the skies. Within five minutes the
-interior of the balsam shelter was a shower-bath—half an hour of that
-torrential downpour, and Nepeese was soaked to the skin. The water ran
-in little rivulets down her back and breast; it trickled in tiny streams
-from her drenched braids and dropped from her long lashes, and the
-blanket under her was wet as a mop. To Baree it was almost as bad as his
-near-drowning in the stream after his fight with Papayuchisew, and he
-snuggled closer and closer under the sheltering arm of the Willow. It
-seemed an interminable time before the thunder rolled far to the east,
-and the lightning died away into distant and intermittent flashings.
-Even after that the rain fell for another hour. Then it stopped as
-suddenly as it had begun.
-
-With a laughing gasp Nepeese rose to her feet. The water gurgled in her
-moccasins as she walked out into the open. She paid no attention to
-Baree—and he followed her. Across the open in the treetops the last of
-the storm-clouds were drifting away. A star shone—then another; and the
-Willow stood watching them as they appeared until there were so many she
-could not count. It was no longer black. A wonderful starlight flooded
-the open after the inky gloom of the storm.
-
-Nepeese looked down and saw Baree. He was standing clear and unleashed,
-with freedom on all sides of him. Yet he did not run. He was waiting,
-wet as a water-rat, with his eyes on her expectantly. Nepeese made a
-movement toward him, and hesitated.
-
-“No, you will not run away, Baree. I will leave you free. And now we
-must have a fire!”
-
-A fire! Any one but Pierrot might have said that she was crazy. Not a
-stem or twig in the forest that was not dripping! They could hear the
-trickle of running water all about them.
-
-“A fire,” she said again. “Let us hunt for the _wuskwi_, Baree.”
-
-With her wet clothes clinging to her tightly, she was like a slim shadow
-as she crossed the soggy open and buried herself among the forest trees.
-Baree still followed. She went straight to a birch-tree that she had
-located that day and began tearing off the loose bark. An armful of this
-bark she carried close to the wigwam, and on it she heaped load after
-load of wet wood until she had a great pile. From a bottle in the wigwam
-she secured a dry match, and at the first touch of its tiny flame the
-birch-bark flared up like paper soaked in oil. Half an hour later the
-Willow’s fire—if there had been no forest walls to hide it—could have
-been seen at the cabin a mile away. Not until it was blazing a dozen
-feet into the air did she cease putting wood on it. Then she drove
-sticks into the soft ground and over these sticks stretched the blanket
-out to dry. After that she began to undress.
-
-The rain had cooled the air, and the tonic of it—laden with the breath
-of the balsam and spruce—set the Willow’s blood dancing in her veins.
-She forgot the discomfort of the deluge. She forgot the Factor from Lac
-Bain, and what Pierrot had told her. After all, she was a bird of the
-forests, wild with the sweet wildness of the flowers under her bare
-feet—and in the glory of these wonderful hours that had followed the
-storm she could see nothing and think of nothing that might harm her.
-She danced about Baree, tossing her sea of hair about her, her naked
-body shimmering in and out of it, her eyes aglow, her lips laughing in
-her unreasoning happiness—the happiness of being alive, of drinking into
-her lungs the perfumed air of the forest, of seeing the stars and the
-wonderful sky above her. She stopped before Baree, and cried laughingly
-at him, holding out her arms:
-
-“_Ahe_, Baree—if you could only throw off your skin as easily as I have
-thrown off my clothes!”
-
-She drew a deep breath, and her eyes shone with a sudden inspiration.
-Slowly her mouth formed into a round red O, and leaning still nearer to
-Baree, she whispered:
-
-“It will be deep—and sweet to-night. _Ninga_—yes—we will go!”
-
-She called to him softly as she slipped on her wet moccasins and
-followed the creek into the forest. A hundred yards from the open she
-came to the edge of a pool. It was deep and full to-night, three times
-as big as it had been before the storm. She could hear the gurgle and
-inrush of water. On its ruffled surface the stars shone. For a moment or
-two she stood poised on a rock with the cool depths half a dozen feet
-below her. Then she flung back her hair and shot like a slim white arrow
-through the starlight.
-
-Baree saw her go. He heard the plunge of her body. For half an hour he
-lay flat and still, close to the edge of the pool, and watched her.
-Sometimes she was just under him, floating silently, her hair forming a
-cloud darker than the water about her; again she was cutting over the
-surface almost as swiftly as the otters he had seen—and then with a
-sudden plunge she would disappear, and Baree’s heart would quicken its
-pulse as he waited for her. Once she was gone a long time. He whined. He
-knew she was not like the beaver and the otter, and he was filled with
-an immense relief when she came up.
-
-So their first night passed—storm, the cool, deep pool, the big fire;
-and later, when the Willow’s clothes and the blanket had dried, a few
-hours’ sleep. At dawn they returned to the cabin. It was a cautious
-approach. There was no smoke coming from the chimney. The door was
-closed. Pierrot and Bush McTaggart were gone.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI
-
-
-It was the beginning of August—the Flying-up Moon—when Pierrot returned
-from Lac Bain, and in three days more it would be the Willow’s
-seventeenth birthday. He brought back with him many things for
-Nepeese—ribbons for her hair, real shoes, which she wore at times like
-the two Englishwomen at Nelson House, and chief glory of all, some
-wonderful red cloth for a dress. In the three winters she had spent at
-the Mission these women had made much of Nepeese. They had taught her to
-sew as well as to spell and read and pray, and at times there came to
-the Willow a compelling desire to do as they did.
-
-So for three days Nepeese worked hard on her new dress and on her
-birthday she stood before Pierrot in a fashion that took his breath
-away. She had piled her hair in great glowing masses and coils on the
-crown of her head, as Yvonne, the younger of the Englishwomen, had
-taught her, and in the rich jet of it had half buried a vivid sprig of
-the crimson fire-flower. Under this, and the glow in her eyes, and the
-red flush of her lips and cheeks came the wonderful red dress, fitted to
-the slim and sinuous beauty of her form—as the style had been two
-winters ago at Nelson House. And under the dress, which reached just
-below the knees—Nepeese had quite forgotten the proper length, or else
-her material had run out—came the _coup de maître_ of her toilet, real
-stockings and the wonderful shoes with high heels! She was a vision
-before which the gods of the forests might have felt their hearts stop
-beating. Pierrot turned her round and round without a word, but smiling;
-but when she left him, followed by Baree, and limping a little in the
-tightness of her shoes, the smile faded from his face, leaving it cold
-and staring.
-
-“_Mon Dieu_,” he whispered to himself in French, with a thought that was
-like a sharp stab at his heart, “she is not of her mother’s blood—_non_.
-It is French. She is—yes—like an angel.”
-
-There was a change in Pierrot. During the three days of her dressmaking
-Nepeese had been quite too excited to notice this change, and Pierrot
-had tried to keep it from her. He had been away ten days on the trip to
-Lac Bain, and he brought back to Nepeese the joyous news that M’sieu
-McTaggart was very sick with _pechipoo_—the blood-poison—news that made
-the Willow clap her hands and laugh happily. But he knew that the Factor
-would get well, and that he would come again to their cabin on the Gray
-Loon. And when next time he came——
-
-It was when he was thinking of this that his face grew cold and hard,
-and his eyes burned. And he was thinking of it on this her birthday,
-even as her laughter floated to him like a song. _Dieu_, in spite of her
-seventeen years, she was nothing but a child—a baby! She could not guess
-his horrible visions. And the dread of awakening her for all time from
-that beautiful childhood kept him from telling her the whole truth so
-that she might have understood fully and completely. _Non_, it should
-not be that. His soul beat with a great and gentle love. He, Pierrot Du
-Quesne, would do the watching. And she should laugh and sing and
-play—and have no share in the black forebodings that had come to spoil
-his life.
-
-On this day there came up from the south MacDonald, the government
-map-maker. He was gray and grizzled, with a great, free laugh and a
-clean heart. Two days he remained with Pierrot. He told Nepeese of his
-daughters at home, of their mother, whom he worshipped more than
-anything else on earth—and before he went on in his quest of the last
-timber-line of Banksian pine, he took pictures of the Willow as he had
-first seen her on her birthday: her hair piled in glossy coils and
-masses, her red dress, the high-heeled shoes. He carried the negatives
-on with him, promising Pierrot that he would get a picture back in some
-way. Thus fate works in its strange and apparently innocent ways as it
-spins its webs of tragedy.
-
- * * * * *
-
-For many weeks after this there followed tranquil days on the Gray Loon.
-They were wonderful days for Baree. At first he was suspicious of
-Pierrot. After a little he tolerated him, and at last accepted him as a
-part of the cabin—and Nepeese. It was the Willow whose shadow he became.
-Pierrot noted the attachment with the deepest satisfaction.
-
-“Ah, in a few months more, if he should leap at the throat of M’sieu the
-Factor,” he said to himself one day.
-
-In September, when he was six months old, Baree was almost as large as
-Gray Wolf—big-boned, long-fanged, with a deep chest, and jaws that could
-already crack a bone as if it were a stick. He was with Nepeese whenever
-and wherever she moved. They swam together in the two pools—the pool in
-the forest and the pool between the chasm walls. At first it alarmed
-Baree to see Nepeese dive from the rock wall over which she had pushed
-McTaggart, but at the end of a month she had taught him to plunge after
-her through that twenty feet of space.
-
-It was late in August when Baree saw the first of his kind outside of
-Kazan and Gray Wolf. During the summer Pierrot allowed his dogs to run
-at large on a small island in the centre of a lake two or three miles
-away, and twice a week he netted fish for them. On one of these trips
-Nepeese accompanied him and took Baree with her. Pierrot carried his
-long caribou-gut whip. He expected a fight. But there was none. Baree
-joined the pack in their rush for fish, and ate with them. This pleased
-Pierrot more than ever.
-
-“He will make a great sledge-dog,” he chuckled. “It is best to leave him
-for a week with the pack, _ma Nepeese_.”
-
-Reluctantly Nepeese gave her consent. While the dogs were still at their
-fish, they started homeward. Their canoe had stolen well out before
-Baree discovered the trick they had played on him. Instantly he leaped
-into the water and swam after them—and the Willow helped him into the
-canoe.
-
-Early in September a passing Indian brought Pierrot word of Bush
-McTaggart. The Factor had been very sick. He had almost died from the
-blood-poison, but he was well now. With the first exhilarating tang of
-autumn in the air a new dread oppressed Pierrot. But at present he said
-nothing of what was in his mind to Nepeese. The Willow had almost
-forgotten the Factor from Lac Bain, for the glory and thrill of
-wilderness autumn was in her blood. She went on long trips with Pierrot,
-helping him to blaze out the new trap-lines that would be used when the
-first snows came, and on these journeys she was always accompanied by
-Baree.
-
-Most of Nepeese’s spare hours she spent in training him for the sledge.
-She began with a _babiche_ string and a stick. It was a whole day before
-she could induce Baree to drag this stick without turning at every other
-step to snap and growl at it. Then she fastened another length of
-_babiche_ to him, and made him drag two sticks. Thus little by little
-she trained him to the sledge-harness, until at the end of a fortnight
-he was tugging heroically at anything she had a mind to fasten him to.
-Pierrot brought home two of the dogs from the island, and Baree was put
-into training with these, and helped to drag the empty sledge. Nepeese
-was delighted. On the day the first light snow fell she clapped her
-hands and cried to Pierrot:
-
-“By mid-winter I will have him the finest dog in the pack, _mon père_!”
-
-This was the time for Pierrot to say what was in his mind. He smiled.
-_Diantre_—would not that beast the Factor fall into the very devil of a
-rage when he found how he had been cheated! And yet——
-
-He tried to make his voice quiet and commonplace.
-
-“I am going to send you down to the school at Nelson House again this
-winter, _ma chérie_,” he said. “Baree will help draw you down on the
-first good snow.”
-
-The Willow was tying a knot in Baree’s _babiche_, and she rose slowly to
-her feet and looked at Pierrot. Her eyes were big and dark and steady.
-
-“I am not going, _mon père_!”
-
-[Illustration: The Willow rose slowly to her feet and looked at Pierrot.
-Her eyes were big and dark and steady. “I am not going, _mon père_!”]
-
-It was the first time Nepeese had ever said that to Pierrot—in just that
-way. It thrilled him. And he could scarcely face the look in her eyes.
-He was not good at bluffing. She saw what was in his face; it seemed to
-him that she was reading what was in his mind, and that she grew a
-little taller as she stood there. Certainly her breath came quicker, and
-he could see the throb of her breast. Nepeese did not wait for him to
-gather speech.
-
-“I am not going!” she repeated with even greater finality, and bent
-again over Baree.
-
-With a shrug of his shoulders Pierrot watched her. After all, was he not
-glad? Would his heart not have turned sick if she had been happy at the
-thought of leaving him? He moved to her side and with great gentleness
-laid a hand on her glossy head. Up from under it the Willow smiled at
-him. Between them they heard the click of Baree’s jaws as he rested his
-muzzle on the Willow’s arm. For the first time in weeks the world seemed
-suddenly filled with sunshine for Pierrot. When he went back to the
-cabin he held his head higher. Nepeese would not leave him! He laughed
-softly. He rubbed his hands together. His fear of the Factor from Lac
-Bain was gone. From the cabin door he looked back at Nepeese and Baree.
-
-“The Saints be blessed!” he murmured. “Now—now—it is Pierrot Du Quesne
-who knows what to do!”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII
-
-
-Back to Lac Bain, late in September, came MacDonald the map-maker. For
-ten days Gregson, the investigating agent, had been Bush McTaggart’s
-guest at the post, and twice in that time it had come into Marie’s mind
-to creep upon him while he slept and kill him. The Factor himself paid
-little attention to her now, a fact which would have made her happy if
-it had not been for Gregson. He was enraptured with the wild, sinuous
-beauty of the Cree girl, and McTaggart, without jealousy, encouraged
-him. He was tired of Marie.
-
-McTaggart told Gregson this. He wanted to get rid of her, and if
-he—Gregson—could possibly take her on with him it would be a great
-favour. He explained why. A little later, when the deep snows came, he
-was going to bring the daughter of Pierrot Du Quesne to the Post. In the
-rottenness of their brotherhood he told of his visit, of the manner of
-his reception, and of the incident at the chasm. In spite of all this,
-he assured Gregson. Pierrot’s girl would soon be at Lac Bain.
-
-It was at this time that MacDonald came. He remained only one night, and
-without knowing that he was adding fuel to a fire already dangerously
-blazing, he gave the photograph he had taken of Nepeese to the Factor.
-It was a splendid picture.
-
-“If you can get it down to that girl some day I’ll be mightily obliged,”
-he said to McTaggart. “I promised her one. Her father’s name is Du
-Quesne—Pierrot Du Quesne. You probably know them. And the girl——”
-
-His blood warmed as he described to McTaggart how beautiful she was that
-day in her red dress, which had taken black in the photograph. He did
-not guess how near the boiling point McTaggart’s blood was.
-
-The next day MacDonald started for Norway House. McTaggart did not show
-Gregson the picture. He kept it to himself, and at night, under the glow
-of his lamp, he looked at it with thoughts that filled him with a
-growing resolution. There was but one way. The scheme had been in his
-mind for weeks—and the picture determined him. He dared not whisper his
-secret even to Gregson. But it was the one way. It would give him
-Nepeese. Only—he must wait for the deep snows, the mid-winter snows.
-They buried their tragedies deepest.
-
-McTaggart was glad when Gregson followed the map-maker to Norway House.
-Out of courtesy he accompanied him a day’s journey on his way. When he
-returned to the Post, Marie was gone. He was glad. He sent off a runner
-with a load of presents for her people, and the message: “Don’t beat
-her. Keep her. She is free.”
-
-Along with the bustle and stir of the beginning of the trapping season
-McTaggart began to prepare his house for the coming of Nepeese. He knew
-what she liked in the way of cleanliness and a few other things. He had
-the log walls painted white with the lead and oil that were intended for
-his York boats. Certain partitions were torn down, and new ones were
-built; the Indian wife of his chief runner made curtains for the
-windows, and he confiscated a small phonograph that should have gone on
-to Lac la Biche. He had no doubts, and he counted the days as they
-passed.
-
-Down on the Gray Loon Pierrot and Nepeese were busy at many things, so
-busy that at times Pierrot’s fears of the Factor at Lac Bain were
-forgotten, and they went out of the Willow’s mind entirely. It was the
-Red Moon, and it thrilled with the anticipation and excitement of the
-winter hunt. Nepeese carefully dipped a hundred traps in boiling
-caribou-fat mixed with beaver-grease, while Pierrot made fresh deadfalls
-ready for setting on his trails. When he was gone more than a day from
-the cabin, she was always with him.
-
-But at the cabin there was much to do, for Pierrot, like all his
-Northern brotherhood, did not begin to prepare until the keen tang of
-autumn was in the air. There were snowshoes to be rewebbed with new
-_babiche_, there was wood to be cut in readiness for the winter storms;
-the cabin had to be banked, a new harness made, skinning-knives
-sharpened and winter moccasins to be manufactured—a hundred and one
-affairs to be attended to, even to the repairing of the meat rack at the
-back of the cabin, where, from the beginning of cold weather until the
-end, would hang the haunches of deer, caribou, and moose for the family
-larder and, when fish were scarce, the dogs’ rations.
-
-In the bustle of all this Nepeese was compelled to give less attention
-to Baree than during the preceding weeks. They did not play so much;
-they no longer swam, for with the mornings there was deep frost on the
-ground, and the water was turning icy cold: they no longer wandered deep
-in the forest after flowers and berries. For hours at a time Baree would
-now lie at the Willow’s feet, watching her slender fingers as they
-weaved swiftly in and out with her snowshoe _babiche_; and now and then
-Nepeese would pause to lean over and put her hand on his head, and talk
-to him for a moment—sometimes in her soft Cree, sometimes in English or
-her father’s French.
-
-It was the Willow’s voice which Baree had learned to understand, and the
-movement of her lips, her gesture, the poise of her body, the changing
-moods which brought shadow or sunlight into her face. He knew what it
-meant when she smiled; he shook himself, and often jumped about her in
-sympathetic rejoicing, when she laughed; her happiness was a part of
-him, a stern word from her was worse than a blow. Twice Pierrot had
-struck him, and twice Baree had sprang back and faced him with bared
-fangs and an angry snarl, the crest along his back standing up like a
-brush. Had one of the other dogs done this, Pierrot would have half
-killed him. It would have been mutiny, and the man must be master. But
-Baree was always safe. A touch of the Willow’s hand, a word from her
-lips, and the crest slowly settled and the snarl went out of his throat.
-
-Pierrot was not at all displeased.
-
-“_Dieu._ I will never go so far as to try and whip that out of him,” he
-told himself. “He is a barbarian—a wild beast—and her slave. For her he
-would kill!”
-
-So it came, through Pierrot himself—and without telling his reason for
-it—that Baree did not become a sledge-dog. He was allowed his freedom,
-and was never tied, like the others. Nepeese was glad, but did not guess
-the thought that was in Pierrot’s mind. To himself Pierrot chuckled. She
-would never know why he kept Baree always suspicious of him, even to the
-point of hating him. It required considerable skill and cunning on his
-part. With himself he reasoned: “If I make him hate me, he will hate all
-men. Mey-oo! That is good.”
-
-So he looked into the future—for Nepeese.
-
-Now the tonic-filled days and cold, frosty nights of the Red Moon
-brought about the big change in Baree. It was inevitable. Pierrot knew
-that it would come, and the first night that Baree settled back on his
-haunches and howled up at the Red Moon, Pierrot prepared Nepeese for it.
-
-“He is a wild dog, _Ma Nepeese_,” he said to her. “He is half wolf, and
-the Call will come to him strong. He will go into the forests. He will
-disappear at times. But we must not fasten him. He will come back. _Ka_,
-he will come back!” And he rubbed his hands in the moon-glow until his
-knuckles cracked.
-
-The Call came to Baree like a thief entering slowly and cautiously into
-a forbidden place. He did not understand it at first. It made him
-nervous and uneasy, so restless that Nepeese frequently heard him whine
-softly in his sleep. He was waiting for something. What was it? Pierrot
-knew, and smiled in his inscrutable way.
-
-And then it came. It was night, a glorious night filled with moon and
-stars, under which the earth was whitening with a film of frost, when
-they heard the first hunt-call of the wolves. Now and then during the
-summer there had come the lone wolf-howl, but this was the tonguing of
-the pack; and as it floated through the vast silence and mystery of the
-night, a song of savagery that had come with each Red Moon down through
-unending ages, Pierrot knew that at last had come that for which Baree
-had been waiting.
-
-In an instant Baree had sensed it. His muscles grew taut as pieces of
-stretched rope as he stood up in the moonlight, facing the direction
-from which floated the mystery and thrill of the sound. They could hear
-him whining softly; and Pierrot, bending down so that he caught the
-light of the night properly, could see him trembling.
-
-“It is _Mee-Koo_!” he said in a whisper to Nepeese.
-
-That was it, the call of the blood that was running swift in Baree’s
-veins—not alone the call of his species, but the call of Kazan and Gray
-Wolf and of his forbears for generations unnumbered. It was the voice of
-his people. So Pierrot had whispered, and he was right. In the golden
-night the Willow was waiting, for it was she who had gambled most, and
-it was she who must lose or win. She uttered no sound, replied not to
-the low voice of Pierrot, but held her breath and watched Baree as he
-slowly faded away, step by step, in the shadows. In a few moments more
-he was gone. It was then that she stood straight, and flung back her
-head, with eyes that glowed in rivalry with the stars.
-
-“Baree!” she called. “Baree! Baree! Baree!”
-
-He must have been near the edge of the forest, for she had drawn a slow,
-waiting breath or two before he was back at her side. But he had come,
-straight as an arrow, and he whined up into her face. Nepeese put her
-hands to his head.
-
-“You are right, _mon père_,” she said. “He will go to the wolves, but he
-will come back. He will never leave me for long.” With one hand still on
-Baree’s head, she pointed with the other into the pitlike blackness of
-the forest. “Go to them, Baree!” she whispered. “But you must come back.
-You must. _Cheamao!_”
-
-With Pierrot she went into the cabin; the door closed behind them, and
-Baree was alone. There was a long silence. In it he could hear the soft
-night sounds: the clinking of the chains to which the dogs were
-fastened, the restless movement of their bodies, the throbbing whir of a
-pair of wings, the breath of the night itself. For to him this night,
-even in its stillness, seemed alive. Again he went into it, and close to
-the forest once more he stopped to listen. The wind had turned, and on
-it rode the wailing, blood-thrilling cry of the pack. Far off to the
-west a lone wolf turned his muzzle to the sky and answered that
-gathering-call of his clan; and then out of the east came a voice, so
-far beyond the cabin that it was like an echo dying away in the vastness
-of the night.
-
-A choking note gathered in Baree’s throat. He threw up his head.
-Straight above him was the Red Moon, inviting him to the thrill and
-mystery of the open world. The sound grew in his throat, and slowly it
-rose in volume until his answer was rising to the stars. In their cabin
-Pierrot and the Willow heard it. Pierrot shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“He is gone,” he said.
-
-“_Oui_, he is gone, _mon père_,” replied Nepeese, peering through the
-window.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII
-
-
-No longer, as in the days of old, did the darkness of the forests hold a
-fear for Baree. This night his hunt-cry had risen to the stars and the
-moon, and in that cry he had, for the first time, sent forth his
-defiance of night and space, his warning to all the wild, and his
-acceptance of the Brotherhood. In that cry, and the answers that came
-back to him, he sensed a new power—the final triumph of nature in
-impinging on him the fact that the forests and the creatures they held
-were no longer to be feared, but that all things feared him. Off there,
-beyond the pale of the cabin and the influence of Nepeese, were all the
-things that the wolf-blood in him found now most desirable:
-companionship of his kind, the lure of adventure, the red, sweet blood
-of the chase—and matehood. This last, after all, was the dominant
-mystery that was urging him, and yet least of all did he understand it.
-
-He ran straight into the darkness to the north and west, slinking low
-under the bushes, his tail drooping, his ears aslant—the wolf as the
-wolf runs on the night trail. The pack had swung due north, and was
-travelling faster than he, so that at the end of half an hour he could
-no longer hear it. But the lone wolf-howl to the west was nearer, and
-three times Baree gave answer to it.
-
-At the end of an hour he heard the pack again, swinging southward.
-Pierrot would easily have understood. Their quarry had found safety
-beyond water, or in a lake, and the _muhekuns_ were on a fresh trail. By
-this time not more than a quarter of a mile of the forest separated
-Baree from the lone wolf, but the lone wolf was also an old wolf, and
-with the directness and precision of long experience, he swerved in the
-direction of the hunters, compassing his trail so that he was heading
-for a point half or three quarters of a mile in advance of the pack.
-
-This was a trick of the Brotherhood which Baree had yet to learn; and
-the result of his ignorance, and lack of skill, was that twice within
-the next half-hour he found himself near to the pack without being able
-to join it. Then came a long and final silence. The pack had pulled down
-its kill, and in their feasting they made no sound.
-
-The rest of the night Baree wandered alone, or at least until the moon
-was well on the wane. He was a long way from the cabin, and his trail
-had been an uncertain and twisting one, but he was no longer possessed
-with the discomforting sensation of being lost. The last two or three
-months had been developing strongly in him the sense of orientation,
-that “sixth sense” which guides the pigeon unerringly on its way and
-takes a bear straight as a bird might fly to its last year’s
-denning-place.
-
-Baree had not forgotten Nepeese. A dozen times he turned his head back
-and whined, and always he picked out accurately the direction in which
-the cabin lay. But he did not turn back. As the night lengthened, his
-search for that mysterious something which he had not found continued.
-His hunger, even with the fading-out of the moon and the coming of the
-gray dawn, was not sufficiently keen to make him hunt for food.
-
-It was cold, and it seemed colder when the glow of the moon and stars
-died out. Under his padded feet, especially in the open spaces, was a
-thick white frost in which he left clearly at times the imprint of his
-toes and claws. He had travelled steadily for hours, a great many miles
-in all, and he was tired when the first light of the day came. And then
-there came the time when, with a sudden sharp click of his jaws, he
-stopped like a shot in his tracks.
-
-At last it had come—the meeting with that for which he had been seeking.
-It was in an open, lighted by the cold dawn—a tiny amphitheatre that lay
-on the side of a ridge, facing the east. With her head toward him, and
-waiting for him as he came out of the shadows, his scent strong in her
-keen nose, stood Maheegun, the young wolf. Baree had not smelled her,
-but he saw her directly he came out of the rim of young balsams that
-fringed the open. It was then that he stopped, and for a full minute
-neither of them moved a muscle or seemed to breathe.
-
-There was not a fortnight’s difference in their age and yet Maheegun was
-much the smaller of the two; her body was as long, but she was slimmer;
-she stood on slender legs that were almost like the legs of a fox, and
-the curve of her back was that of a slightly bent bow, a sign of
-swiftness almost equal to the wind. She stood poised for flight even as
-Baree advanced his first step toward her, and then very slowly her body
-relaxed, and in a direct ratio as he drew nearer her ears lost their
-alertness and dropped aslant.
-
-Baree whined. His own ears were up, his head alert, his tail aloft and
-bushy. Cleverness, if not strategy, had already become a part of his
-masculine superiority, and he did not immediately press the affair. He
-was within five feet of Maheegun when he casually turned away from her
-and faced the east, where a faint pencilling of red and gold was
-heralding the day. For a few moments he sniffed and looked around and
-pointed the wind with much seriousness, as though impressing on his fair
-acquaintance—as many a two-legged animal has done before him—his
-tremendous importance in the world at large.
-
-And Maheegun was properly impressed. Baree’s bluff worked as beautifully
-as the bluffs of the two-legged animals. He sniffed the air with such
-thrilling and suspicious zeal that Maheegun’s ears sprang alert, and she
-sniffed it with him; he turned his head from point to point so sharply
-and alertly that her feminine curiosity, if not anxiety, made her turn
-her own head in questioning conjunction; and when he whined, as though
-in the air he had caught a mystery which she could not possibly
-understand, a responsive note gathered in her throat, but smothered and
-low as a woman’s exclamation when she is not quite sure whether she
-should interrupt her lord or not. At this sound, which Baree’s sharp
-ears caught, he swung up to her with a light and mincing step, and in
-another moment they were smelling noses.
-
-When the sun rose, half an hour later, it found them still in the small
-open on the side of the ridge, with a deep fringe of forest under them,
-and beyond that a wide, timbered plain which looked like a ghostly
-shroud in its mantle of frost. Up over this came the first red glow of
-the day, filling the open with a warmth that grew more and more
-comfortable as the sun crept higher.
-
-Neither Baree nor Maheegun were inclined to move for a while, and for an
-hour or two they lay basking in a cup of the slope, looking down with
-questing and wide-awake eyes upon the wooded plain that stretched away
-under them like a great sea.
-
-Maheegun, too, had sought the hunt-pack, and like Baree had failed to
-catch it. They were tired, a little discouraged for the time, and
-hungry—but still alive with the fine thrill of anticipation, and
-restlessly sensitive to the new and mysterious consciousness of
-companionship. Half a dozen times Baree got up and nosed about Maheegun
-as she lay in the sun, whining to her softly and touching her soft coat
-with his muzzle, but for a long time she paid little attention to him.
-At last she followed him. All that day they wandered and rested
-together. Once more the night came.
-
-It was without moon or stars. Gray masses of clouds swept slowly down
-out of the north and east, and in the treetops there was scarcely a
-whisper of wind as night gathered in. The snow began to fall at dusk,
-thickly, heavily, without a breath of sound. It was not cold, but it was
-still—so still that Baree and Maheegun travelled only a few yards at a
-time, and then stopped to listen. In this way all the night-prowlers of
-the forest were travelling, if they were moving at all. It was the first
-of the Big Snow.
-
-To the flesh-eating wild things of the forests, clawed and winged, the
-Big Snow was the beginning of the winter carnival of slaughter and
-feasting, of wild adventure in the long nights, of merciless warfare on
-the frozen trails. The days of breeding, of motherhood—the peace of
-spring and summer—were over; out of the sky came the wakening of the
-Northland, the call of all flesh-eating creatures to the long hunt, and
-in the first thrill of it living things were moving but little this
-night, and that watchfully and with suspicion. Youth made it all new to
-Baree and Maheegun; their blood ran swiftly; their feet fell softly;
-their ears were attuned to catch the slightest sounds.
-
-In this first of the Big Snow they felt the exciting pulse of a new
-life. It lured them on. It invited them to adventure into the white
-mystery of the silent storm; and inspired by that restlessness of youth
-and its desires, they went on.
-
-The snow grew deeper under their feet. In the open spaces they waded
-through it to their knees, and it continued to fall in a vast white
-cloud that descended steadily out of the sky. It was near midnight when
-it stopped. The clouds drifted away from under the stars and the moon,
-and for a long time Baree and Maheegun stood without moving, looking
-down from the bald crest of a ridge upon a wonderful world.
-
-Never had they seen so far, except in the light of day. Under them was a
-plain. They could see its forests, lone trees that stood up like shadows
-out of the snow, a stream—still unfrozen—shimmering like glass with the
-flicker of firelight on it. Toward this stream Baree led the way. He no
-longer thought of Nepeese, and he whined with pent-up happiness as he
-stopped halfway down and turned to muzzle Maheegun. He wanted to roll in
-the snow and frisk about with his companion; he wanted to bark, to put
-up his head and howl as he had howled at the Red Moon back at the cabin.
-
-Something held him from doing these things. Perhaps it was Maheegun’s
-demeanour. She accepted his attentions rigidly. Once or twice she had
-seemed almost frightened; twice Baree had heard the sharp clicking of
-her teeth. The previous night, and all through to-night’s storm, their
-companionship had grown more intimate, but now there was taking its
-place a mysterious aloofness on the part of Maheegun. Pierrot could have
-explained. With the white snow under and about him, and the luminous
-moon and stars above him, Baree, like the night, had undergone a
-transformation which even the sunlight of day had not made in him
-before. His coat was like polished jet. Every hair in his body glistened
-black. _Black!_ That was it. And Nature was trying to tell Maheegun that
-of all the creatures hated by her kind, the creature which they feared
-and hated most was black. With her it was not experience, but
-instinct—telling her of the age-old feud between the gray wolf and the
-black bear. And Baree’s coat, in the moonlight and the snow, was blacker
-than Wakayoo’s had ever been in the fish-fattening days of May. Until
-they struck the broad openings of the plain, the young she-wolf had
-followed Baree without hesitation; now there was a gathering strangeness
-and indecision in her manner, and twice she stopped and would have let
-Baree go on without her.
-
-An hour after they entered the plain there came suddenly out of the west
-the tonguing of the wolf-pack. It was not far distant, probably not more
-than a mile along the foot of the ridge, and the sharp, quick yapping
-that followed the first outburst was evidence that the long-fanged
-hunters had put up sudden game, a caribou or young moose, and were close
-at its heels. At the voice of her own people Maheegun laid her ears
-close to her head and was off like an arrow from a bow.
-
-The unexpectedness of her movement and the swiftness of her flight put
-Baree well behind her in the race over the plain. She was running
-blindly, favoured by luck. For an interval of perhaps five minutes the
-pack were so near to their game that they made no sound, and the chase
-swung full into the face of Maheegun and Baree. The latter was not half
-a dozen lengths behind the young wolf when a crashing in the brush
-directly ahead stopped them so sharply that they tore up the snow with
-their braced forefeet and squat haunches. Ten seconds later a caribou
-burst through and flashed across an open not more than twenty yards from
-where they stood. They could hear its swift panting as it disappeared.
-And then came the pack.
-
-At sight of those swiftly moving gray bodies Baree’s heart leaped for an
-instant into his throat. He forgot Maheegun, and that she had run away
-from him. The moon and the stars went out of existence for him. He no
-longer sensed the chill of the snow under his feet. He was wolf—all
-wolf. With the warm scent of the caribou in his nostrils, and the
-passion to kill sweeping through him like fire, he darted after the
-pack.
-
-Even at that, Maheegun was a bit ahead of him. He did not miss her; in
-the excitement of his first chase he no longer felt the desire to have
-her at his side. Very soon he found himself close to the flanks of one
-of the gray monsters of the pack; half a minute later a new hunter swept
-in from the bush behind him, and then a second, and after that a third.
-At times he was running shoulder to shoulder with his new companions; he
-heard the whining excitement in their throats; the snap of their jaws as
-they ran—and in the golden moonlight ahead of him the smash of the
-caribou as it plunged through thickets and over windfalls in its race
-for life.
-
-It was as if Baree had belonged to the pack always. He had joined it
-naturally, as other stray wolves had joined it from out of the bush;
-there had been no ostentation, no welcome such as Maheegun had given him
-in the open, and no hostility. He belonged with these slim, swift-footed
-outlaws of the old forests, and his own jaws snapped and his blood ran
-hot as the smell of the caribou grew heavier, and the sound of its
-crashing body nearer.
-
-It seemed to him they were almost at its heel when they swept into an
-open plain, a stretch of barren without a tree or a shrub, brilliant in
-the light of the stars and moon. Across its unbroken carpet of snow sped
-the caribou a spare hundred yards ahead of the pack. Now the two leading
-hunters no longer followed directly in the trail, but shot out at an
-angle, one to the right and the other to the left of the pursued, and
-like well-trained soldiers the pack split in halves and spread out
-fan-shape in the final charge.
-
-The two ends of the fan forged ahead and closed in, until the leaders
-were running almost abreast of the caribou, with fifty or sixty feet
-separating them from the pursued. Thus, adroitly and swiftly, with
-deadly precision, the pack had formed a horseshoe cordon of fangs from
-which there was but one course of flight—straight ahead. For the caribou
-to swerve half a degree to the right or left meant death. It was the
-duty of the leaders to draw in the ends of the Horseshoe now, until one
-or both of them could make the fatal lunge for the ham-strings. After
-that it would be a simple matter. The pack would close in over the
-caribou like an inundation.
-
-Baree had found his place in the lower rim of the horseshoe, so that he
-was fairly well in the rear when the climax came. The plain made a
-sudden dip. Straight ahead was the gleam of water—water shimmering
-softly in the starglow, and the sight of it sent a final great spurt of
-blood through the caribou’s bursting heart. Forty seconds would tell the
-story—forty seconds of a last spurt for life, of a final tremendous
-effort to escape death. Baree felt the sudden thrill of these moments,
-and he forged ahead with the others in that lower rim of the horseshoe
-as one of the leading wolves made a lunge for the young bull’s
-ham-string. It was a clean miss. A second wolf darted in. And this one
-also missed.
-
-There was no time for others to take their place. From the broken end of
-the horseshoe Baree heard the caribou’s heavy plunge into water. When
-Baree joined the pack, a maddened, mouth-frothing, snarling horde,
-Napamoos, the young bull, was well out in the river and swimming
-steadily for the opposite shore.
-
-[Illustration: When Baree joined the pack, a maddened, mouth-frothing,
-snarling horde, Napamoos, the young caribou bull, was well out in the
-river and swimming steadily for the opposite shore.]
-
-It was then that Baree found himself at the side of Maheegun. She was
-panting; her red tongue hung from her open jaws; but at his presence she
-brought her fangs together with a snap and slunk from him into the heart
-of the wind-run and disappointed pack. The wolves were in an ugly
-temper, but Baree did not sense the fact. Nepeese had trained him to
-take to water like an otter, and he did not understand why this narrow
-river should stop them as it had. He ran down to the water and stood
-belly deep in it, facing for an instant the horde of savage beasts above
-him, wondering why they did not follow. And he was black—_black_. He
-came among them again, and for the first time they noticed him.
-
-The restless movements of the waters ceased now. A new and wondering
-interest held them rigid. Fangs closed sharply. A little in the open
-Baree saw Maheegun, with a big gray wolf standing near her. He went to
-her again, and this time she remained with flattened ears until he was
-sniffing her neck. And then, with a vicious snarl, she snapped at him.
-Her teeth sank deep in the soft flesh of his shoulder, and at the
-unexpectedness and pain of her attack, he let out a yelp. The next
-instant the big gray wolf was at him.
-
-Again caught unexpectedly, Baree went down with the wolf’s fangs at his
-throat. But in him was the blood of Kazan, the flesh and bone and sinew
-of Kazan, and for the first time in his life he fought as Kazan fought
-on that terrible day at the top of the Sun Rock. He was young; he had
-yet to learn the cleverness and the strategy of the veteran; but his
-jaws were like the iron clamps with which Pierrot set his bear traps,
-and in his heart was sudden and blinding rage, a desire to kill that
-rose above all sense of pain or fear.
-
-That fight, if it had been fair, would have been a victory for Baree,
-even in his youth and inexperience. In fairness the pack should have
-waited; it was a law of the pack to wait—until one was done for. But
-Baree was black; he was a stranger, an interloper, a creature whom they
-noticed now in a moment when their blood was hot with the rage and
-disappointment of killers who had missed their prey. A second wolf
-sprang in, striking Baree treacherously from the flank; and while he was
-in the snow, his jaws crushing the fore-leg of his first foe, the pack
-was on him _en masse_.
-
-Such an attack on the young caribou bull would have meant death in less
-than a minute. Every fang would have found its hold. Baree, by the
-fortunate circumstance that he was under his first two assailants and
-protected by their bodies, was saved from being torn instantly into
-pieces. He knew that he was fighting for his life. Over him the horde of
-beasts rolled and twisted and snarled; he felt the burning pain of teeth
-sinking into his flesh; he was smothered; a hundred knives seemed
-cutting him into pieces; yet no sound—not a whimper or a cry—came from
-him now in the horror and hopelessness of it all.
-
-It would have ended in another half-minute had the struggle not been at
-the very edge of the bank. Undermined by the erosion of the spring
-floods, a section of this bank suddenly gave way, and with it went Baree
-and half the pack. In a flash Baree thought of the water and the
-escaping caribou. For a bare instant the cave-in had sent him free of
-the pack, and in that space he gave a single leap over the gray backs of
-his enemies into the deep water of the stream. Close behind him half a
-dozen jaws snapped shut on empty air. As it had saved the caribou, so
-this strip of water shimmering in the glow of the moon and stars had
-saved Baree.
-
-The stream was not more than a hundred feet in width, but it cost Baree
-close to a losing struggle to get across it. Until he dragged himself
-out on the opposite shore, the extent of his injuries was not impressed
-upon him fully. One hind leg, for the time, was useless; his forward
-left shoulder was laid open to the bone; his head and body were torn and
-cut; and as he dragged himself slowly away from the stream, the trail he
-left in the snow was a red path of blood. It trickled from his panting
-jaws, between which his tongue was bleeding; it ran down his legs and
-flanks and belly, and it dripped from his ears, one of which was slit
-clean for two inches as though cut with a knife. His instincts were
-dazed, his perception of things clouded as if by a veil drawn close over
-his eyes. He did not hear, a few minutes later, the howling of the
-disappointed wolf-horde on the other side of the river, and he no longer
-sensed the existence of moon or stars. Half dead, he dragged himself on
-until by chance he came to a clump of dwarf spruce. Into this he
-struggled, and then he dropped exhausted.
-
-All that night and until noon the next day Baree lay without moving. The
-fever burned in his blood; it flamed high and swift toward death; then
-it ebbed slowly, and life conquered. At noon he came forth. He was weak,
-and he wobbled on his legs. His hind leg still dragged, and he was
-racked with pain. But it was a splendid day. The sun was warm; the snow
-was thawing; the sky was like a great blue sea; and the floods of life
-coursed warmly again through Baree’s veins. But now, for all time, his
-desires were changed, and his great quest at an end.
-
-A red ferocity grew in Baree’s eyes as he snarled in the direction of
-last night’s fight with the wolves. They were no longer his people. They
-were no longer of his blood. Never again could the hunt-call lure him or
-the voice of the pack rouse the old longing. In him there was a thing
-new-born, an undying hatred for the wolf, a hatred that was to grow in
-him until it became like a disease in his vitals, a thing ever present
-and insistent, demanding vengeance on their kind. Last night he had gone
-to them a comrade. To-day he was an outcast. Cut and maimed, bearing
-with him scars for all time, he had learned his lesson of the
-wilderness. To-morrow, and the next day, and for days after that without
-number, he would remember the lesson well.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX
-
-
-At the cabin on the Gray Loon, on the fourth night of Baree’s absence,
-Pierrot was smoking his pipe after a great supper of caribou tenderloin
-he had brought in from the trail, and Nepeese was listening to his tale
-of the remarkable shot he had made, when a sound at the door interrupted
-them. Nepeese opened it, and Baree came in. The cry of welcome that was
-on the girl’s lips died there instantly, and Pierrot stared as if he
-could not quite believe this creature that had returned was the
-wolf-dog. Three days and nights of hunger in which he could not hunt
-because of the leg that dragged had put on him the marks of starvation.
-Battle-scarred and covered with dried blood-clots that still clung
-tenaciously to his long hair, he was a sight that drew at last a long
-breath from Nepeese. A queer smile was growing in Pierrot’s face as he
-leaned forward in his chair; and then slowly rising to his feet, and
-looking closer, he said to Nepeese:
-
-“_Ventre Saint Gris! Oui_, he has been to the pack, Nepeese, and the
-pack turned on him. It was not a two-wolf fight—_non!_ It was the pack.
-He is cut and torn in fifty places. And—_mon Dieu_, he is alive!”
-
-In Pierrot’s voice there was growing wonder and amazement. He was
-incredulous, and yet he could not disbelieve what his eyes told him.
-What had happened was nothing short of a miracle, and for a time he
-uttered not a word more but remained staring in silence while Nepeese
-woke from her astonishment to give Baree doctoring and food. After he
-had eaten ravenously of cold boiled mush she began bathing his wounds in
-warm water, and after that she soothed them with bear-grease, talking to
-him all the time in her soft Cree. After the pain and hunger and
-treachery of his adventure, it was a wonderful homecoming for Baree. He
-slept that night at the foot of the Willow’s bed. The next morning it
-was the cool caress of his tongue on her hand that awakened her.
-
-With this day they resumed the comradeship interrupted by Baree’s
-temporary desertion. The attachment was greater than ever on Baree’s
-part. It was he who had run away from the Willow, who had deserted her
-at the call of the pack, and it seemed at times as though he sensed the
-depths of his perfidy and was striving to make amends. There was
-indubitably a very great change in him. He hung to Nepeese like a
-shadow. Instead of sleeping at night in the spruce shelter Pierrot made
-for him, he made himself a little hollow in the earth close to the cabin
-door. Pierrot thought that he understood, and Nepeese thought that she
-understood still more; but in reality the key to the mystery remained
-with Baree himself. He no longer played as he had played before he went
-off alone into the forest. He did not chase sticks, or run until he was
-winded, for the pure joy of running. His puppyishness was gone. In its
-place was a great worship and a rankling bitterness, a love for the girl
-and a hatred for the pack and all that it stood for. Whenever he heard
-the wolf-howl, it brought an angry snarl into his throat, and he would
-bare his fangs until even Pierrot would draw a little away from him. But
-a touch of the girl’s hand would quiet him.
-
-In a week or two the heavier snows came, and Pierrot began making his
-trips over the trap-lines. Nepeese had entered into a thrilling bargain
-with him this winter. Pierrot had taken her into partnership. Every
-fifth trap, every fifth deadfall, and every fifth poison-bait was to be
-her own, and what they caught or killed was to bring a bit nearer to
-realization a wonderful dream that was growing in the Willow’s soul.
-Pierrot had promised. If they had great luck that winter, they would go
-down together on the last snows to Nelson House and buy the little old
-organ that was for sale there; and if the organ was sold, they would
-work another winter, and get a new one.
-
-This plan gave Nepeese an enthusiastic and tireless interest in the
-trap-line. With Pierrot it was more or less a fine bit of strategy. He
-would have sold his hand to give Nepeese the organ; he was determined
-that she should have it, whether the fifth traps and the fifth deadfalls
-and the fifth poison-baits caught the fur or not. The partnership meant
-nothing so far as that was concerned. But in another way it meant to
-Nepeese a business interest, the thrill of personal achievement. Pierrot
-impressed on her that it made a comrade and co-worker of her on the
-trail. That was his scheme: to keep her with him when he was away from
-the cabin. He knew that Bush McTaggart would come again to the Gray
-Loon, probably more than once during the winter. He had swift dogs, and
-it was a short journey. And when McTaggart came, Nepeese must not be at
-the cabin—alone.
-
-Pierrot’s trap-line swung into the north and west, covering in all a
-matter of fifty miles, with an average of two traps, one deadfall, and a
-poison-bait to each mile. It was a twisting line blazed along streams
-for mink, otter, and marten, piercing the deepest forests for fisher-cat
-and lynx and crossing lakes and storm-swept strips of barrens where
-poison-baits could be set for fox and wolf. Halfway over this line
-Pierrot had built a small log cabin, and at the end of it another, so
-that a day’s work meant twenty-five miles. This was easy for Pierrot,
-and not hard on Nepeese after the first few days.
-
-All through October and November they made the trips regularly, making
-the round every six days, which gave one day of rest at the cabin on the
-Gray Loon and another day in the cabin at the end of the trail. To
-Pierrot the winter’s work was business, the labour of his people for
-many generations back; to Nepeese and Baree it was a wild and joyous
-adventure that never for a day grew tiresome. Even Pierrot could not
-quite immunize himself against their enthusiasm. It was infectious, and
-he was happier than he had been since his sun had set that evening the
-princess mother died.
-
-They were splendid months. Fur was thick, and it was steadily cold
-without bad storm. Nepeese not only carried a small pack on her
-shoulders in order that Pierrot’s load might be lighter, but she trained
-Baree to bear tiny shoulder-panniers which she manufactured. In these
-panniers Baree carried the bait. In at least a third of the total number
-of traps set there was always what Pierrot called trash—rabbits, owls,
-whisky-jacks, jays, and squirrels. These, with the skin or feathers
-stripped off, made up the bulk of the bait for the traps ahead.
-
-One afternoon early in December, as they were returning to the Gray
-Loon, Pierrot stopped suddenly a dozen paces ahead of Nepeese and stared
-at the snow. A strange snowshoe trail had joined their own and was
-heading toward the cabin. For half a minute Pierrot was silent and
-scarcely moved a muscle as he stared. The trail came straight out of the
-north—and off there was Lac Bain. Also they were the marks of large
-snowshoes, and the stride indicated was that of a tall man. Before
-Pierrot had spoken, Nepeese had guessed what they meant.
-
-“M’sieu the Factor from Lac Bain!” she said.
-
-Baree was sniffing suspiciously at the strange trail. They heard the low
-growl in his throat, and Pierrot’s shoulders stiffened.
-
-“Yes, the M’sieu,” he said.
-
-The Willow’s heart beat more swiftly as they went on. She was not afraid
-of McTaggart, not physically afraid; and yet something rose up in her
-breast and choked her at thought of his presence on the Gray Loon. Why
-was he there? It was not necessary for Pierrot to answer the question,
-even had she given voice to it. She knew. The Factor from Lac Bain had
-no business there—except to see her. The blood burned red in her cheeks
-as she thought again of that minute on the edge of the chasm when he had
-almost crushed her in his arms. Would he try _that_ again?
-
-Pierrot, deep in his own sombre thoughts, scarcely heard the strange
-laugh that came suddenly from her lips. Nepeese was listening to the
-growl that was again in Baree’s throat. It was a low but terrible sound.
-When half a mile from the cabin, she unslung the panniers from his
-shoulders and carried them herself. Ten minutes later they saw a man
-advancing to meet them.
-
-It was not McTaggart. Pierrot recognized him, and with an audible breath
-of relief waved his hand. It was DeBar, who trapped in the Barren
-Country north of Lac Bain. Pierrot knew him well. They had exchanged
-fox-poison. They were friends, and there was pleasure in the grip of
-their hands. DeBar stared then at Nepeese.
-
-“Tonnerre, she has grown into a woman!” he cried, and like a woman
-Nepeese looked at him straight with the colour deepening in her cheeks,
-as he bowed low with a courtesy that dated back a couple of centuries
-beyond the trap-line.
-
-DeBar lost no time in explaining his mission, and before they reached
-the cabin Pierrot and Nepeese knew why he had come. M’sieu, the Factor
-at Lac Bain, was leaving on a journey in five days, and he had sent
-DeBar as a special messenger to request Pierrot to come up to assist the
-clerk and the halfbreed storekeeper in his absence. Pierrot made no
-comment at first. But he was thinking. Why had Bush McTaggart sent for
-_him_? Why had he not chosen some one nearer? Not until a fire was
-crackling in the sheet-iron stove in the cabin, and Nepeese was busily
-engaged getting supper, did he voice these questions to the fox-hunter.
-
-DeBar shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“He asked me, at first, if I could stay. But I have a wife with a bad
-lung, Pierrot. It was caught by frost last winter, and I dare not leave
-her long alone. He has great faith in you. Besides, you know all the
-trappers on the Company’s books at Lac Bain. So he sent for you, and
-begs you not to worry about your fur-lines, as he will pay you double
-what you would catch in the time you are at the Post.”
-
-“And—Nepeese?” said Pierrot. “M’sieu expects me to bring her?”
-
-From the stove the Willow bent her head to listen, and her heart leaped
-free again at DeBar’s answer.
-
-“He said nothing about that. But surely—it will be a great change for
-li’le m’selle.”
-
-Pierrot nodded.
-
-“Possibly, _Netootam_.”
-
-They discussed the matter no more that night. But for hours Pierrot was
-still, thinking, and a hundred times he asked himself that same
-question: Why had McTaggart sent for _him_? He was not the only man well
-known to the trappers on the Company’s books. There was Wassoon, for
-instance, the halfbreed Scandinavian whose cabin was less than four
-hours’ journey from the post—or Baroche, the white-bearded old Frenchman
-who lived yet nearer and whose word was as good as the Bible. It must
-be, he told himself finally, that M’sieu had sent for _him_ because he
-wanted to win over the father of Nepeese and gain the friendship of
-Nepeese herself. For this was undoubtedly a very great honour that the
-Factor was conferring on him. And yet, deep down in his heart, he was
-filled with suspicion.
-
-When DeBar was about to leave the next morning, Pierrot said:
-
-“Tell M’sieu that I will leave for Lac Bain the day after to-morrow.”
-
-After DeBar had gone, he said to Nepeese:
-
-“And you shall remain here, _ma chérie_. I will not take you to Lac
-Bain. I have had a dream that M’sieu will not go on a journey, but that
-he has lied, and that he will be sick when I arrive at the post. And
-yet, if it should happen that you care to go——”
-
-Nepeese straightened suddenly, like a reed that has been caught by the
-wind.
-
-“_Non!_” she cried, so fiercely that Pierrot laughed, and rubbed his
-hands.
-
-So it happened that on the second day after the fox-hunter’s visit
-Pierrot left for Lac Bain, with Nepeese in the door waving him good-bye
-until he was out of sight.
-
- * * * * *
-
-On the morning of this same day Bush McTaggart rose from his bed while
-it was still dark. The time had come. He had hesitated at murder—at the
-killing of Pierrot; and in his hesitation he had found a better way.
-There could be no escape for Nepeese.
-
-It was a wonderful scheme, so easy of accomplishment, so inevitable in
-its outcome. And all the time Pierrot would think he was away to the
-east on a mission!
-
-He ate his breakfast before dawn, and was on the trail before it was yet
-light. Purposely he struck due east, so that in coming up from the south
-and west Pierrot would not strike his sledge tracks. For he had made up
-his mind now that Pierrot must never know and must never have a
-suspicion, even though it cost him so many more miles to travel that he
-would not reach the Gray Loon until the second day. It was better to be
-a day late, after all, as it was possible that something might have
-delayed Pierrot. So he made no effort to travel fast.
-
-There was a vast amount of brutal satisfaction to McTaggart in
-anticipating what was about to happen, and he revelled in it to the
-full. There was no chance for disappointment. He was positive that
-Nepeese would not accompany her father to Lac Bain. She would be at the
-cabin on the Gray Loon—alone.
-
-This aloneness was to Nepeese burdened with no thought of danger. There
-were times, now, when the thought of being alone was pleasant to her,
-when she wanted to dream by herself, when she visioned things into the
-mysteries of which she would not admit even Pierrot. She was growing
-into womanhood—just the sweet, closed bud of womanhood as yet—still a
-girl with the soft velvet of girlhood in her eyes, yet with the mystery
-of woman stirring gently in her soul, as if the Great Hand were
-hesitating between awakening her and letting her sleep a little longer.
-At these times, when the opportunity came to steal hours by herself, she
-would put on the red dress and do up her wonderful hair as she saw it in
-the pictures of the magazines Pierrot had sent up twice a year from
-Nelson House.
-
-On the second day of Pierrot’s absence Nepeese dressed herself like
-this, but to-day she let her hair cascade in a shining glory about her,
-and about her forehead bound a circlet of red ribbon. She was not yet
-done. To-day she had marvellous designs. On the wall close to her mirror
-she had tacked a large page from a woman’s magazine, and on this page
-was a lovely vision of curls. Fifteen hundred miles north of the sunny
-California studio in which the picture had been taken, Nepeese, with
-pouted red lips and puckered forehead, was fighting to master the
-mystery of the other girl’s curls!
-
-She was looking into her mirror, her face flushed and her eyes aglow in
-the excitement of the struggle to fashion one of the coveted ringlets
-from a tress that fell away below her hips, when the door opened behind
-her, and Bush McTaggart walked in.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XX
-
-
-The Willow’s back was toward the door when the Factor from Lac Bain
-entered the cabin, and for a few startled seconds she did not turn. Her
-first thought was of Pierrot—for some reason he had returned. But even
-as this thought came to her, she heard in Baree’s throat a snarl that
-brought her suddenly to her feet, facing the door.
-
-McTaggart had not entered unprepared. He had left his pack, his gun, and
-his heavy coat outside. He was standing with his back against the door;
-and at Nepeese—in her wonderful dress and flowing hair—he was staring as
-if stunned for a space at what he saw. Fate, or accident, was playing
-against the Willow now. If there had been a spark of slumbering
-chivalry, of mercy, even, in Bush McTaggart’s soul, it was extinguished
-by what he saw. Never had Nepeese looked more beautiful, not even on
-that day when MacDonald the map-maker had taken her picture. The sun,
-flooding through the window, lighted up her marvellous hair; her flushed
-face was framed in its lustrous darkness like a tinted cameo. He had
-dreamed, but he had pictured nothing like this woman who stood before
-him now, her eyes widening with fear and the flush leaving her face even
-as he looked at her.
-
-It was not a long interval in which their eyes met in that terrible
-silence—terrible to the girl. Words were unnecessary. At last she
-understood—understood what her peril had been that day at the edge of
-the chasm and in the forest, when fearlessly she had played with the
-menace that was confronting her now.
-
-A breath that was like a sob broke from her lips.
-
-“M’sieu!” she tried to say. But it was only a gasp—an effort. She seemed
-choking.
-
-Plainly she heard the click of the iron bolt as it locked the door.
-McTaggart advanced a step.
-
-Only a single step McTaggart advanced. On the floor Baree had remained
-like a carven thing. He had not moved. He had not made a sound but that
-one warning snarl—until McTaggart took the step. And then, like a flash,
-he was up and in front of Nepeese, every hair of his body on end; and at
-the fury in his growl McTaggart lunged back against the barred door. A
-word from Nepeese in that moment, and it would have been over. But an
-instant was lost—an instant before her cry came. In that moment man’s
-hand and brain worked swifter than brute understanding; and as Baree
-launched himself at the Factor’s throat, there came a flash and a
-deafening explosion almost in the Willow’s eyes.
-
-It was a chance shot, a shot from the hip with McTaggart’s automatic.
-Baree fell short. He struck the floor with a thud and rolled against the
-log wall. There was not a kick or a quiver left in his body. McTaggart
-laughed nervously as he shoved his pistol back in its holster. He knew
-that only a brain shot could have done that.
-
-With her back against the farther wall, Nepeese was waiting. McTaggart
-could hear her panting breath. He advanced halfway to her.
-
-“Nepeese, I have come to make you my wife,” he said.
-
-She did not answer. He could see that her breath was choking her. She
-raised a hand to her throat. He took two more steps, and stopped. He had
-never seen such eyes.
-
-“I have come to make you my wife, Nepeese. To-morrow you will go on to
-Nelson House with me and then back to Lac Bain—forever.” He added the
-last word as an afterthought. “Forever,” he repeated.
-
-He did not mince words. His courage and his determination rose as he saw
-her body droop a little against the wall. She was powerless. There was
-no escape. Pierrot was gone. Baree was dead.
-
-He had thought that no living creature could move as swiftly as the
-Willow when his arms reached out for her. She made no sound as she
-darted under one of his outstretched arms. He made a lunge, a brutal
-grab, and his fingers caught a bit of hair. He heard the snap of it as
-she tore herself free and flew to the door. She had thrown back the bolt
-when he caught her and his arms closed about her. He dragged her back,
-and now she cried out—cried out in her despair for Pierrot, for Baree,
-for some miracle of God that might save her.
-
-And Nepeese fought. She twisted in his arms until she was facing him.
-She could no longer see. She was smothered in her hair. It covered her
-face and breast and body, suffocating her, entangling her hands and
-arms—and still she fought. In the struggle McTaggart stumbled over the
-body of Baree, and they went down. Nepeese was up fully five seconds
-ahead of the man. She could have reached the door. But again it was her
-hair. She paused to fling back the thick masses of it so that she could
-see, and McTaggart was at the door ahead of her.
-
-He did not lock it again, but stood facing her. His face was scratched
-and bleeding. He was no longer a man but a devil. Nepeese was broken,
-panting—a low sobbing came with her breath. She bent down, and picked up
-a piece of firewood. McTaggart could see that her strength was almost
-gone.
-
-She clutched the stick as he approached her again. But McTaggart had
-lost all thought of fear or caution. He sprang upon her like an animal.
-The stick of firewood fell. And again fate played against the girl. In
-her terror and hopelessness she had caught up the first stick her hand
-had touched—a light one. With her last strength she struck at McTaggart
-with it, and as it fell on his head, he staggered back. But it did not
-make him lose his hold.
-
-Vainly she was fighting now, not to strike him or to escape, but to get
-her breath. She tried to cry out again, but this time no sound came from
-between her gasping lips.
-
-Again he laughed, and as he laughed, he heard the door open. Was it the
-wind? He turned, still holding her in his arms.
-
-In the open door stood Pierrot.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI
-
-
-During that terrible space which followed an eternity of time rolled
-slowly through the little cabin on the Gray Loon—that eternity which
-lies somewhere between life and death and which is sometimes meted out
-to a human life in seconds instead of eons.
-
-In those seconds Pierrot did not move from where he stood in the
-doorway. McTaggart, huddled over with the weight in his arms, and
-staring at Pierrot, did not move. But the Willow’s eyes were opening.
-And a convulsive quiver ran through the body of Baree, where he lay near
-the wall. There was not the sound of a breath. And then, in that
-silence, a great gasping sob came from Nepeese.
-
-Then Pierrot stirred to life. Like McTaggart, he had left his coat and
-mittens outside. He spoke, and his voice was not like Pierrot’s. It was
-a strange voice.
-
-“The great God has sent me back in time, m’sieu,” he said. “I, too,
-travelled by way of the east, and saw your trail where it turned this
-way.”
-
-No, that was not like Pierrot’s voice! A chill ran through McTaggart
-now, and slowly he let go of Nepeese. She fell to the floor. Slowly he
-straightened.
-
-“Is it not true, m’sieu?” said Pierrot again. “I have come in time?”
-
-What power was it—what great fear, perhaps, that made McTaggart nod his
-head, that made his thick lips form huskily the words, “Yes—in time.”
-And yet it was not fear. It was something greater, something more
-all-powerful than that. And Pierrot said, in that same strange voice:
-
-“I thank the great God!”
-
-The eyes of madman met the eyes of madman now. Between them was death.
-Both saw it. Both thought that they saw the direction in which its bony
-finger pointed. Both were certain. McTaggart’s hand did not go to the
-pistol in his holster, and Pierrot did not touch the knife in his belt.
-When they came together, it was throat to throat—two beasts now, instead
-of one, for Pierrot had in him the fury and strength of the wolf, the
-cat, and the panther.
-
-McTaggart was the bigger and heavier man, a giant in strength; yet in
-the face of Pierrot’s fury he lurched back over the table and went down
-with a crash. Many times in his life he had fought, but he had never
-felt a grip at his throat like the grip of Pierrot’s hands. They almost
-crushed the life from him at once. His neck snapped—a little more, and
-it would have broken. He struck out blindly from his back, and twisted
-himself to throw off the weight of the halfbreed’s body. But Pierrot was
-fastened there, as Sekoosew the ermine had fastened itself at the
-jugular of the partridge, and Bush McTaggart’s jaws slowly swung open,
-and his face began to turn from red to purple.
-
-Cold air rushing through the door, Pierrot’s voice and the sound of
-battle roused Nepeese quickly to consciousness and the power to raise
-herself from the floor. She had fallen near Baree, and as she lifted her
-head, her eyes rested for a moment on the dog before they went to the
-fighting men. Baree was alive! His body was twitching; his eyes were
-open; he made an effort to raise his head as she was looking at him.
-
-Then she dragged herself to her knees and turned to the men, and
-Pierrot, even in the blood-red fury of his desire to kill, must have
-heard the sharp cry of joy that came from her when she saw that it was
-the Factor from Lac Bain who was underneath. With a tremendous effort
-she staggered to her feet, and for a few moments she stood swaying
-unsteadily as her brain and her body readjusted themselves. Even as she
-looked down upon the blackening face from which Pierrot’s fingers were
-choking the life, Bush McTaggart’s hand was groping blindly for his
-pistol. He found it. Unseen by Pierrot, he dragged it from its holster.
-It was one of the black devils of chance that favoured him again, for in
-his excitement he had not snapped the safety shut after shooting Baree.
-Now he had only strength left to pull the trigger. Twice his forefinger
-closed. Twice there came deadened explosion close to Pierrot’s body.
-
-In Pierrot’s face Nepeese saw what had happened. Her heart died in her
-breast as she looked upon the swift and terrible change wrought by
-sudden death. Slowly Pierrot straightened. His eyes were wide for a
-moment—wide and staring. He made no sound. She could not see his lips
-move. And then he fell toward her, so that McTaggart’s body was free.
-Blindly and with an agony that gave no evidence in cry or word she flung
-herself down beside him. He was dead.
-
-How long Nepeese lay there, how long she waited for Pierrot to move, to
-open his eyes, to breathe, she would never know. In that time McTaggart
-rose to his feet and stood leaning against the wall, the pistol in his
-hand, his brain clearing itself as he saw his final triumph. His work
-did not frighten him. Even in that tragic moment as he stood against the
-wall, his defense—if it ever came to a defense—framed itself in his
-mind. Pierrot had murderously assaulted him—without cause. In
-self-defense he had killed him. Was he not the Factor of Lac Bain? Would
-not the Company and the law believe his word before that of this girl?
-His brain leaped with the old exultation. It would never come to that—to
-a betrayal of this struggle and death in the cabin—after he had finished
-with her! She would not be known for all time as _La Bête Noir_. No,
-they would bury Pierrot, and she would return to Lac Bain with him. If
-she had been helpless before, she was ten times more helpless now. She
-would never tell of what had happened in the cabin.
-
-He forgot the presence of death as he looked at her, bowed over her
-father so that her hair covered him like a silken shroud. He replaced
-the pistol in its holster and drew a deep breath into his lungs. He was
-still a little unsteady on his feet, but his face was again the face of
-a devil. He took a step, and it was then there came a sound to rouse the
-girl. In the shadow of the farther wall Baree had struggled to his
-haunches, and now he growled.
-
-Slowly Nepeese lifted her head. A power which she could not resist drew
-her eyes up until she was looking into the face of Bush McTaggart. She
-had almost lost consciousness of his presence; her senses were cold and
-deadened—it was as if her own heart had stopped beating along with
-Pierrot’s. What she saw in the Factor’s face dragged her out of the
-numbness of her grief back to the abyss of her own peril. He was
-standing over her. In his face there was no pity, nothing of horror at
-what he had done—only an insane exultation as he looked—not at Pierrot’s
-dead body, but at her. He put out a hand, and it rested on her head. She
-felt his thick fingers crumpling her hair, and his eyes blazed like
-embers of fire behind watery films. She struggled to rise, but with his
-hands at her hair he held her down.
-
-“Great God!” she breathed.
-
-She uttered no other words, no plea for mercy, no other sound but a dry,
-hopeless sob. In that moment neither of them heard or saw Baree. Twice
-in crossing the cabin his hind-quarters had sagged to the floor. Now he
-was close to McTaggart. He wanted to give a single lunge to the
-man-brute’s back and snap his thick neck as he would have broken a
-caribou-bone. But he had no strength. He was still partially paralyzed
-from his fore-shoulder back. But his jaws were like iron, and they
-closed savagely on McTaggart’s leg.
-
-With a yell of pain the Factor released his hold on the Willow, and she
-staggered to her feet. For a precious half-minute she was free, and as
-the Factor kicked and struck to loose Baree’s hold, she ran to the cabin
-door and out into the day. The cold air struck her face; it filled her
-lungs with new strength; and without thought of where hope might lie she
-ran through the snow into the forest.
-
-McTaggart appeared at the door just in time to see her disappear. His
-leg was torn where Baree had fastened his fangs, but he felt no pain as
-he ran in pursuit of the girl. She could not go far. An exultant cry,
-inhuman as the cry of a beast, came in a great breath from his gaping
-mouth as he saw that she was staggering weakly as she fled. He was
-halfway to the edge of the forest when Baree dragged himself over the
-threshold. His jaws were bleeding where McTaggart had kicked him again
-and again before his fangs gave way. Halfway between his ears was a
-seared spot, as if a red-hot poker had been laid there for an instant.
-This was where McTaggart’s bullet had gone. A quarter of an inch deeper,
-and it would have meant death. As it was, it had been like the blow of a
-heavy club, paralyzing his senses and sending him limp and unconscious
-against the wall. He could move on his feet now without falling, and
-slowly he followed in the tracks of the man and the girl.
-
-As she ran, Nepeese’s mind became all at once clear and reasoning. She
-turned into the narrow trail over which McTaggart had followed her once
-before, but just before reaching the chasm, she swung sharply to the
-right. She could see McTaggart. He was not running fast, but was gaining
-steadily, as if enjoying the sight of her helplessness, as he had
-enjoyed it in another way on that other day. Two hundred yards below the
-deep pool into which she had pushed the Factor—just beyond the shallows
-out of which he had dragged himself to safety—was the beginning of Blue
-Feather’s Gorge. An appalling thing was shaping itself in her mind as
-she ran to it—a thing that with each gasping breath she drew became more
-and more a great and glorious hope. At last she reached it and looked
-down. And as she looked, there whispered up out of her soul and trembled
-on her lips the swan-song of her mother’s people.
-
- Our fathers—come!
- Come from out of the valley.
- Guide us—for to-day we die,
- And the winds whisper of death!
-
-She had raised her arms. Against the white wilderness beyond the chasm
-she stood tall and slim. Fifty yards behind her the Factor from Lac Bain
-stopped suddenly in his tracks. “Ah,” he mumbled. “Is she not
-wonderful!” And behind McTaggart, coming faster and faster, was Baree.
-
-Again the Willow looked down. She was at the edge, for she had no fear
-in this hour. Many times she had clung to Pierrot’s hand as she looked
-over. Down there no one could fall and live. Fifty feet below her the
-water which never froze was smashing itself into froth among the rocks.
-It was deep and black and terrible, for between the narrow rock walls
-the sun did not reach it. The roar of it filled the Willow’s ears.
-
-She turned and faced McTaggart.
-
-Even then he did not guess, but came toward her again, his arms
-stretched out ahead of him. Fifty yards! It was not much, and shortening
-swiftly.
-
-Once more the Willow’s lips moved. After all, it is the mother soul that
-gives us faith to meet eternity—and it was to the spirit of her mother
-that the Willow called in the hour of death. With the call on her lips
-she plunged into the abyss, her wind-whipped hair clinging to her in a
-glistening shroud.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII
-
-
-A moment later the Factor from Lac Bain stood at the edge of the chasm.
-His voice had called out in a hoarse bellow—a wild cry of disbelief and
-horror that had formed the Willow’s name as she disappeared. He looked
-down, clutching his huge red hands and staring in ghastly suspense at
-the boiling water and black rocks far below. There was nothing there
-now—no sign of her, no last flash of her pale face and streaming hair in
-the white foam. And she had done _that_—to save herself from him!
-
-The soul of the man-beast turned sick within him, so sick that he
-staggered back, his vision blinded and his legs tottering under him. He
-had killed Pierrot, and it had been a triumph; all his life he had
-played the part of the brute with a stoicism and cruelty that had known
-no shock—nothing like this that overwhelmed him now, numbing him to the
-marrow of his bones until he stood like one paralyzed. He did not see
-Baree. He did not hear the dog’s whining cries at the edge of the chasm.
-For a few moments the world turned black for him; and then, dragging
-himself out of his stupor, he ran frantically along the edge of the
-gorge, looking down wherever his eyes could reach the water, striving
-for a glimpse of her. At last it grew too deep. There was no hope. She
-was gone—and she had faced _that_ to escape him!
-
-He mumbled that fact over and over again, stupidly, thickly, as though
-his brain could grasp nothing beyond it. She was dead. And Pierrot was
-dead. And he, in a few minutes, had accomplished it all.
-
-He turned back toward the cabin—not by the trail over which he had
-pursued Nepeese, but straight through the thick bush. Great flakes of
-snow had begun to fall. He looked at the sky, where banks of dark clouds
-were rolling up from the south and east. The sun went out. Soon there
-would be a storm—a heavy snowstorm. The big flakes falling on his naked
-hands and face set his mind to work. It was lucky for him, this storm.
-It would cover everything—the fresh trails, even the grave he would dig
-for Pierrot.
-
-It does not take such a man as the Factor long to recover from a moral
-concussion. By the time he came in sight of the cabin his mind was again
-at work on physical things—on the necessities of the situation. The
-appalling thing, after all, was not that both Pierrot and Nepeese were
-dead, but that his dream was shattered. It was not that Nepeese was
-dead, but that he had lost her. This was his vital disappointment. The
-other thing—his crime—it was easy to cover.
-
-It was not sentiment that made him dig Pierrot’s grave close to the
-princess mother’s under the tall spruce. It was not sentiment that made
-him dig the grave at all, but caution. He buried Pierrot decently. Then
-he poured Pierrot’s stock of kerosene where it would be most effective
-and touched a match to it. He stood in the edge of the forest until the
-cabin was a mass of flames. The snow was falling thickly. The freshly
-made grave was a white mound, and the trails were filling. For the
-physical things he had done there was no fear in Bush McTaggart’s heart
-as he turned back toward Lac Bain. No one would ever look into the grave
-of Pierrot du Quesne. And there was no one to betray him if such a
-miracle happened. But of one thing his black soul would never be able to
-free itself. Always he would see the pale, triumphant face of the Willow
-as she stood facing him in that moment of her glory when, even as she
-was choosing death rather than him, he had cried to himself: “Ah! Is she
-not wonderful!”
-
-As Bush McTaggart had forgotten Baree, so Baree had forgotten the Factor
-from Lac Bain. When McTaggart had run along the edge of the chasm, Baree
-had squatted himself in the foot-beaten plot of snow where Nepeese had
-last stood, his body stiffened and his forefeet braced as he looked
-down. He had seen her take the leap. Many times that summer he had
-followed her in her daring dives into the deep, quiet water of the pool.
-But this was a tremendous distance. She had never dived into a place
-like that. He could see the black heads of the rocks, appearing and
-disappearing in the whirling foam like the heads of monsters at play;
-the roar of the water filled him with dread; his eyes caught the swift
-rush of crumbled ice between the rock walls. And she had gone down
-there!
-
-He had a great desire to follow her, to jump in, as he had always jumped
-in after her. She was surely down there, even though he could not see
-her. Probably she was playing among the rocks and hiding herself in the
-white froth and wondering why he didn’t come. But he hesitated—hesitated
-with his head and neck over the abyss, and his forefeet giving way a
-little in the snow. With an effort he dragged himself back and whined.
-He caught the fresh scent of McTaggart’s moccasins in the snow, and the
-whine changed slowly into a long snarl. He looked over again. Still he
-could not see her. He barked—the short, sharp signal with which he
-always called her. There was no answer. Again and again he barked, and
-always there was nothing but the roar of the water that came back to
-him. Then for a few moments he stood back, silent and listening, his
-body shivering with the strange dread that was possessing him.
-
-The snow was falling now, and McTaggart had returned to the cabin. After
-a little Baree followed in the trail he had made along the edge of the
-chasm, and wherever McTaggart had stopped to peer over, Baree paused
-also. For a space his hatred of the man was burned up in his desire to
-join the Willow, and he continued along the gorge until, a quarter of a
-mile beyond where the Factor had last looked into it, he came to the
-narrow trail down which he and Nepeese had many time adventured in quest
-of rock-violets. The twisting path that led down the face of the cliff
-was filled with snow now, but Baree cleared his way through it until at
-last he stood at the edge of the unfrozen torrent. Nepeese was not here.
-He whined, and barked again, but this time there was in his signal to
-her an uneasy repression, a whimpering note which told that he did not
-expect a reply. For five minutes after that he sat on his haunches in
-the snow, stolid as a rock. What it was that came down out of the dark
-mystery and tumult of the chasm to him, what spirit-whispers of nature
-that told him the truth, it is beyond the power of reason to explain.
-But he listened, and he looked; and his muscles twitched as the truth
-grew in him; and at last he raised his head slowly until his black
-muzzle pointed to the white storm in the sky, and out of his throat
-there went forth the quavering, long-drawn howl of the husky who mourns
-outside the tepee of a master who is newly dead.
-
-On the trail, heading for Lac Bain, Bush McTaggart heard that cry and
-shivered.
-
-It was the smell of smoke, thickening in the air until it stung his
-nostrils, that drew Baree at last away from the chasm and back to the
-cabin. There was not much left when he came to the clearing. Where the
-cabin had been was a red-hot, smouldering mass. For a long time he sat
-watching it, still waiting and still listening. He no longer felt the
-effect of the bullet that had stunned him, but his senses were
-undergoing another change now, as strange and unreal as their struggle
-against that darkness of near-death in the cabin. In a space that had
-not covered more than an hour the world had twisted itself grotesquely
-for Baree. That long ago the Willow was sitting before her little mirror
-in the cabin, talking to him and laughing in her happiness, while he lay
-in vast contentment on the floor. And now there was no cabin, no
-Nepeese, no Pierrot. Quietly he struggled to comprehend. It was some
-time before he moved from under the thick balsams, for already a deep
-and growing suspicion began to guide his movements. He did not go nearer
-to the smouldering mass of the cabin, but slinking low, made his way
-about the circle of the open to the dog-corral. This took him under the
-tall spruce. For a full minute he paused here, sniffing at the freshly
-made mound under its white mantle of snow. When he went on, he slunk
-still lower, and his ears were flat against his head.
-
-The dog-corral was open and empty. McTaggart had seen to that. Again
-Baree squatted back on his haunches and sent forth the death-howl. This
-time it was for Pierrot. In it there was a different note from that of
-the howl he had sent forth from the chasm: it was positive, certain. In
-the chasm his cry had been tempered with doubt—a questioning hope,
-something that was so almost human that McTaggart had shivered on the
-trail. But Baree knew what lay in that freshly dug snow-covered grave. A
-scant three feet of earth could not hide its secret from him. There was
-death—definite and unequivocal. But for Nepeese he was still hoping and
-seeking.
-
-Until noon he did not go far from the cabin, but only once did he
-actually approach and sniff about the black pile of steaming timbers.
-Again and again he circled the edge of the clearing, keeping just within
-the bush and timber, sniffing the air and listening. Twice he went back
-to the chasm. Late in the afternoon there came to him a sudden impulse
-that carried him swiftly through the forest. He did not run openly now;
-caution, suspicion, and fear had roused in him afresh the instincts of
-the wolf. With his ears flattened against the side of his head, his tail
-drooping until the tip of it dragged the snow and his back sagging in
-the curious, evasive gait of the wolf, he scarcely made himself
-distinguishable from the shadows of the spruce and balsams.
-
-There was no faltering in the trail Baree made; it was straight as a
-rope might have been drawn through the forest, and it brought him, early
-in the dusk, to the open spot where Nepeese had fled with him that day
-she had pushed McTaggart over the edge of the precipice into the pool.
-In the place of the balsam shelter of that day there was now a
-water-tight birch-bark tepee which Pierrot had helped the Willow to make
-during the summer. Baree went straight to it and thrust in his head with
-a low and expectant whine.
-
-There was no answer. It was dark and cold in the tepee. He could make
-out indistinctly the two blankets that were always in it, the row of big
-tin boxes in which Nepeese kept their stores, and the stove which
-Pierrot had improvised out of scraps of iron and heavy tin. But Nepeese
-was not there. And there was no sign of her outside. The snow was
-unbroken except by his own trail. It was dark when he returned to the
-burned cabin. All that night he hung about the deserted dog-corral, and
-all through the night the snow fell steadily, so that by dawn he sank
-into it to his shoulders when he moved out into the clearing.
-
-But with day the sky had cleared. The sun came up, and the world was
-almost too dazzling for the eyes. It warmed Baree’s blood with new hope
-and expectation. His brain struggled even more eagerly than yesterday to
-comprehend. Surely the Willow would be returning soon! He would hear her
-voice. She would appear suddenly out of the forest. He would receive
-some signal from her. One of these things, or all of them, must happen.
-He stopped sharply in his tracks at every sound, and sniffed the air
-from every point of the wind. He was travelling ceaselessly. His body
-made deep trails in the snow around and over the huge white mound where
-the cabin had stood; his tracks led from the corral to the tall spruce,
-and they were as numerous as the footprints of a wolf-pack for half a
-mile up and down the chasm.
-
-On the afternoon of this day the second big impulse came to him. It was
-not reason, and neither was it instinct alone. It was the struggle
-halfway between, the brute mind fighting at its best with the mystery of
-an intangible thing—something that could not be seen by the eye or heard
-by the ear. Nepeese was not in the cabin, because there was no cabin.
-She was not at the tepee. He could find no trace of her in the chasm.
-She was not with Pierrot under the big spruce.
-
-Therefore, unreasoning but sure, he began to follow the old trap-line
-into the north and west.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII
-
-
-No man has ever looked clearly into the mystery of death as it is
-impinged upon the senses of the northern dog. It comes to him,
-sometimes, with the wind; most frequently it must come with the wind,
-and yet there are ten thousand masters in the northland who will swear
-that their dogs have given warning of death hours before it actually
-came; and there are many of these thousands who know from experience
-that their teams will stop a quarter or half a mile from a stranger
-cabin in which there is unburied dead.
-
-Yesterday Baree had smelled death, and he knew without process of
-reasoning that the dead was Pierrot. How he knew this, and why he
-accepted the fact as inevitable, is one of the mysteries which at times
-seems to give the direct challenge to those who concede nothing more
-than instinct to the brute mind. He knew that Pierrot was dead without
-exactly knowing what death was. But of one thing he was sure: he would
-never see Pierrot again; he would never hear his voice again; he would
-never hear again the _swish-swish-swish_ of his snowshoes in the trail
-ahead, and so on the trap-line he did not look for Pierrot. Pierrot was
-gone forever. But Baree had not yet associated death with Nepeese. He
-was filled with a great uneasiness; what came to him from out of the
-chasm had made him tremble with fear and suspense; he sensed the thrill
-of something strange, of something impending, and yet even as he had
-given the death-howl in the chasm, it must have been for Pierrot. For he
-believed that Nepeese was alive, and he was now just as sure that he
-would overtake her on the trap-line as he was positive yesterday that he
-would find her at the birch-bark tepee.
-
-Since yesterday morning’s breakfast with the Willow, Baree had gone
-without eating; to appease his hunger meant to hunt, and his mind was
-too filled with his quest of Nepeese for that. He would have gone hungry
-all that day, but in the third mile from the cabin he came to a trap in
-which there was a big snowshoe rabbit. The rabbit was still alive, and
-he killed it and ate his fill. Until dark he did not miss a trap. In one
-of them there was a lynx; in another a fisher-cat; out on the white
-surface of a lake he sniffed at a snowy mound under which lay the body
-of a red fox killed by one of Pierrot’s poison baits. Both the lynx and
-the fisher-cat were alive, and the steel chains of their traps clanked
-sharply as they prepared to give Baree battle. But Baree was
-uninterested. He hurried on, his uneasiness growing as the day darkened
-and he found no sign of the Willow.
-
-It was a wonderfully clear night after the storm—cold and brilliant,
-with the shadows standing out as clearly as living things. The third
-idea came to Baree now. He was, like all animals, largely of one idea at
-a time—a creature with whom all lesser impulses were governed by a
-single leading impulse. And this impulse, in the glow of the starlit
-night, was to reach as quickly as possible the first of Pierrot’s two
-cabins on the trap-line. There he would find Nepeese!
-
-We won’t call the process by which Baree came to this conclusion a
-process of reasoning; instinct or reasoning, whatever it was, a fixed
-and positive faith came to Baree just the same. He began to miss the
-traps in his haste to cover distance—to reach the cabin. It was
-twenty-five miles from Pierrot’s burned home to the first trap-cabin,
-and Baree had made ten of these by nightfall. The remaining fifteen were
-the most difficult. In the open spaces the snow was belly-deep and soft;
-frequently lie plunged through drifts in which for a few moments he was
-buried. Three times during the early part of the night Baree heard the
-savage dirge of the wolves. Once it was a wild pæan of triumph as the
-hunters pulled down their kill less than half a mile away in the deep
-forest. But the voice no longer called to him. It was repellent—a voice
-of hatred and of treachery. Each time that he heard it he stopped in his
-tracks and snarled, while his spine stiffened.
-
-At midnight Baree came to the tiny amphitheatre in the forest where
-Pierrot had cut the logs for the first of his trap-line cabins. For at
-least a minute Baree stood at the edge of the clearing, his ears very
-alert, his eyes bright with hope and expectation, while he sniffed the
-air. There was no smoke, no sound, no light in the one window of the log
-shack. His disappointment fell on him even as he stood there; again he
-sensed the fact of his aloneness, of the barrenness of his quest. There
-was a disheartened slouch to his body as he made his way through the
-snow to the cabin door. He had travelled twenty-five miles, and he was
-tired.
-
-The snow was drifted deep at the doorway, and here Baree sat down and
-whined. It was no longer the anxious, questing whine of a few hours ago.
-Now it voiced hopelessness and a deep despair. For half an hour he sat
-shivering with his back to the door and his face to the starlit
-wilderness, as if there still remained the fleeting hope that Nepeese
-might follow after him over the trail. Then he burrowed himself a hole
-deep in the snowdrift and passed the remainder of the night in uneasy
-slumber.
-
-With the first light of day Baree resumed the trail. He was not so alert
-this morning. There was the disconsolate droop to his tail which the
-Indians call the _Akoosewin_—the sign of the sick dog. And Baree was
-sick—not of body but of soul. The keenness of his hope had died, and he
-no longer expected to find the Willow. The second cabin at the far end
-of the trap-line drew him on, but it inspired in him none of the
-enthusiasm with which he had hurried to the first. He travelled slowly
-and spasmodically, his suspicions of the forests again replacing the
-excitement of his quest. He approached each of Pierrot’s traps and
-deadfalls cautiously, and twice he showed his fangs—once at a marten
-that snapped at him from under a root where it had dragged the trap in
-which it was caught, and the second time at a big snowy owl that had
-come to steal bait and was now a prisoner at the end of a steel chain.
-It may be that Baree thought it was Oohoomisew and that he still
-remembered vividly the treacherous assault and fierce battle of that
-night when, as a puppy, he was dragging his sore and wounded body
-through the mystery and fear of the big timber. For he did more than to
-show his fangs. He tore the owl into pieces.
-
-There were plenty of rabbits in Pierrot’s traps, and Baree did not go
-hungry. He reached the second trap-line cabin late in the afternoon,
-after ten hours of travelling. He met with no very great disappointment
-here, for he had not anticipated very much. The snow had banked this
-cabin even higher than the other. It lay three feet deep against the
-door, and the window was white with a thick coating of frost. At this
-place, which was close to the edge of a big barren, and unsheltered by
-the thick forests farther back, Pierrot had built a shelter for his
-firewood, and in this shelter Baree made his temporary home. All the
-next day he remained somewhere near the end of the trap-line, skirting
-the edge of the barren and investigating the short side line of a dozen
-traps which Pierrot and Nepeese had strung through a swamp in which
-there had been many signs of lynx. It was the third day before he set
-out on his return to the Gray Loon.
-
-He did not travel very fast, spending two days in covering the
-twenty-five miles between the first and the second trap-line cabins. At
-the second cabin he remained for three days, and it was on the ninth day
-that he reached the Gray Loon. There was no change. There were no tracks
-in the snow but his own, made nine days ago.
-
-Baree’s quest for Nepeese became now more or less involuntary, a sort of
-daily routine. For a week he made his burrow in the dog-corral, and at
-least twice between dawn and darkness he would go to the birch-bark
-tepee and the chasm. His trail, soon beaten hard in the snow, became as
-fixed as Pierrot’s trap-line. It cut straight through the forest to the
-tepee, swinging slightly to the east so that it crossed the frozen
-surface of the Willow’s swimming-pool. From the tepee it swung in a
-circle through a part of the forest where Nepeese had frequently
-gathered armfuls of crimson fire-flowers, and then to the chasm. Up and
-down the edge of the gorge it went, down into the little cup at the
-bottom of the chasm, and thence straight back to the dog-corral.
-
-And then, of a sudden, Baree made a change. He spent a night in the
-tepee. After that, whenever he was at the Gray Loon, during the day he
-always slept in the tepee. The two blankets were his bed—and they were a
-part of Nepeese. And there, all through the long winter, he waited.
-
-If Nepeese had returned in February and could have taken him unaware,
-she would have found a changed Baree. He was more than ever like a wolf;
-yet he never gave the wolf-howl now, and always he snarled deep in his
-throat when he heard the cry of the pack. For several weeks the old
-trap-line had supplied him with meat, but now he hunted. The tepee, in
-and out, was scattered with fur and bones. Once—alone—he caught a young
-deer in deep snow and killed it. Again, in the heart of a fierce
-February storm, he pursued a bull caribou so closely that it plunged
-over a cliff and broke its neck. He lived well, and in size and strength
-he was growing swiftly into a giant of his kind. In another six months
-he would be as large as Kazan, and his jaws were almost as powerful,
-even now.
-
-Three times that winter Baree fought—once with a lynx that sprang down
-upon him from a windfall while he was eating a freshly killed rabbit,
-and twice with two lone wolves. The lynx tore him unmercifully before it
-fled into the windfall. The younger of the wolves he killed; the other
-fight was a draw. More and more he became an outcast, living alone with
-his dreams and his smouldering hopes.
-
-And Baree did dream. Many times, as he lay in the tepee, he would hear
-the voice of Nepeese. He would hear her sweet calling, her laughter, the
-sound of his name, and often he would start up to his feet—the old Baree
-for a thrilling moment or two—only to lie down in his nest again with a
-low, grief-filled whine. And always when he heard the snap of a twig or
-some other sound in the forest, it was thought of Nepeese that flashed
-first into his brain. Some day she would return. That belief was a part
-of his existence as much as the sun and the moon and the stars.
-
-The winter passed, and spring came, and still Baree continued to haunt
-his old trails, even going now and then over the old trap-line as far as
-the first of the two cabins. The traps were rusted and sprung now; the
-thawing snow disclosed bones and feathers between their jaws; under the
-deadfalls were remnants of fur, and out on the ice of the lakes were
-picked skeletons of foxes and wolves that had taken the poison-baits.
-The last snow went. The swollen streams sang in the forests and cañons.
-The grass turned green, and the first flowers came.
-
-Surely this was the time for Nepeese to come home! He watched for her
-expectantly. He went still more frequently to their swimming-pool in the
-forest, and he hung closely to the burned cabin and the dog-corral.
-Twice he sprang into the pool and whined as he swam about, as though she
-surely must join him in their old water frolic. And now, as the spring
-passed and summer came, there settled upon him slowly the gloom and
-misery of utter hopelessness. The flowers were all out now, and even the
-bakneesh vines glowed like red fire in the woods. Patches of green were
-beginning to hide the charred heap where the cabin had stood, and the
-blue-flower vines that covered the princess mother’s grave were reaching
-out toward Pierrot’s, as if the princess mother herself were the spirit
-of them.
-
-All these things were happening, and the birds had mated and nested, and
-still Nepeese did not come! And at last something broke inside of Baree,
-his last hope, perhaps, his last dream; and one day he bade good-bye to
-the Gray Loon.
-
-No one can say what it cost him to go; no one can say how he fought
-against the things that were holding him to the tepee, the old
-swimming-pool, the familiar paths in the forest, and the two graves that
-were not so lonely now under the tall spruce. He went. He had no
-reason—simply went. It may be that there is a Master whose hand guides
-the beast as well as the man, and that we know just enough of this
-guidance to call it instinct. For, in dragging himself away, Baree faced
-the Great Adventure.
-
-It was there, in the north, waiting for him—and into the north he went.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIV
-
-
-It was early in August when Baree left the Gray Loon. He had no
-objective in view. But there was still left upon his mind, like the
-delicate impression of light and shadow on a negative, the memories of
-his earlier days. Things and happenings that he had almost forgotten
-recurred to him now, as his trail led him farther and farther away from
-the Gray Loon; and his earlier experiences became real again, pictures
-thrown out afresh in his mind by the breaking of the last ties that held
-him to the home of the Willow. Involuntarily he followed the trail of
-these impressions—of these past happenings, and slowly they helped to
-build up new interests for him. A year in his life was a long time—a
-decade of man’s experience. It was more than a year ago that he had left
-Kazan and Gray Wolf and the old windfall, and yet now there came back to
-him indistinct memories of those days of his earliest puppyhood, of the
-stream into which he had fallen, and of his fierce battle with
-Papayuchisew. It was his later experiences that roused the older
-memories. He came to the blind cañon up which Nepeese and Pierrot had
-chased him. That seemed but yesterday. He entered the little meadow, and
-stood beside the great rock that had almost crushed the life out of the
-Willow’s body; and then he remembered where Wakayoo, his big bear
-friend, had died under Pierrot’s rifle—and he smelled of Wakayoo’s
-whitened bones where they lay scattered in the green grass, with flowers
-growing up among them. A day and night he spent in the little meadow
-before he went back out of the cañon and into his old haunts along the
-creek, where Wakayoo had fished for him. There was another bear here
-now, and he also was fishing. Perhaps he was a son or a grandson of
-Wakayoo. Baree smelled where he had made his fish caches, and for three
-days he lived on fish before he struck into the North.
-
-And now, for the first time in many weeks, a bit of the old-time
-eagerness put speed into Baree’s feet. Memories that had been hazy and
-indistinct through forgetfulness were becoming realities again, and as
-he would have returned to the Gray Loon had Nepeese been there so now,
-with something of the feeling of a wanderer going home, he returned to
-the old beaver-pond.
-
-It was that most glorious hour of a summer’s day—sunset—when he reached
-it. He stopped a hundred yards away, with the pond still hidden from his
-sight, and sniffed the air, and listened. The pond was there. He caught
-the cool, honey smell of it. But Umisk, and Beaver-tooth, and all the
-others? Would he find them? He strained his ears to catch a familiar
-sound, and after a moment or two it came—a hollow splash in the water.
-He went quietly through the alders and stood at last close to the spot
-where he had first made the acquaintance of Umisk. The surface of the
-pond was undulating slightly; two or three heads popped up; he saw the
-torpedo-like wake of an old beaver towing a stick close to the opposite
-shore—he looked toward the dam, and it was as he had left it almost a
-year ago. He did not show himself for a time, but stood concealed in the
-young alders. He felt growing in him more and more a feeling of
-restfulness, a relaxation from the long strain of the lonely months
-during which he had waited for Nepeese. With a long breath he lay down
-among the alders, with his head just enough exposed to give him a clear
-view. As the sun settled lower the pond became alive. Out on the shore
-where he had saved Umisk from the fox came another generation of young
-beavers—three of them, fat and waddling. Very softly Baree whined.
-
-All that night he lay in the alders. The beaver-pond became his home
-again. Conditions were changed, of course, and as days grew into weeks
-the inhabitants of Beaver-tooth’s colony showed no signs of accepting
-the grown-up Baree as they had accepted the baby Baree of long ago. He
-_was_ big, black, and wolfish now—a long-fanged and formidable looking
-creature, and though he offered no violence he was regarded by the
-beavers with a deep-seated feeling of fear and suspicion. On the other
-hand, Baree no longer felt the old puppyish desire to play with the baby
-beavers, so their aloofness did not trouble him as in those other days.
-Umisk was grown up, too, a fat and prosperous young buck who was just
-taking unto himself this year a wife, and who was at present very busy
-gathering his winter’s rations. It is entirely probable that he did not
-associate the big black beast he saw now and then with the little Baree
-with whom he had smelled noses once upon a time, and it is quite likely
-that Baree did not recognize Umisk except as a _part_ of the memories
-that had remained with him.
-
-All through the month of August Baree made the beaver-pond his
-headquarters. At times his excursions kept him away for two or three
-days at a time. These journeys were always into the north, sometimes a
-little east and sometimes a little west, but never again into the south.
-And at last, early in September, he left the beaver-pond for good.
-
-For many days his wanderings carried him in no one particular direction.
-He followed the hunting, living chiefly on rabbits and that
-simple-minded species of partridge known as the “fool hen.” This diet,
-of course, was given variety by other things as they happened to come
-his way. Wild currants and raspberries were ripening, and Baree was fond
-of these. He also liked the bitter berries of the mountain ash, which,
-along with the soft balsam and spruce pitch which he licked with his
-tongue now and then, were good medicine for him. In shallow water he
-occasionally caught a fish; now and then he hazarded a cautious battle
-with a porcupine, and if he was successful he feasted on the tenderest
-and most luscious of all the flesh that made up his menu. Twice in
-September he killed young deer. The big “burns” that he occasionally
-came to no longer held terrors for him; in the midst of plenty he forgot
-the days in which he had gone hungry. In October he wandered as far west
-as the Geikie River, and then northward to Wollaston Lake, which was a
-good hundred miles north of the Gray Loon. The first week in November he
-turned south again, following the Canoe River for a distance, and then
-swinging westward along a twisting creek called The Little Black Bear
-With No Tail. More than once during these weeks Baree came into touch
-with man, but, with the exception of the Cree hunter at the upper end of
-Wollaston Lake, no man had seen him. Three times in following the Geikie
-he lay crouched in the brush while canoes passed; half a dozen times, in
-the stillness of night, he nosed about cabins and tepees in which there
-was life, and once he came so near to the Hudson’s Bay Company post at
-Wollaston that he could hear the barking of dogs and the shouting of
-their masters. And always he was seeking—questing for the thing that had
-gone out of his life. At the thresholds of the cabins he sniffed;
-outside of the tepees he circled close, gathering the wind; the canoes
-he watched with eyes in which there was a hopeful gleam. Once he thought
-the wind brought him the scent of Nepeese, and all at once his legs grew
-weak under his body and his heart seemed to stop beating. It was only
-for a moment or two. She came out of the tepee—an Indian girl with her
-hands full of willow-work—and Baree slunk away unseen.
-
-It was almost December when Lerue, a halfbreed from Lac Bain, saw
-Baree’s footprints in freshly fallen snow, and a little later caught a
-flash of him in the bush.
-
-“Mon Dieu, I tell you his feet are as big as my hand, and he is as black
-as a raven’s wing with the sun on it!” he exclaimed in the Company’s
-store at Lac Bain. “A fox? _Non!_ He is half as big as a bear. A
-wolf—_oui_! And black as the devil, M’sieus.”
-
-McTaggart was one of those who heard. He was putting his signature in
-ink to a letter he had written to the Company when Lerue’s words came to
-him. His hand stopped so suddenly that a drop of ink spattered on the
-letter. Through him there ran a curious shiver as he looked over at the
-halfbreed. Just then Marie came in. McTaggart had brought her back from
-her tribe. Her big, dark eyes had a sick look in them, and some of her
-wild beauty had gone since a year ago.
-
-“He was gone like—that!” Lerue was saying, with a snap of his fingers.
-He saw Marie, and stopped.
-
-“Black, you say?” McTaggart said carelessly, without lifting his eyes
-from his writing. “Did he not bear some dog mark?”
-
-Lerue shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“He was gone like the wind, M’sieu. But he was a wolf.”
-
-With scarcely a sound that the others could hear Marie had whispered
-into the Factor’s ear, and folding his letter McTaggart rose quickly and
-left the store. He was gone an hour. Lerue and the others were puzzled.
-It was not often that Marie came into the store; it was not often that
-they saw her at all. She remained hidden in the Factor’s log house, and
-each time that he saw her Lerue thought that her face was a little
-thinner than the last, and her eyes bigger and hungrier looking. In his
-own heart there was a great yearning. Many a night he passed the little
-window beyond which he knew that she was sleeping; often he looked to
-catch a glimpse of her pale face, and he lived in the one happiness of
-knowing that Marie understood, and that into her eyes there came for an
-instant a different light when their glances met. No one else knew. The
-secret lay between them—and patiently Lerue waited and watched.
-“Someday,” he kept saying to himself—“Someday”—and that was all. The one
-word carried a world of meaning and of hope. When that day came he would
-take Marie straight to the Missioner over at Fort Churchill, and they
-would be married. It was a dream—a dream that made the long days and the
-longer nights on the trap-line patiently endured. Now they were both
-slaves to the environing Power. But—someday——
-
-Lerue was thinking of this when McTaggart returned at the end of the
-hour. The Factor came straight up to where the half dozen of them were
-seated about the big box stove, and with a grunt of satisfaction shook
-the freshly fallen snow from his shoulders.
-
-“Pierre Eustach has accepted the Government’s offer, and is going to
-guide that map-making party up into the Barrens this winter,” he
-announced. “You know, Lerue—he has a hundred and fifty traps and
-deadfalls set, and a big poison-bait country. A good line, eh? And I
-have leased it of him for the season. It will give me the outdoor work I
-need—three days on the trail, three days here. Eh, what do you say to
-the bargain?”
-
-“It is good,” said Lerue.
-
-“Yes, it is good,” said Roget.
-
-“A wide fox country,” said Mons Roule.
-
-“And easy to travel,” murmured Valence in a voice that was almost like a
-woman’s.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXV
-
-
-The trap-line of Pierre Eustach ran thirty miles straight west of Lac
-Bain. It was not as long a line as Pierrot’s had been, but it was like a
-main artery running through the heart of a rich fur country. It had
-belonged to Pierre Eustach’s father, and his grandfather, and his
-great-grandfather, and beyond that it reached, Pierre averred, back to
-the very pulse of the finest blood in France. The books at McTaggart’s
-post went back only as far as the great-grandfather end of it, the older
-evidence of ownership being at Churchill. It was the finest game country
-between Reindeer Lake and the Barren Lands. It was in December that
-Baree came to it.
-
-Again he was travelling southward in a slow and wandering fashion,
-seeking food in the deep snows. The _Kistisew Kestin_, or Great Storm,
-had come earlier than usual this winter, and for a week after it
-scarcely a hoof or claw was moving. Baree, unlike the other creatures,
-did not bury himself in the snow and wait for the skies to clear and
-crust to form. He was big, and powerful, and restless. Less than two
-years old, he weighed a good eighty pounds. His pads were broad and
-wolfish. His chest and shoulders were like a Malemute’s, heavy and yet
-muscled for speed. He was wider between the eyes than the wolf-breed
-husky, and his eyes were larger, and entirely clear of the _Wuttooi_, or
-blood-film, that marks the wolf and also to an extent the husky. His
-jaws were like Kazan’s, perhaps even more powerful. Through all that
-week of the Big Storm he travelled without food. There were four days of
-snow, with driving blizzards and fierce winds, and after that three days
-of intense cold in which every living creature kept to their warm
-dugouts in the snow. Even the birds had burrowed themselves in. One
-might have walked on the backs of caribou and moose and not have guessed
-it. Baree sheltered himself during the worst of the storm but did not
-allow the snow to gather over him.
-
-Every trapper from Hudson’s Bay to the country of the Athabasca knew
-that after the Big Storm the famished fur animals would be seeking food,
-and that traps and deadfalls properly set and baited stood the biggest
-chance of the year of being filled. Some of them set out over their
-trap-lines on the sixth day; some on the seventh, and others on the
-eighth. It was on the seventh day that Bush McTaggart started over
-Pierre Eustach’s line, which was now his own for the season. It took him
-two days to uncover the traps, dig the snow from them, rebuild the
-fallen “trap-houses,” and rearrange the baits. On the third day he was
-back at Lac Bain.
-
-It was on this day that Baree came to the cabin at the far end of
-McTaggart’s line. McTaggart’s trail was fresh in the snow about the
-cabin, and the instant Baree sniffed of it every drop of blood in his
-body seemed to leap suddenly with a strange excitement. It took perhaps
-half a minute for the scent that filled his nostrils to associate itself
-with what had gone before, and at the end of that half-minute there
-rumbled in Baree’s chest a deep and sullen growl. For many minutes after
-that he stood like a black rock in the snow, watching the cabin. Then
-slowly he began circling about it, drawing nearer and nearer, until at
-last he was sniffing at the threshold. No sound or smell of life came
-from inside, but he could smell the _old_ smell of McTaggart. Then he
-faced the wilderness—the direction in which the trap-line ran back to
-Lac Bain. He was trembling. His muscles twitched. He whined. Pictures
-were assembling more and more vividly in his mind—the fight in the
-cabin, Nepeese, the wild chase through the snow to the chasm’s edge—even
-the memory of that age-old struggle when McTaggart had caught him in the
-rabbit snare. In his whine there was a great yearning, almost
-expectation. Then it died slowly away. After all, the scent in the snow
-was of a thing that he had hated and wanted to kill, and not of anything
-that he had loved. For an instant nature had impressed on him the
-significance of associations—a brief space only, and then it was gone.
-The whine died away, but in its place came again that ominous growl.
-
-Slowly he followed the trail and a quarter of a mile from the cabin
-struck the first trap on the line. Hunger had caved in his sides until
-he was like a starved wolf. In the first trap-house McTaggart had placed
-as bait the hind-quarter of a snowshoe rabbit. Baree reached in
-cautiously. He had learned many things on Pierrot’s line: he had learned
-what the snap of a trap meant; he had felt the cruel pain of steel jaws;
-he knew better than the shrewdest fox what a deadfall would do when the
-trigger was sprung—and Nepeese herself had taught him that he was never
-to touch a poison-bait. So he closed his teeth gently in the rabbit
-flesh and drew it forth as cleverly as McTaggart himself could have
-done. He visited five traps before dark, and ate the five baits without
-springing a pan. The sixth was a deadfall. He circled about this until
-he had beaten a path in the snow. Then he went on into a warm balsam
-swamp and found himself a bed for the night.
-
-The next day saw the beginning of the struggle that was to follow
-between the wits of man and beast. To Baree the encroachment of Bush
-McTaggart’s trap-line was not war; it was existence. It was to furnish
-him food, as Pierrot’s line had furnished him food for many weeks. But
-he sensed the fact that in this instance he was law-breaker and had an
-enemy to outwit. Had it been good hunting weather he might have gone on,
-for the unseen hand that was guiding his wanderings was drawing him
-slowly but surely back to the old beaver pond and the Gray Loon. As it
-was, with the snow deep and soft under him—so deep that in places he
-plunged into it over his ears—McTaggart’s trap-line was like a trail of
-manna made for his special use. He followed in the factor’s snowshoe
-tracks, and in the third trap killed a rabbit. When he had finished with
-it nothing but the hair and crimson patches of blood lay upon the snow.
-Starved for many days, he was filled with a wolfish hunger, and before
-the day was over he robbed the bait from a full dozen of McTaggart’s
-traps. Three times he struck poison-baits—venison or caribou fat in the
-heart of which was a dose of strychnine, and each time his keen nostrils
-detected the danger. Pierrot had more than once noted the amazing fact
-that Baree could sense the presence of poison even when it was most
-skillfully injected into the frozen carcass of a deer. Foxes and wolves
-ate of flesh from which his super-sensitive power of detecting the
-presence of deadly danger turned him away. So he passed Bush McTaggart’s
-poisoned tidbits, sniffing them on the way, and leaving the story of his
-suspicion in the manner of his footprints in the snow. Where McTaggart
-had halted at midday to cook his dinner Baree made these same cautious
-circles with his feet.
-
-The second day, being less hungry and more keenly alive to the hated
-smell of his enemy, Baree ate less but was more destructive. McTaggart
-was not as skillful as Pierre Eustach in keeping the scent of his hands
-from the traps and “houses,” and every now and then the smell of him was
-strong in Baree’s nose. This wrought in Baree a swift and definite
-antagonism, a steadily increasing hatred where a few days before hatred
-was almost forgotten. There is, perhaps, in the animal mind a process of
-simple computation which does not quite achieve the distinction of
-reason, and which is not altogether instinct, but which produces results
-that might be ascribed to either. Baree did not add two and two together
-to make four; he did not go back step by step to prove to himself that
-the man to whom this trap-line belonged was the cause of all his griefs
-and troubles—but he _did_ find himself possessed of a deep and yearning
-hatred. McTaggart was the one creature except the wolves that he had
-ever hated; it was McTaggart who had hurt him, McTaggart who had hurt
-Pierrot, McTaggart who had made him lose his beloved Nepeese—_and
-McTaggart was here on this trap-line_! If he had been wandering before,
-without object or destiny, he was given a mission now. It was to keep to
-the traps. To feed himself. And to vent his hatred and his vengeance as
-he lived.
-
-The second day, in the centre of a lake, he came upon the body of a wolf
-that had died of one of the poison-baits. For a half-hour he mauled the
-dead beast until its skin was torn into ribbons. He did not taste the
-flesh. It was repugnant to him. It was his vengeance on the wolf breed.
-He stopped when he was half a dozen miles from Lac Bain, and turned
-back. At this particular point the line crossed a frozen stream beyond
-which was an open plain, and over that plain came—when the wind was
-right—the smoke and smell of the Post. The second night Baree lay with a
-full stomach in a thicket of banksian pine; the third day he was
-travelling westward over the trap-line again.
-
-Early on this morning Bush McTaggart started out to gather his catch,
-and where he crossed the stream six miles from Lac Bain he first saw
-Baree’s tracks. He stopped to examine them with sudden and unusual
-interest, falling at last on his knees, whipping off the glove from his
-right hand, and picking up a single hair.
-
-“The black wolf!”
-
-He uttered the words in an odd, hard voice, and involuntarily his eyes
-turned straight in the direction of the Gray Loon. After that, even more
-carefully than before, he examined one of the clearly impressed tracks
-in the snow. When he rose to his feet there was in his face the look of
-one who had made an unpleasant discovery.
-
-“A black wolf!” he repeated, and shrugged his shoulders. “Bah! Lerue is
-a fool. It is a dog.” And then, after a moment, he muttered in a voice
-scarcely louder than a whisper, “_her dog_.”
-
-He went on, travelling in the trail of the dog. A new excitement
-possessed him that was more thrilling than the excitement of the hunt.
-Being human, it was his privilege to add two and two together, and out
-of two and two he made—Baree. There was little doubt in his mind. The
-thought had flashed on him first when Lerue had mentioned the black
-wolf. He was convinced after his examination of the tracks. They were
-the tracks of a dog, and the dog was black. Then he came to the first
-trap that had been robbed of its bait.
-
-Under his breath he cursed. The bait was gone, and the trap was
-unsprung. The sharpened stick that had transfixed the bait was pulled
-out clean.
-
-All that day Bush McTaggart followed a trail where Baree had left traces
-of his presence. Trap after trap he found robbed. On the lake he came
-upon the mangled wolf. From the first disturbing excitement of his
-discovery of Baree’s presence his humour changed slowly to one of rage,
-and his rage increased as the day dragged out. He was not unacquainted
-with four-footed robbers of the trap-line, but usually a wolf or a fox
-or a dog who had grown adept in thievery troubled only a few traps. But
-in this case Baree was travelling straight from trap to trap, and his
-footprints in the snow showed that he stopped at each. There was, to
-McTaggart, almost a human devilishness to his work. He evaded the
-poisons. Not once did he stretch his head or paw within the danger zone
-of a deadfall. For apparently no reason whatever he had destroyed a
-splendid mink, whose glossy fur lay scattered in worthless bits over the
-snow. Toward the end of the day McTaggart came to a deadfall in which a
-lynx had died. Baree had torn the silvery flank of the animal until the
-skin was of less than half value. McTaggart cursed aloud, and his breath
-came hot.
-
-At dusk he reached the shack Pierre Eustach had built midway of his
-line, and took inventory of his fur. It was not more than a third of a
-catch; the lynx was half ruined, a mink was torn completely in two. The
-second day he found still greater ruin, still more barren traps. He was
-like a madman. When he arrived at the second cabin, late in the
-afternoon, Baree’s tracks were not an hour old in the snow. Three times
-during the night he heard the dog howling.
-
-The third day McTaggart did not return to Lac Bain, but began a cautious
-hunt for Baree. An inch or two of fresh snow had fallen, and as if to
-take even greater measure of vengeance from his man-enemy Baree had left
-his footprints freely within a radius of a hundred yards of the cabin.
-It was half an hour before McTaggart could pick out the straight trail,
-and he followed this for two hours into a thick banksian swamp. Baree
-kept with the wind. Now and then he caught the scent of his pursuer; a
-dozen times he waited until the other was so close he could hear the
-snap of brush, or the metallic click of twigs against his rifle barrel.
-And then, with a sudden inspiration that brought the curses afresh to
-McTaggart’s lips, he swung in a wide circle and cut straight back for
-the trap-line. When the Factor reached the line, along toward noon,
-Baree had already begun his work. He had killed and eaten a rabbit; he
-had robbed three traps in the distance of a mile, and he was headed
-again straight over the trap-line for Post Lac Bain.
-
-It was the fifth day that Bush McTaggart returned to his post. He was in
-an ugly mood. Only Valence of the four Frenchmen was there, and it was
-Valence who heard his story, and afterward heard him cursing Marie. She
-came into the store a little later, big-eyed and frightened, one of her
-cheeks flaming red where McTaggart had struck her. While the storekeeper
-was getting her the canned salmon McTaggart wanted for his dinner
-Valence found the opportunity to whisper softly in her ear:
-
-“M’sieu Lerue has trapped a silver fox,” he said with low triumph. “He
-loves you, _Mon ami_, and he will have a splendid catch by spring—and
-sends you this message from his cabin up on The Little Black Bear With
-No Tail: _Be ready to fly when the soft snows come!_”
-
-Marie did not look at him, but she heard, and her eyes shone so like
-stars when the young storekeeper gave her the salmon that he said to
-Valence, when she had gone:
-
-“Blue Death, but she is still beautiful at times. Valence!”
-
-To which Valence nodded with an odd smile.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVI
-
-
-By the middle of January the war between Baree and Bush McTaggart had
-become more than an incident—more than a passing adventure to the beast,
-and more than an irritating happening to the man. It was, for the time,
-the elemental _raison d’etre_ of their lives. Baree hung to the
-trap-line. He haunted it like a devastating spectre, and each time that
-he sniffed afresh the scent of the Factor from Lac Bain he was impressed
-still more strongly with the instinct that he was avenging himself upon
-a deadly enemy. Again and again he outwitted McTaggart; he continued to
-strip his traps of their bait; the humour grew in him more strongly to
-destroy the fur he came across; his greatest pleasure came to be—not in
-eating—but in destroying. The fires of his hatred burned fiercer as the
-weeks passed, until at last he would snap and tear with his long fangs
-at the snow where McTaggart’s feet had passed. And all of the time, away
-back of his madness, there was a vision of Nepeese that continued to
-grow more and more clearly in his brain. That first Great Loneliness—the
-loneliness of the long days and longer nights of his waiting and seeking
-on the Gray Loon, oppressed him again as it had oppressed him in the
-early days of her loss. On starry or moonlit nights he sent forth his
-wailing cries for her again, and Bush McTaggart, listening to them in
-the middle of the night, felt strange shivers run up his spine.
-
-The man’s hatred was different than the beast’s, but perhaps even more
-implacable. With McTaggart it was not hatred alone. There was mixed with
-it an indefinable and superstitious fear, a thing he laughed at, a thing
-he cursed at, but which clung to him as surely as the scent of his trail
-clung to Baree’s nose. Baree no longer stood for the animal alone; _he
-stood for Nepeese_. That was the thought that insisted in growing in
-McTaggart’s ugly mind. Never a day passed now that he did not think of
-the Willow; never a night came and went without a visioning of her face.
-He even fancied, on a certain night of storm, that he heard her voice
-out in the wailing of the wind—and less than a minute later he heard
-faintly a distant howl out in the forest. That night his heart was
-filled with a leaden dread. He shook himself. He smoked his pipe until
-the cabin was blue. He cursed Baree, and the storm—but there was no
-longer in him the bullying courage of old. He had not ceased to hate
-Baree; he still hated him as he had never hated a man, but he had an
-even greater reason now for wanting to kill him. It came to him first in
-his sleep, in a restless dream, and after that it lived, and lived—_the
-thought that the spirit of Nepeese was guiding Baree in the ravaging of
-his trap-line_!
-
-After a time he ceased to talk at the Post about the Black Wolf that was
-robbing his line. The furs damaged by Baree’s teeth he kept out of
-sight, and to himself he kept his secret. He learned every trick and
-scheme of the hunters who killed foxes and wolves along the Barrens. He
-tried three different poisons, one so powerful that a single drop of it
-meant death; he tried strychnine in gelatin capsules, in deer fat,
-caribou fat, moose liver, and even in the flesh of porcupine. At last,
-in preparing his poisons, he dipped his hands in beaver oil before he
-handled the venoms and flesh so that there could be no human smell.
-Foxes, wolves, and even the mink and ermine died of these baits, but
-Baree came always so near—and no nearer. In January McTaggart poisoned
-every bait in his trap-houses. This produced at least one good result
-for him. From that day Baree no longer touched his baits, but ate only
-the rabbits he killed in the traps.
-
-It was in January that McTaggart caught his first glimpse of Baree. He
-had placed his rifle against a tree, and was a dozen feet away from it
-at the time. It was as if Baree knew, and had come to taunt him; for
-when the Factor suddenly looked up Baree was standing out clear from the
-dwarf spruce not twenty yards away from him, his white fangs gleaming
-and his eyes burning like coals. For a space McTaggart stared as if
-turned into stone. It was Baree. He recognized the white star, the
-white-tipped ear, and his heart thumped like a hammer in his breast.
-Very slowly he began to creep toward his rifle. His hand was reaching
-for it when like a flash Baree was gone.
-
-This gave McTaggart his new idea. He blazed himself a fresh trail
-through the forests parallel with his trap-line but at least five
-hundred yards distant from it. Wherever a trap or deadfall was set this
-new trail struck sharply in, like the point of a V, so that he could
-approach his line unobserved. By this strategy he believed that in time
-he was sure of getting a shot at the dog. Again it was the man who was
-reasoning, and again it was the man who was defeated. The first day that
-McTaggart followed his new trail Baree also struck that trail. For a
-little while it puzzled him. Three times he cut back and forth between
-the old and the new trail. Then there was no doubt. The new trail was
-the _fresh_ trail, and he followed in the footsteps of the Factor from
-Lac Bain. McTaggart did not know what was happening until his return
-trip, when he saw the story told in the snow. Baree had visited each
-trap, and without exception he had approached each time at the point of
-the inverted V. After a week of futile hunting, of lying in wait, of
-approaching at every point of the wind—a period during which McTaggart
-had twenty times cursed himself into fits of madness, another idea came
-to him. It was like an inspiration, and so simple that it seemed almost
-inconceivable that he had not thought of it before.
-
-He hurried back to Post Lac Bain.
-
-The second day after he was on the trail at dawn. This time he carried a
-pack in which there were a dozen strong wolf traps freshly dipped in
-beaver oil, and a rabbit which he had snared the previous night. Now and
-then he looked anxiously at the sky. It was clear until late in the
-afternoon, when banks of dark clouds began rolling up from the east.
-Half an hour later a few flakes of snow began falling. McTaggart let one
-of these drop on the back of his mittened hand, and examined it closely.
-It was soft and downy, and he gave vent to his satisfaction. It was what
-he wanted. Before morning there would be six inches of freshly fallen
-snow covering the trails.
-
-He stopped at the next trap-house and quickly set to work. First he
-threw away the poisoned bait in the “house” and replaced it with the
-rabbit. Then he began setting his wolf traps. Three of these he placed
-close to the “door” of the house, through which Baree would have to
-reach for the bait. The remaining nine he scattered at intervals of a
-foot or sixteen inches apart, so that when he was done a veritable
-cordon of traps guarded the house. He did not fasten the chains, but let
-them lay loose in the snow. If Baree got into one trap he would get into
-others and there would be no use of toggles. His work done, McTaggart
-hurried on through the thickening twilight of winter night to his shack.
-He was highly elated. This time there could be no such thing as failure.
-He had sprung every trap on his way from Lac Bain. In none of those
-traps would Baree find anything to eat until he came to the “nest” of
-twelve wolf traps.
-
-Seven inches of snow fell that night, and the whole world seemed turned
-into a wonderful white robe. Like billows of feathers the snow hung to
-the trees and shrubs; it gave tall white caps to the rocks, and
-underfoot it was so light that a cartridge dropped from the hand sank to
-the bottom of it. Baree was on the trap-line early. He was more cautious
-this morning, for there was no longer the scent or snowshoe track of
-McTaggart to guide him. He struck the first trap about halfway between
-Lac Bain and the shack in which the Factor was waiting. It was sprung,
-and there was no bait. Trap after trap he visited, and all of them he
-found sprung, and all without bait. He sniffed the air suspiciously,
-striving vainly to catch the tang of smoke, a whiff of the man-smell.
-Along toward noon he came to the “nest”—the twelve treacherous traps
-waiting for him with gaping jaws half a foot under the blanket of snow.
-For a full minute he stood well outside the danger line, sniffing the
-air, and listening. He saw the rabbit, and his jaws closed with a hungry
-click. He moved a step nearer. Still he was suspicious—for some strange
-and inexplicable reason he sensed danger. Anxiously he sought for it
-with his nose, his eyes, and his ears. And all about him there was a
-great silence and a great peace. His jaws clicked again. He whined
-softly. What was it stirring him? Where was the danger he could neither
-see nor smell? Slowly he circled about the trap-house; three times he
-circled round it, each circle drawing him a little nearer—until at last
-his feet almost touched the outer cordon of traps. Another minute he
-stood still; his ears flattened; in spite of the rich aroma of the
-rabbit in his nostrils _something was drawing him away_. In another
-moment he would have gone, but there came suddenly—and from directly
-behind the trap-house—a fierce little rat-like squeak, and the next
-instant Baree saw an ermine whiter than the snow tearing hungrily at the
-flesh of the rabbit. He forgot his strange premonition of danger. He
-growled fiercely, but his plucky little rival did not budge from his
-feast.
-
-And then he sprang straight into the “nest” that Bush McTaggart had made
-for him.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVII
-
-
-The next morning Bush McTaggart heard the clanking of a chain when he
-was still a good quarter of a mile from the “nest.” Was it a lynx? Was
-it a fisher-cat? Was it a wolf or a fox? _Or was it Baree?_ He half ran
-the rest of the distance, and at last he came to where he could see, and
-his heart leaped into his throat when he saw that he had caught his
-enemy. He approached, holding his rifle ready to fire if by any chance
-the dog should free himself.
-
-Baree lay on his side, panting from exhaustion and quivering with pain.
-A hoarse cry of exultation burst from McTaggart’s lips as he drew nearer
-and looked at the snow. It was packed hard for many feet about the
-trap-house, where Baree had struggled, and it was red with blood. The
-blood had come mostly from Baree’s jaws. They were dripping now as he
-glared at his enemy. The steel jaws hidden under the snow had done their
-merciless work well. One of his forefeet was caught well up toward the
-first joint; both hind feet were caught; a fourth trap had closed on his
-flank, and in tearing the jaws loose he had pulled off a patch of skin
-half as big as McTaggart’s hand. The snow told the story of his
-desperate fight all through the night; his bleeding jaws showed how
-vainly he had tried to break the imprisoning steel with his teeth. He
-was panting. His eyes were bloodshot. But even now, after all his hours
-of agony, neither his spirit nor his courage were broken. When he saw
-McTaggart he made a lunge to his feet, almost instantly crumpling down
-into the snow again. But his forefeet were braced. His head and chest
-remained up, and the snarl that came from his throat was tigerish in its
-ferocity. Here, at last—not more than a dozen feet from him—was the one
-thing in all the world that he hated more than he hated the wolf breed.
-And again he was helpless, as he had been helpless that other time in
-the rabbit snare.
-
-The fierceness of his snarl did not disturb Bush McTaggart now. He saw
-how utterly the other was at his mercy, and with an exultant laugh he
-leaned his rifle against a tree, pulled off his mittens, and began
-loading his pipe. This was the triumph he had looked forward to, the
-torture he had waited for. In his soul there was a hatred as deadly as
-Baree’s, the hatred that a man might have for a man. He had expected to
-send a bullet through the dog. But this was better—to watch him dying by
-inches, to taunt him as he would have taunted a human, to walk about him
-so that he could hear the clank of the traps and see the fresh blood
-drip as Baree twisted his tortured legs and body to keep facing him. It
-was a splendid vengeance. He was so engrossed in it that he did not hear
-the approach of snowshoes behind him. It was a voice—a man’s voice—that
-turned him round suddenly.
-
-The man was a stranger, and he was younger than McTaggart by ten years.
-At least he looked no more than thirty-five or six, even with the short
-growth of blonde beard he wore. He was of that sort that the average man
-would like at a glance; boyish, and yet a man; with clear eyes that
-looked out frankly from under the rim of his fur cap, a form lithe as an
-Indian’s, and a face altogether that did not bear the hard lines of the
-wilderness. Yet McTaggart knew before he had spoken that this man _was_
-of the wilderness, that he was heart and soul a part of it. His cap was
-of fisher-skin. He wore a windproof coat of softly tanned caribou skin,
-belted at the waist with a long sash, and Indian fringed. The inside of
-the coat was furred. He was travelling on the long, slender bush-country
-snowshoe; his pack, strapped over the shoulders, was small and compact;
-he was carrying his rifle in a cloth jacket. And from cap to snowshoes
-he was _travel-worn_. McTaggart, at a guess, would have said that he had
-travelled a thousand miles in the last few weeks. It was not this
-thought that sent the strange and chilling thrill up his back; but the
-sudden fear that in some strange way a whisper of the truth might have
-found its way down into the south—the truth of what had happened on the
-Gray Loon—and that this travel-worn stranger wore under his caribou-skin
-coat the badge of the Royal Northwest Mounted Police. For that instant
-it was almost a terror that possessed him, and he stood mute.
-
-The stranger had uttered only an amazed exclamation before. Now he said,
-with his eyes on Baree:
-
-“God save us, but you’ve got the poor devil in a right proper mess,
-haven’t you?”
-
-There was something in the voice that reassured McTaggart. It was not a
-suspicious voice, and he saw that the stranger was more interested in
-the captured animal than in himself. He drew a deep breath.
-
-“A trap robber,” he said.
-
-The stranger was staring still more closely at Baree. He thrust his gun
-stock downward in the snow and drew nearer to him.
-
-“God save us again—a dog!” he exclaimed.
-
-From behind, McTaggart was watching the man with the eyes of a ferret.
-
-“Yes, a dog,” he answered. “A wild dog, half wolf at least. He’s robbed
-me of a thousand dollars’ worth of fur this winter.”
-
-The stranger squatted himself before Baree, with his mittened hands
-resting on his knees, and his white teeth gleaming in a half smile.
-
-“You poor devil!” he said sympathetically. “So you’re a trap robber, eh?
-An outlaw? And—the Police have got you! And—God save us once more—they
-haven’t played you a very square game!”
-
-He rose and faced McTaggart.
-
-“I had to set a lot of traps like that,” the Factor apologized, his face
-reddening slightly under the steady gaze of the stranger’s blue eyes.
-Suddenly his animus rose. “And he’s going to die there, inch by inch.
-I’m going to let him starve, and rot in the traps, to pay for all he’s
-done.” He picked up his gun, and added, with his eyes on the stranger
-and his finger ready at the trigger, “I’m Bush McTaggart, the Factor at
-Lac Bain. Are you bound that way, M’sieu?”
-
-“A few miles. I’m bound up-country—beyond the Barrens.”
-
-McTaggart felt again the strange thrill.
-
-“Government?” he asked.
-
-The stranger nodded.
-
-“The—Police, perhaps,” persisted McTaggart.
-
-“Why, yes—of course—the Police,” said the stranger, looking straight
-into the Factor’s eyes. “And now, M’sieu, as a very great courtesy to
-the Law I’m going to ask you to send a bullet through that beast’s head
-before we go on. Will you? Or shall I?”
-
-“It’s the law of the line,” said McTaggart, “to let a trap robber rot in
-the traps. And that beast was a devil. Listen——”
-
-Swiftly, and yet leaving out none of the fine detail, he told of the
-weeks and months of strife between himself and Baree; of the maddening
-futility of all his tricks and schemes and the still more maddening
-cleverness of the beast he had at last succeeded in trapping.
-
-“He was a devil—that clever,” he cried fiercely when he had finished.
-“And now—would you shoot him, or let him lie there and die by inches, as
-the devil should?”
-
-The stranger was looking at Baree. His face was turned away from
-McTaggart. He said:
-
-“I guess you are right. Let the devil rot. If you’re heading for Lac
-Bain, M’sieu, I’ll travel a short distance with you now. It will take a
-couple of miles to straighten out the line of my compass.”
-
-He picked up his gun. McTaggart led the way. At the end of half an hour
-the stranger stopped, and pointed north.
-
-“Straight up there—a good five hundred miles,” he said, speaking as
-lightly as though he would reach home that night. “I’ll leave you here.”
-
-He made no offer to shake hands. But in going, he said,
-
-“You might report that John Madison has passed this way.”
-
-After that he travelled straight northward for half a mile through the
-deep forest. Then he swung westward for two miles, turned at a sharp
-angle into the south, and an hour after he had left McTaggart he was
-once more squatted on his heels almost within arms’ reach of Baree.
-
-And he was saying, as though speaking to a human companion:
-
-“So that’s what you’ve been, old boy. A trap robber, eh? An _outlaw_?
-And you beat him at the game for two months! And for that, because
-you’re a better beast than he is, he wants to let you die here as slow
-as you can. An _outlaw_!” His voice broke into a pleasant laugh, the
-sort of laugh that warms one, even a beast. “That’s funny. We ought to
-shake hands. Boy, by George, we had! You’re a wild one, he says. Well,
-so am I. Told him my name was John Madison. It ain’t. I’m Jim Carvel.
-And, oh Lord!—all I said was ‘Police.’ And that was right. It ain’t a
-lie. I’m wanted by the whole corporation—by every danged policeman
-between Hudson’s Bay and the Mackenzie River. Shake, old man. We’re in
-the same boat, an’ I’m glad to meet you!”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVIII
-
-
-Jim Carvel held out his hand, and the snarl that was in Baree’s throat
-died away. The man rose to his feet. He stood there, looking in the
-direction taken by Bush McTaggart, and chuckled in a curious, exultant
-sort of way. There was friendliness even in that chuckle. There was
-friendliness in his eyes and in the shine of his teeth as he looked
-again at Baree. About him there was something that seemed to make the
-gray day brighter, that seemed to warm the chill air—a strange something
-that radiated cheer and hope and comradeship just as a hot stove sends
-out the glow of heat. Baree felt it. For the first time since the two
-men had come his trap-torn body lost its tenseness; his back sagged; his
-teeth clicked as he shivered in his agony. To _this_ man he betrayed his
-weakness. In his bloodshot eyes there was a hungering look as he watched
-Carvel—the self-confessed outlaw. And Jim Carvel again held out his
-hand—much nearer this time.
-
-“You poor devil,” he said, the smile going out of his face. “You poor
-devil!”
-
-The words were like a caress to Baree—the first he had known since the
-loss of Nepeese and Pierrot. He dropped his head until his jaw lay flat
-in the snow. Carvel could see the blood dripping slowly from it.
-
-“You poor devil!” he repeated.
-
-There was no fear in the way he put forth his hand. It was the
-confidence of a great sincerity and a great compassion. It touched
-Baree’s head and patted it in a brotherly fashion, and then—slowly and
-with a bit more caution—it went to the trap fastened to Baree’s forepaw.
-In his half-crazed brain Baree was fighting to understand things, and
-the truth came finally when he felt the steel jaws of the trap open, and
-he drew forth his maimed foot. He did then what he had done to no other
-creature but Nepeese. Just once his hot tongue shot out and licked
-Carvel’s hand. The man laughed. With his powerful hands he opened the
-other traps, and Baree was free.
-
-For a few moments he lay without moving, his eyes fixed on the man.
-Carvel had seated himself on the snow-covered end of a birch log and was
-filling his pipe. Baree watched him light it; he noted with new interest
-the first purplish cloud of smoke that left Carvel’s mouth. The man was
-not more than the length of two trap-chains away—and he grinned at
-Baree.
-
-“Screw up your nerve, old chap,” he encouraged. “No bones broke. Just a
-little stiff. Mebby we’d better—get out.”
-
-He turned his face in the direction of Lac Bain. The suspicion was in
-his mind that McTaggart might turn back. Perhaps that same suspicion was
-impressed upon Baree, for when Carvel looked at him again he was on his
-feet, staggering a bit as he gained his equilibrium. In another moment
-the outlaw had swung the pack-sack from his shoulders and was opening
-it. He thrust in his hand and drew out a chunk of raw, red meat.
-
-“Killed it this morning,” he explained to Baree. “Yearling bull, tender
-as partridge—and that’s as fine a sweetbread as ever came out from under
-a backbone. Try it!”
-
-He tossed the flesh to Baree. There was no equivocation in the manner of
-its acceptance. Baree was famished—and the meat was flung to him by a
-friend. He buried his teeth in it. His jaws crunched it. New fire leapt
-into his blood as he feasted, but not for an instant did his reddened
-eyes leave the other’s face. Carvel replaced his pack. He rose to his
-feet, took up his rifle, slipped on his snowshoes, and fronted the
-north.
-
-“Come on, Boy,” he said. “We’ve got to travel.”
-
-It was a matter-of-fact invitation, as though the two had been
-travelling companions for a long time. It was, perhaps, not only an
-invitation but partly a command. It puzzled Baree. For a full half
-minute he stood motionless in his tracks gazing at Carvel as he strode
-into the north. A sudden convulsive twitching shot through Baree; he
-swung his head toward Lac Bain; he looked again at Carvel, and a whine
-that was scarcely more than a breath came out of his throat. The man was
-just about to disappear into the thick spruce. He paused, and looked
-back.
-
-“Coming, Boy?”
-
-Even at that distance Baree could see him grinning affably; he saw the
-outstretched hand, and the voice stirred new sensations in him. It was
-not like Pierrot’s voice. He had never loved Pierrot. Neither was it
-soft and sweet like the Willow’s. He had known only a few men, and all
-of them he had regarded with distrust. But this was a voice that
-disarmed him. It was lureful in its appeal. He wanted to answer it. He
-was filled with a desire, all at once, to follow close at the heels of
-this stranger. For the first time in his life a craving for the
-friendship of man possessed him. He did not move until Jim Carvel
-entered the spruce. Then he followed.
-
-That night they were camped in a dense growth of cedars and balsams ten
-miles north of Bush McTaggart’s trap-line. For two hours it had snowed,
-and their trail was covered. It was still snowing, but not a flake of
-the white deluge sifted down through the thick canopy of boughs. Carvel
-had put up his small silk tent, and had built a fire; their supper was
-over, and Baree lay on his belly facing the outlaw, almost within reach
-of his hand. With his back to a tree Carvel was smoking luxuriously. He
-had thrown off his cap and his coat, and in the warm fireglow he looked
-almost boyishly young. But even in that glow his jaws lost none of their
-squareness, nor his eyes their clear alertness.
-
-“Seems good to have some one to talk to,” he was saying to Baree. “Some
-one who can understand, an’ keep his mouth shut. Did you ever want to
-howl, an’ didn’t dare? Well, that’s me. Sometimes I’ve been on the point
-of bustin’ because I wanted to talk to some one, an’ couldn’t.”
-
-He rubbed his hands together, and held them out toward the fire. Baree
-watched his movements and listened intently to every sound that escaped
-his lips. His eyes had in them now a dumb sort of worship, a look that
-warmed Carvel’s heart and did away with the vast loneliness and
-emptiness of the night. Baree had dragged himself nearer to the man’s
-feet, and suddenly Carvel leaned over and patted his head.
-
-“I’m a bad one, old chap,” he chuckled. “You haven’t got it on me—not a
-bit. Want to know what happened?” He waited a moment, and Baree looked
-at him steadily. Then Carvel went on, as if speaking to a human, “Let’s
-see—it was five years ago, five years this December, just before
-Christmas time. Had a Dad. Fine old chap, my Dad was. No Mother—just the
-Dad, an’ when you added us up we made just One. Understand? And along
-came a white-striped skunk named Hardy and shot him one day because Dad
-had worked against him in politics. Out an’ out murder. An’ they didn’t
-hang that skunk! No, sir, they didn’t hang him. He had too much money,
-an’ too many friends in politics, an’ they let ’im off with two years in
-the penitentiary. But he didn’t get there. No—s’elp me God, he didn’t
-get there!”
-
-Carvel was twisting his hands until his knuckles cracked. An exultant
-smile lighted up his face, and his eyes flashed back the firelight.
-Baree drew a deep breath—a mere coincidence; but it was a tense moment
-for all that.
-
-“No, he didn’t get to the penitentiary,” went on Carvel, looking
-straight at Baree again. “Yours truly knew what that meant, old chap.
-He’d have been pardoned inside a year. An’ there was my Dad, the biggest
-half of me, in his grave. So I just went up to that white-striped skunk
-right there before the Judge’s eyes, an’ the lawyers’ eyes, an’ the eyes
-of all his dear relatives an’ friends—_and I killed him_! And I got
-away. Was out through a window before they woke up, hit for the bush
-country, and have been eating up the trails ever since. An’ I guess God
-was with me, Boy. For He did a queer thing to help me out summer before
-last, just when the Mounties were after me hardest an’ it looked pretty
-black. Man was found drowned down in the Reindeer Country, right where
-they thought I was cornered; an’ the good Lord made that man look so
-much like me that he was buried under my name. So I’m officially dead,
-old chap. I don’t need to be afraid any more so long as I don’t get too
-familiar with people for a year or so longer, and ’way down inside me
-I’ve liked to believe God fixed it up in that way to help me out of a
-bad hole. What’s _your_ opinion? Eh?”
-
-He leaned forward for an answer. Baree had listened. Perhaps, in a way,
-he had understood. But it was another sound than Carvel’s voice that
-came to his ears now. With his head close to the ground he heard it
-quite distinctly. He whined, and the whine ended in a snarl so low that
-Carvel just caught the warning note in it. He straightened. He stood up
-then, and faced the south. Baree stood beside him, his legs tense and
-his spine bristling.
-
-After a moment Carvel said:
-
-“Relatives of yours, old chap. Wolves.”
-
-He went into the tent for his rifle and cartridges.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIX
-
-
-Baree was on his feet, rigid as hewn rock, when Carvel came out of the
-tent, and for a few moments Carvel stood in silence, watching him
-closely. Would the dog respond to the call of the pack? Did he belong to
-them? Would he go—now? The wolves were drawing nearer. They were not
-circling, as a caribou or a deer would have circled, but were travelling
-straight—dead straight for their camp. The significance of this fact was
-easily understood by Carvel. All that afternoon Baree’s feet had left a
-blood-smell in their trail, and the wolves had struck the trail in the
-deep forest, where the falling snow had not covered it. Carvel was not
-alarmed. More than once in his five years of wandering between the
-Arctic and the Height of Land he had played the game with the wolves.
-Once he had almost lost, but that was out in the open Barren. To-night
-he had a fire, and in the event of his firewood running out he had trees
-he could climb. His anxiety just now was centred in Baree. So he said,
-making his voice quite casual,
-
-“You aren’t going, are you, old chap?”
-
-If Baree heard him he gave no evidence of it. But Carvel, still watching
-him closely, saw that the hair along his spine had risen like a brush,
-and then he heard—growing slowly in Baree’s throat—a snarl of ferocious
-hatred. It was the sort of snarl that had held back the Factor from Lac
-Bain, and Carvel, opening the breech of his gun to see that all was
-right, chuckled happily. Baree may have heard the chuckle. Perhaps it
-meant something to him, for he turned his head suddenly and with
-flattened ears looked at his companion.
-
-The wolves were silent now. Carvel knew what that meant, and he was
-tensely alert. In the stillness the click of the safety on his rifle
-sounded with metallic sharpness. For many minutes they heard nothing but
-the crack of the fire. Suddenly Baree’s muscles seemed to snap. He
-sprang back, and faced the quarter behind Carvel, his head level with
-his shoulders, his inch-long fangs gleaming as he snarled into the black
-caverns of the forest beyond the rim of firelight. Carvel had turned
-like a shot. It was almost frightening—what he saw. A pair of eyes
-burning with greenish fire, and then another pair, and after that so
-many of them that he could not have counted them. He gave a sudden gasp.
-They were like cat-eyes, only much larger. Some of them, catching the
-firelight fully, were red as coals, others flashed blue and green—living
-things without bodies. With a swift glance he took in the black circle
-of the forest. They were out there, too; they were on all sides of them,
-but where he had seen them first they were thickest. In these first few
-seconds he had forgotten Baree, awed almost to stupefaction by that
-monster-eyed cordon of death that hemmed them in. There were
-fifty—perhaps a hundred wolves out there, afraid of nothing in all this
-savage world but fire. They had come up without the sound of a padded
-foot or a broken twig. If it had been later, and they had been asleep,
-and the fire out——
-
-He shuddered, and for a moment the thought got the better of his nerves.
-He had not intended to shoot except from necessity, but all at once his
-rifle came to his shoulder and he sent a stream of fire out where the
-eyes were thickest. Baree knew what the shots meant, and filled with the
-mad desire to get at the throat of one of his enemies he dashed in their
-direction. Carvel gave a startled yell as he went. He saw the flash of
-Baree’s body, saw it swallowed up in the gloom, and in that same instant
-heard the deadly clash of fangs and the impact of bodies. A wild thrill
-shot through him. The dog had charged alone—and the wolves had waited.
-There could be but one end. His four-footed comrade had gone straight
-into the jaws of death!
-
-He could hear the ravening snap of those jaws out in the darkness. It
-was sickening. His hand went to the Colt .45 at his belt, and he thrust
-his empty rifle butt downward into the snow. With the big automatic
-before his eyes he plunged out into the darkness, and from his lips
-there issued a wild yelling that could have been heard a mile away. With
-the yelling a steady stream of fire spat from the Colt into the mass of
-fighting beasts. There were eight shots in the automatic, and not until
-the plunger clicked with metallic emptiness did Carvel cease his yelling
-and retreat into the firelight. He listened, breathing deeply. He no
-longer saw eyes in the darkness, nor did he hear the movement of bodies.
-The suddenness and ferocity of his attack had driven back the
-wolf-horde. But the dog! He caught his breath, and strained his eyes. A
-shadow was dragging itself into the circle of light. It was Baree.
-Carvel ran to him, put his arms under his shoulders, and brought him to
-the fire.
-
-For a long time after that there was a questioning light in Carvel’s
-eyes. He reloaded his guns, put fresh fuel on the fire, and from his
-pack dug out strips of cloth with which he bandaged three or four of the
-deepest cuts in Baree’s legs. And a dozen times he asked, in a wondering
-sort of way,
-
-“Now what the deuce made you do that, old chap? What have _you_ got
-against the wolves?”
-
-All that night he did not sleep, but watched.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Their experience with the wolves broke down the last bit of uncertainty
-that might have existed between the man and the dog. For days after
-that, as they travelled slowly north and west, Carvel nursed Baree as he
-might have cared for a sick child. Because of the dog’s hurts, he made
-only a few miles a day. Baree understood, and in him there grew stronger
-and stronger a great love for the man whose hands were as gentle as the
-Willow’s and whose voice warmed him with the thrill of an immeasurable
-comradeship. He no longer feared him or had a suspicion of him. And
-Carvel, on his part, was observing things. The vast emptiness of the
-world about them, and their aloneness, gave him the opportunity of
-pondering over unimportant details, and he found himself each day
-watching Baree a little more closely. He made at last a discovery which
-interested him deeply. Always, when they halted on the trail, Baree
-would turn his face to the south; when they were in camp it was from the
-south that he nosed the wind most frequently. This was quite natural.
-Carvel thought, for his old hunting-grounds were back there. But as the
-days passed he began to notice other things. Now and then, looking off
-into the far country from which they had come, Baree would whine softly,
-and on that day he would be filled with a great restlessness. He gave no
-evidence of wanting to leave Carvel, but more and more Carvel came to
-understand that some mysterious call was coming to him from out of the
-south.
-
-It was the wanderer’s intention to swing over into the country of the
-Great Slave, a good eight hundred miles to the north and west, before
-the mush-snows came. From there, when the waters opened in springtime,
-he planned to travel by canoe westward to the Mackenzie and ultimately
-to the mountains of British Columbia. These plans were changed in
-February. They were caught in a great storm in the Wholdaia Lake
-country, and when their fortunes looked darkest Carvel stumbled on a
-cabin in the heart of a deep spruce forest, and in this cabin there was
-a dead man. He had been dead for many days, and was frozen stiff. Carvel
-chopped a hole in the earth and buried him.
-
-The cabin was a treasure trove to Carvel and Baree, and especially to
-the man. It evidently possessed no other owner than the one who had
-died; it was comfortable and stocked with provisions; and more than
-that, its owner had made a splendid catch of fur before the frost bit
-his lungs, and he died. Carvel went over them carefully and joyously.
-They were worth a thousand dollars at any post, and he could see no
-reason why they did not belong to him now. Within a week he had blazed
-out the dead man’s snow-covered trap-line and was trapping on his own
-account.
-
-This was two hundred miles north and west of the Gray Loon, and soon
-Carvel observed that Baree did not face directly south in those moments
-when the strange call came to him, but south and east. And now, with
-each day that passed, the sun rose higher in the sky; it grew warmer;
-the snow softened underfoot, and in the air was the tremulous and
-growing throb of spring. With these things came the old yearning to
-Baree; the heart-thrilling call of the lonely graves back on the Gray
-Loon, of the burned cabin, the abandoned tepee beyond the pool—and of
-Nepeese. In his sleep he saw visions of things. He heard again the low,
-sweet voice of the Willow, felt the touch of her hand, was at play with
-her once more in the dark shades of the forest—and Carvel would sit and
-watch him as he dreamed, trying to read the meaning of what he saw and
-heard.
-
-In April Carvel shouldered his furs up to the Hudson’s Bay Company’s
-post at Lac la Biche, which was still farther north. Baree accompanied
-him halfway, and then—at sundown Carvel returned to the cabin and found
-him there. He was so overjoyed that he caught the dog’s head in his arms
-and hugged it. They lived in the cabin until May. The buds were swelling
-then, and the smell of growing things had begun to rise up out of the
-earth.
-
-Then Carvel found the first of the early Blue Flowers.
-
-That night he packed up.
-
-“It’s time to travel,” he announced to Baree. “And I’ve sort of changed
-my mind. We’re going back—there.”
-
-And he pointed south.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXX
-
-
-A strange humour possessed Carvel as he began the southward journey. He
-did not believe in omens, good or bad. Superstition had played a small
-part in his life, but he possessed both curiosity and a love for
-adventure, and his years of lonely wandering had developed in him a
-wonderfully clear mental vision of things, which in other words might be
-called singularly active imagination. He knew that some irresistible
-force was drawing Baree back into the south—that it was pulling him not
-only along a given line of the compass, but to an exact point in that
-line. For no reason in particular the situation began to interest him
-more and more, and as his time was valueless, and he had no fixed
-destination in view, he began to experiment. For the first two days he
-marked the dog’s course by compass. It was due southeast. On the third
-morning Carvel purposely struck a course straight west. He noted quickly
-the change in Baree—his restlessness at first, and after that the
-dejected manner in which he followed at his heels. Toward noon Carvel
-swung sharply to the south and east again, and almost immediately Baree
-regained his old eagerness, and ran ahead of his master.
-
-After this, for many days, Carvel followed the trail of the dog.
-
-“Mebby I’m an idiot, old chap,” he apologized one evening. “But it’s a
-bit of fun, after all—an’ I’ve got to hit the line of rail before I can
-get over to the mountains, so what’s the difference? I’m game—so long as
-you don’t take me back to that chap at Lac Bain. Now—what the devil! Are
-you hitting for his trap-line, to get even? If that’s the case——”
-
-He blew out a cloud of smoke from his pipe as he eyed Baree, and Baree,
-with his head between his forepaws, eyed him back.
-
-A week later Baree answered Carvel’s question by swinging westward to
-give a wide berth to Post Lac Bain. It was mid-afternoon when they
-crossed the trail along which Bush McTaggart’s traps and deadfalls had
-been set. Baree did not even pause. He headed due south, travelling so
-fast that at times he was lost to Carvel’s sight. A suppressed but
-intense excitement possessed him, and he whined whenever Carvel stopped
-to rest—always with his nose sniffing the wind out of the south.
-Springtime, the flowers, the earth turning green, the singing of birds,
-and the sweet breaths in the air were bringing him back to that great
-Yesterday when he had belonged to Nepeese. In his unreasoning mind there
-existed no longer a winter. The long months of cold and hunger were
-gone; in the new visionings that filled his brain they were forgotten.
-The birds and flowers and the blue skies had come back, and with them
-the Willow must surely have returned, and she was waiting for him now,
-just over there beyond that rim of green forest.
-
-Something greater than mere curiosity began to take possession of
-Carvel. A whimsical humour became a fixed and deeper thought, an
-unreasoning anticipation that was accompanied by a certain thrill of
-subdued excitement. By the time they reached the old beaver-pond the
-mystery of the strange adventure had a firm hold on him. From
-Beaver-tooth’s colony Baree led him to the creek along which Wakayoo,
-the black bear, had fished, and thence straight to the Gray Loon.
-
-It was early afternoon of a wonderful day. It was so still that the
-rippling waters of spring, singing in a thousand rills and streamlets,
-filled the forests with a droning music. In the warm sun the crimson
-bakneesh glowed like blood. In the open spaces the air was scented with
-the perfume of Blue Flowers. In the trees and bushes mated birds were
-building their nests. After the long sleep of winter Nature was at work
-in all her glory. It was _Unekepesim_, the Mating Moon, the Home
-Building Moon—and Baree was going home. Not to matehood—but to Nepeese.
-He knew that she was there now, perhaps at the very edge of the chasm
-where he had seen her last. They would be playing together again soon,
-as they had played yesterday, and the day before, and the day before
-that, and in his joy he barked up into Carvel’s face, and urged him to
-greater speed. Then they came to the clearing, and once more Baree stood
-like a rock. Carvel saw the charred ruins of the burned cabin, and a
-moment later the two graves under the tall spruce. He began to
-understand as his eyes returned slowly to the waiting, listening dog. A
-great swelling rose in his throat, and after a moment or two he said
-softly, and with an effort,
-
-“Boy, I guess you’re home.”
-
-Baree did not hear. With his head up and his nose tilted to the blue sky
-he was sniffing the air. What was it that came to him with the perfumes
-of the forests and the green meadow? Why was it that he trembled now as
-he stood there? What was there in the air? Carvel asked himself, and his
-questing eyes tried to answer the questions. Nothing. There was death
-here—death and desertion, that was all. And then, all at once, there
-came from Baree a strange cry—almost a human cry—and he was gone like
-the wind.
-
-Carvel had thrown off his pack. He dropped his rifle beside it now, and
-followed Baree. He ran swiftly, straight across the open, into the dwarf
-balsams, and into a grass-grown path that had once been worn by the
-travel of feet. He ran until he was panting for breath, and then
-stopped, and listened. He could hear nothing of Baree. But that old worn
-trail led on under the forest trees, and he followed it.
-
-Close to the deep, dark pool in which he and the Willow had disported so
-often Baree, too, had stopped. He could hear the rippling of water, and
-his eyes shone with a gleaming fire as he quested for Nepeese. He
-expected to see her there, her slim white body shimmering in some dark
-shadow of overhanging spruce, or gleaming suddenly white as snow in one
-of the warm plashes of sunlight. His eyes sought out their old
-hiding-places; the great split rock on the other side, the shelving
-banks under which they used to dive like otter, the spruce boughs that
-dipped down to the surface, and in the midst of which the Willow loved
-to screen her naked body while he searched the pool for her. And at last
-the realization was borne upon him that she was not there, that he had
-still farther to go.
-
-He went on to the tepee. The little open space in which they had built
-their hidden wigwam was flooded with sunshine that came through a break
-in the forest to the west. The tepee was still there. It did not seem
-very much changed to Baree. And rising from the ground in front of the
-tepee was what had come to him faintly on the still air—the smoke of a
-small fire. Over that fire was bending a person, and it did not strike
-Baree as amazing, or at all unexpected, that this person should have two
-great shining braids down her back. He whined, and at his whine the
-Person grew a little rigid, and turned slowly.
-
-Even then it seemed quite the most natural thing in the world that it
-should be Nepeese, and none other. He had lost her yesterday. To-day he
-had found her. And in answer to his whine there came a sobbing cry
-straight out of the soul of the Willow.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Carvel found them there a few minutes later, the dog’s head hugged close
-up against the Willow’s breast, and the Willow was crying—crying like a
-little child, her face hidden from him on Baree’s neck. He did not
-interrupt them, but waited; and as he waited something in the sobbing
-voice and the stillness of the forest seemed to whisper to him a bit of
-the story of the burned cabin and the two graves, and the meaning of the
-Call that had come to Baree from out of the south.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXI
-
-
-That night there was a new campfire in the open. It was not a small
-fire, built with the fear that other eyes might see it, but a fire that
-sent its flames high. In the glow of it stood Carvel. And as the fire
-had changed from that small smouldering heap over which the Willow had
-cooked her dinner, so Carvel, the officially dead outlaw, had changed.
-The beard was gone from his face; he had thrown off his caribou-skin
-coat; his sleeves were rolled up to the elbows, and there was a wild
-flush in his face that was not altogether the tanning of wind and sun
-and storm, and a glow in his eyes that had not been there for five
-years, perhaps never before. His eyes were on Nepeese. She sat in the
-firelight, leaning a little toward the blaze, her wonderful hair glowing
-warmly in the flash of it. Carvel did not move while she was in that
-attitude. He seemed scarcely to breathe. The glow in his eyes grew
-deeper—the worship of a man for a woman. Suddenly Nepeese turned and
-caught him before he could turn his gaze. There was nothing to hide in
-her own eyes. Like her face, they were flushed with a new hope and a new
-gladness. Carvel sat down beside her on the birch log, and in his hand
-he took one of her thick braids and crumpled it as he talked. At their
-feet, watching them, lay Baree.
-
-“To-morrow or the next day I am going to Lac Bain,” he said, a hard and
-bitter note back of the gentle worship in his voice. “I will not come
-back until I have—killed him.”
-
-The Willow looked straight into the fire. For a time there was a silence
-broken only by the crackling of the flames, and in that silence Carvel’s
-fingers weaved in and out of the silken strands of the Willow’s hair.
-His thoughts flashed back. What a chance he had missed that day on Bush
-McTaggart’s trap-line—if he had only known! His jaws set hard as he saw
-in the red-hot heart of the fire the mental pictures of the day when the
-Factor from Lac Bain had killed Pierrot. She had told him the whole
-story. Her flight. Her plunge to what she had thought was certain death
-in the icy torrent of the chasm. Her miraculous escape from the
-waters—and how she was discovered, nearly dead, by Tuboa, the toothless
-old Cree whom Pierrot out of pity had allowed to hunt in part of his
-domain. He felt within himself the tragedy and the horror of the one
-terrible hour in which the sun had gone out of the world for the Willow,
-and in the flames he could see faithful old Tuboa as he called on his
-last strength to bear Nepeese over the long miles that lay between the
-chasm and his cabin; he caught shifting visions of the weeks that
-followed in that cabin, weeks of hunger and of intense cold in which the
-Willow’s life hung by a single thread. And at last, when the snows were
-deepest, Tuboa had died. Carvel’s fingers clenched in the strands of the
-Willow’s braid. A deep breath rose out of his chest, and he said,
-staring deep into the fire,
-
-“To-morrow I will go to Lac Bain.”
-
-For a moment Nepeese did not answer. She, too, was looking into the
-fire. Then she said:
-
-“Tuboa meant to kill him when the spring came, and he could travel. When
-Tuboa died I knew that it was I who must kill him. So I came, with
-Tuboa’s gun. It was fresh loaded—yesterday. And—M’sieu _Jeem_”—she
-looked up at him, a triumphant glow in her eyes as she added, almost in
-a whisper—“You will not go to Lac Bain. _I have sent a messenger._”
-
-“A messenger?”
-
-“Yes, Ookimow Jeem—a messenger. Two days ago. I sent word that I had not
-died, but was here—waiting for him—and that I would be _Iskwao_ now, his
-wife. Oo-oo, he will come, Ookimow Jeem—he will come fast. And you shall
-not kill him. _Non!_” She smiled into his face, and the throb of
-Carvel’s heart was like a drum. “The gun is loaded,” she said softly. “I
-will shoot.”
-
-“Two days ago,” said Carvel. “And from Lac Bain it is——”
-
-“He will be here to-morrow,” Nepeese answered him. “To-morrow, as the
-sun goes down, he will enter the clearing. I know. My blood has been
-singing it all day. To-morrow—to-morrow—for he will travel fast, Ookimow
-Jeem. Yes, he will come fast.”
-
-Carvel had bent his head. The soft tresses gripped in his fingers were
-crushed to his lips. The Willow, looking again into the fire, did not
-see. But she _felt_—and her soul was beating like the wings of a bird.
-
-“Ookimow Jeem,” she whispered—a breath, a flutter of the lips so soft
-that Carvel heard no sound.
-
-If old Tuboa had been there that night it is possible he would have read
-strange warnings in the winds that whispered now and then softly in the
-treetops. It was such a night; a night when the Red Gods whisper low
-among themselves, a carnival of glory in which even the dipping shadows
-and the high stars seemed to quiver with the life of a potent language.
-It is barely possible that old Tuboa, with his ninety years behind him,
-would have learned something, or that at least he would have _suspected_
-a thing which Carvel in his youth and confidence did not see.
-To-morrow—he will come to-morrow! The Willow, exultant, had said that.
-But to old Tuboa the trees might have whispered, _why not to-night_?
-
-It was midnight when the big moon stood full above the little open in
-the forest. In the tepee the Willow was sleeping. In a balsam shadow
-back from the fire slept Baree, and still farther back in the edge of a
-spruce thicket slept Carvel. Dog and man were tired. They had travelled
-far and fast that day, and they heard no sound.
-
-But they had travelled neither so far nor so fast as Bush McTaggart.
-Between sunrise and midnight he had come forty miles when he strode out
-into the clearing where Pierrot’s cabin had stood. Twice from the edge
-of the forest he had called; and now, when he found no answer, he stood
-under the light of the moon and listened. Nepeese was to be
-here—waiting. He was tired, but exhaustion could not still the fire that
-burned in his blood. It had been blazing all day, and now—so near its
-realization and its triumph—the old passion was like a drunkening wine
-in his veins. Somewhere, near where he stood, Nepeese was waiting for
-him, _waiting for him_. Once again he called, his heart beating in a
-fierce anticipation as he listened. There was no answer. And then for a
-thrilling instant his breath stopped. He sniffed the air—and there came
-to him faintly the smell of smoke.
-
-With the first instinct of the forest man he fronted the wind that was
-but a faint breath under the starlit skies. He did not call again, but
-hastened across the clearing. Nepeese was off there—somewhere—sleeping
-beside her fire, and out of him there rose a low cry of exultation. He
-came to the edge of the forest; chance directed his steps to the
-overgrown trail; he followed it, and the smoke smell came stronger to
-his nostrils.
-
-It was the forest man’s instinct, too, that added the element of caution
-to his advance. That, and the utter stillness of the night. He broke no
-sticks under his feet. He disturbed the brush so quietly that it made no
-sound. When he came at last to the little open where Carvel’s fire was
-still sending a spiral of spruce-scented smoke up into the air it was
-with a stealth that failed even to rouse Baree. Perhaps, deep down in
-him, there smouldered an old suspicion; perhaps it was because he wanted
-to come to her while she was sleeping. The sight of the tepee made his
-heart throb faster. It was light as day where it stood in the moonlight,
-and he saw hanging outside it a few bits of woman’s apparel. He advanced
-soft-footed as a fox and stood a moment later with his hand on the cloth
-flap at the wigwam door, his head bent forward to catch the merest
-breath of sound. He could hear her breathing. For an instant his face
-turned so that the moonlight struck his eyes. They were aflame with a
-mad fire. Then, still very quietly, he drew aside the flap at the door.
-
-It could not have been sound that roused Baree, hidden in the black
-balsam shadow a dozen paces away. Perhaps it was scent. His nostrils
-twitched first; then he awoke. For a few seconds his eyes glared at the
-bent figure in the tepee door. He knew that it was not Carvel. The old
-smell—the man-beast’s smell, filled his nostrils like a hated poison. He
-sprang to his feet and stood with his lips snarling back slowly from his
-long fangs. McTaggart had disappeared. From inside the tepee there came
-a sound; a sudden movement of bodies, a startled ejaculation of one
-awakening from sleep—and then a cry, a low, half-smothered, frightened
-cry, and in response to that cry Baree shot out from under the balsam
-with a sound in his throat that had in it the note of death.
-
- * * * * *
-
-In the edge of the spruce thicket Carvel rolled uneasily. Strange sounds
-were rousing him, cries that in his exhaustion came to him as if in a
-dream. At last he sat up, and then in sudden horror leaped to his feet
-and rushed toward the tepee. Nepeese was in the open, crying the name
-she had given him—“_Ookimow Jeem—Ookimow—Jeem—Ookimow Jeem_——” She was
-standing there white and slim, her eyes with the blaze of the stars in
-them, and when she saw Carvel she flung out her arms to him, still
-crying:
-
-“Ookimow Jeem—Oo-oo, Ookimow Jeem——”
-
-In the tepee he heard the rage of a beast, the moaning cries of a man.
-He forgot that it was only last night he had come, and with a cry he
-swept the Willow to his breast, and the Willow’s arms tightened round
-his neck as she moaned:
-
-“Ookimow Jeem—it is the man-beast—in there! It is the man-beast from Lac
-Bain—and Baree——”
-
-Truth flashed upon Carvel, and he caught Nepeese up in his arms and ran
-away with her from the sounds that had grown sickening and horrible. In
-the spruce thicket he put her feet once more to the ground. Her arms
-were still tight around his neck; he felt the wild terror of her body as
-it throbbed against him; her breath was sobbing, and her eyes were on
-his face. He drew her closer, and suddenly he crushed his face down
-close against hers and felt for an instant the warm thrill of her lips
-against his own. And he heard the whisper, soft and trembling.
-
-“Ooo-oo, _Ookimow Jeem_——”
-
-When Carvel returned to the fire, alone, his Colt in his hand, Baree was
-in front of the tepee waiting for him. Carvel picked up a burning brand
-and entered the wigwam. When he came out his face was white. He tossed
-the brand in the fire, and went back to Nepeese. He had wrapped her in
-his blankets, and now he knelt down beside her and put his arms about
-her.
-
-“He is dead, Nepeese.”
-
-“Dead, Ookimow Jeem?”
-
-“Yes. Baree killed him.”
-
-She did not seem to breathe. Gently, with his lips in her hair, Carvel
-whispered his plans for their paradise.
-
-“No one will know, my sweetheart. To-night I will bury him and burn the
-tepee. To-morrow we will start for Nelson House, where there is a
-Missioner. And after that—we will come back—and I will build a new cabin
-where the old one burned. _Do you love me, ka sakahet?_”
-
-“Oui—yes—Ookimow Jeem—I love you——”
-
-Suddenly there came an interruption. Baree at last was giving his cry of
-triumph. It rose to the stars; it wailed over the roofs of the forests
-and filled the quiet skies—a wolfish howl of exultation, of achievement,
-of vengeance fulfilled. Its echoes died slowly away, and silence came
-again. A great peace whispered in the soft breath of the treetops. Out
-of the north came the mating call of a loon. About Carvel’s shoulders
-the Willow’s arms crept closer. And Carvel, out of his heart, thanked
-God.
-
-
- THE END
-
-
-
-
- THE COUNTRY LIFE PRESS
- GARDEN CITY, N. Y.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of Project Gutenberg's Baree, Son of Kazan, by James Oliver Curwood
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BAREE, SON OF KAZAN ***
-
-***** This file should be named 53929-0.txt or 53929-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/3/9/2/53929/
-
-Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/53929-0.zip b/old/53929-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 80e523b..0000000
--- a/old/53929-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/53929-h.zip b/old/53929-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 9c48dae..0000000
--- a/old/53929-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/53929-h/53929-h.htm b/old/53929-h/53929-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index e0110fd..0000000
--- a/old/53929-h/53929-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9052 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=UTF-8" />
- <title>Baree, Son of Kazan, by James Oliver Curwood</title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
- body { margin-left: 8%; margin-right: 8%; }
- h1 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.4em; }
- h2 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.2em; }
- p { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; text-align: justify; }
- .sc { font-variant: small-caps; }
- .large { font-size: large; }
- .xlarge { font-size: x-large; }
- .small { font-size: small; }
- .lg-container-b { text-align: center; }
- @media handheld { .lg-container-b { clear: both; } }
- .lg-container-l { text-align: left; }
- @media handheld { .lg-container-l { clear: both; } }
- .linegroup { display: inline-block; text-align: left; }
- @media handheld { .linegroup { display: block; margin-left: 1.5em; } }
- .linegroup .group { margin: 1em auto; }
- .linegroup .line { text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em; }
- div.linegroup > :first-child { margin-top: 0; }
- div.pbb { page-break-before: always; }
- hr.pb { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-bottom: 1em; }
- @media handheld { hr.pb { display: none; } }
- .figcenter { clear: both; max-width: 100%; margin: 2em auto; text-align: center; }
- div.figcenter p { text-align: center; text-indent: 0; }
- .figcenter img { max-width: 100%; height: auto; }
- .id001 { width:60%; }
- .id002 { width:90%; }
- @media handheld { .id001 { margin-left:20%; width:60%; } }
- @media handheld { .id002 { margin-left:5%; width:90%; } }
- .ic001 { width:100%; }
- .ig001 { width:100%; }
- .nf-center { text-align: center; }
- .nf-center-c1 { text-align: left; margin: 1em 0; }
- .c000 { margin-top: 1em; }
- .c001 { margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c002 { text-align: right; }
- .c003 { margin-left: 2.78%; margin-right: 5.56%; margin-top: 0.5em;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c004 { page-break-before: auto; margin-top: 1em; }
- .c005 { page-break-before:auto; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c006 { margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c007 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-top: 0.8em;
- margin-bottom: 0.8em; margin-left: 35%; margin-right: 35%; width: 30%; }
- .c008 { margin-top: 2em; }
- .c009 { margin-top: 4em; }
- </style>
- </head>
- <body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Baree, Son of Kazan, by James Oliver Curwood
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: Baree, Son of Kazan
-
-Author: James Oliver Curwood
-
-Illustrator: Frank B. Hoffman
-
-Release Date: January 9, 2017 [EBook #53929]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BAREE, SON OF KAZAN ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>BOOKS BY THE SAME AUTHOR</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>The Courage of Captain Plum</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>The Honor of the Big Snows</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>The Gold Hunters</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>The Wolf Hunters</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>The Danger Trail</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>Philip Steele</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>The Great Lakes</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>Flower of the North</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>Isobel</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>Kazan</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>God’s Country—and the Woman</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>The Hunted Woman</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>The Grizzly King</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span class='sc'>Baree, Son of Kazan</span></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-
-<div id='ifpc' class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/illus-fpc.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic001'>
-<p>Baree had not killed, but he had conquered. His first great day—or night—had come. The world was filled with a new promise for him, as vast as the night itself.</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='xlarge'>BAREE, SON OF KAZAN</span></div>
- <div class='c000'>BY</div>
- <div><span class='large'>JAMES OLIVER CURWOOD</span></div>
- <div class='c000'><span class='small'>ILLUSTRATED BY</span></div>
- <div>FRANK B. HOFFMAN</div>
- <div class='c000'><span class='sc'>Garden City</span>&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<span class='sc'>New York</span></div>
- <div>DOUBLEDAY, PAGE &amp; COMPANY</div>
- <div>1917</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><i>Copyright, 1917, by</i></div>
- <div><span class='sc'>Doubleday, Page &amp; Company</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='small'><i>All rights reserved, including that of</i></span></div>
- <div><span class='small'><i>translation into foreign languages,</i></span></div>
- <div><span class='small'><i>including the Scandinavian</i></span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='small'>COPYRIGHT, 1917, BY THE RED BOOK CORPORATION</span></div>
- <div><span class='small'>UNDER THE TITLE “A SON OF KAZAN”</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='large'>PREFACE</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'>Since the publication of my two animal books,
-“Kazan” and “The Grizzly King,” I have received so
-many hundreds of letters from friends of wild animal
-life, all of which were more or less of an enquiring
-nature, that I have been encouraged to incorporate
-in this preface of the third of my series—“Baree, Son
-of Kazan”—something more of my desire and hope
-in writing of wild life, and something of the foundation
-of fact whereupon this and its companion books
-have been written.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I have always disliked the preaching of sermons in
-the pages of romance. It is like placing a halter
-about an unsuspecting reader’s neck and dragging
-him into paths for which he may have no liking. But
-if fact and truth produce in the reader’s mind a
-message for himself, then a work has been done.
-That is what I hope for in my nature books. The
-American people are not and never have been lovers
-of wild life. As a nation we have gone after Nature
-with a gun.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And what right, you may ask, has a confessed
-slaughterer of wild life such as I have been to complain?
-None at all, I assure you. I have twenty-seven
-guns—and I have used them all. I stand condemned
-as having done more than my share toward
-extermination. But that does not lessen the fact
-that I have learned; and in learning I have come to
-believe that if boys and girls and men and women
-could be brought into the homes and lives of wild
-birds and animals as their homes are made and their
-lives are lived we would all understand at last that
-wherever a heart beats it is very much like our own in
-the final analysis of things. To see a bird singing on a
-twig means but little; but to live a season with that
-bird, to be with it in courting days, in matehood and
-motherhood, to understand its griefs as well as its
-gladness means a great deal. And in my books it
-is my desire to tell of the lives of the wild things which
-I know as they are actually lived. It is not my desire
-to humanize them. If we are to love wild animals
-so much that we do not want to kill them we
-<i>must know them as they actually live</i>. And in their
-lives, in the <i>facts</i> of their lives, there is so much of
-real and honest romance and tragedy, so much that
-makes them akin to ourselves that the animal
-biographer need not step aside from the paths of
-actuality to hold one’s interest.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Perhaps rather tediously I have come to the few
-words I want to say about Baree, the hero of this
-book. Baree, after all, is only another Kazan. For
-it was Kazan I found in the way I have described—a
-bad dog, a killer about to be shot to death by his
-master when chance, and my own faith in him, gave
-him to me.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>We travelled together for many thousands of miles
-through the northland—on trails to the Barren
-Lands, to Hudson’s Bay and to the Arctic. Kazan,
-the bad dog, the half-wolf, the killer—was the best
-four-legged friend I ever had. He died near Fort
-MacPherson, on the Peel River, and is buried there.
-And Kazan was the father of Baree; Gray Wolf, the
-full-blooded wolf was his mother. Nepeese, The
-Willow, still lives near God’s Lake; and it was in the
-country of Nepeese and her father that for three lazy
-months I watched the doings at Beaver Town, and
-went on fishing trips with Wakayoo, the bear.
-Sometimes I have wondered if old Beaver Tooth himself
-did not in some way understand that I had made
-his colony safe for his people. It was Pierrot’s trapping
-ground; and to Pierrot—father of Nepeese—I
-gave my best rifle on his word that he would not
-harm my beaver friends for two years. And the
-people of Pierrot’s breed keep their word. Wakayoo,
-Baree’s big bear friend is dead. He was killed as I
-have described, in that “pocket” among the ridges,
-while I was on a jaunt to Beaver Town. We were becoming
-good friends and I missed him a great deal.
-The story of Pierrot and of his princess wife, Wyola,
-is true; they are buried side by side under the tall
-spruce that stood near their cabin. Pierrot’s murderer,
-instead of dying as I have told it, was killed in
-his attempt to escape the Royal Mounted farther
-west. When I last saw Baree he was at Lac Seul
-House, where I was the guest of Mr. William Patterson,
-the factor; and the last word I heard from him
-was through my good friend Frank Aldous, factor at
-White Dog Post, who wrote me only a few weeks ago
-that he had recently seen Nepeese and Baree and the
-husband of Nepeese, and that the happiness he found
-in their far wilderness home made him regret that he
-was a bachelor. I feel sorry for Aldous. He is a
-splendid young Englishman, unattached, and some
-day I am going to try and marry him off. I have in
-mind some one at the present moment—a fox-trapper’s
-daughter up near the Barren, very pretty, and
-educated at a Missioner’s school; and as Aldous is
-going with me on my next trip I may have something
-to say about them in the book that is to follow
-“Baree, Son of Kazan.”</p>
-
-<div class='c002'><span class='sc'>James Oliver Curwood.</span></div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Owosso, Michigan,</div>
- <div class='line'>June 12, 1917.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='large'>LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c003'><a href='#ifpc'>Baree had not killed, but he had conquered. His first great day—or night—had come <i>Frontispiece</i></a></p>
-
-<p class='c003'><a href='#i048'>Nepeese, the trapper’s daughter, known to the forest men as “The Willow,” who became a big factor in the life of the pup Baree</a></p>
-
-<p class='c003'><a href='#i094'>Baree stood still. Nepeese was not more than twenty feet from him. She sat on a rock, full in the early morning sun</a></p>
-
-<p class='c003'><a href='#i126'>With an oath McTaggart snatched his revolver from its holster. The Willow was ahead of him</a></p>
-
-<p class='c003'><a href='#i160'>The Willow rose slowly to her feet and looked at Pierrot. Her eyes were big and dark and steady</a></p>
-
-<p class='c003'><a href='#i174'>When Baree joined the pack, a maddened, mouth-frothing, snarling horde, Napamoos, the young caribou bull, was well out in the river</a></p>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <h1 class='c004'>BAREE, SON OF KAZAN</h1>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER I</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>To Baree, for many days after he was born,
-the world was a vast gloomy cavern.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>During these first days of his life his home
-was in the heart of a great windfall where Gray Wolf,
-his blind mother, had found a safe nest for his babyhood,
-and to which Kazan, her mate, came only now
-and then, his eyes gleaming like strange balls of
-greenish fire in the darkness. It was Kazan’s eyes
-that gave to Baree his first impression of something
-existing away from his mother’s side, and they
-brought to him also his discovery of vision. He
-could feel, he could smell, he could hear—but in that
-black pit under the fallen timber he had never <i>seen</i>
-until the eyes came. At first they frightened him;
-then they puzzled him, and his fear changed to an immense
-curiosity. He would be looking straight at
-them, when all at once they would disappear. This
-was when Kazan turned his head. And then they
-would flash back at him again out of the darkness
-with such startling suddenness that Baree would involuntarily
-shrink closer to his mother, who always
-trembled and shivered in a strange sort of way when
-Kazan came in.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree, of course, would never know their story. He
-would never know that Gray Wolf, his mother, was a
-full-blooded wolf, and that Kazan, his father, was a
-dog. In him nature was already beginning its wonderful
-work, but it would never go beyond certain
-limitations. It would tell him, in time, that his
-beautiful wolf-mother was blind, but he would never
-know of that terrible battle between Gray Wolf and
-the lynx in which his mother’s sight had been destroyed.
-Nature could tell him nothing of Kazan’s
-merciless vengeance, of the wonderful years of their
-matehood, of their loyalty, their strange adventures
-in the great Canadian wilderness—it could make him
-only a son of Kazan.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But at first, and for many days, it was all mother.
-Even after his eyes had opened wide and he had found
-his legs so that he could stumble about a little in the
-darkness, nothing existed for Baree but his mother.
-When he was old enough to be playing with sticks and
-moss out in the sunlight, he still did not know what
-she looked like. But to him she was big and soft and
-warm, and she licked his face with her tongue, and
-talked to him in a gentle, whimpering way that at last
-made him find his own voice in a faint, squeaky yap.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And then came that wonderful day when the greenish
-balls of fire that were Kazan’s eyes came nearer
-and nearer, a little at a time, and very cautiously.
-Heretofore Gray Wolf had warned him back. To be
-alone was the first law of her wild breed during mothering-time.
-A low snarl from her throat, and Kazan
-had always stopped. But on this day the snarl did
-not come. In Gray Wolf’s throat it died away in a
-low, whimpering sound. A note of loneliness, of
-gladness, of a great yearning. “It is all right now,”
-she was saying to Kazan; and Kazan—pausing for a
-moment to make sure—replied with an answering
-note deep in his throat.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Still slowly, as if not quite sure of what he would
-find, Kazan came to them, and Baree snuggled closer
-to his mother. He heard Kazan as he dropped down
-heavily on his belly close to Gray Wolf. He was unafraid—and
-mightily curious. And Kazan, too, was
-curious. He sniffed. In the gloom his ears were
-alert. After a little Baree began to move. An inch
-at a time he dragged himself away from Gray Wolf’s
-side. Every muscle in her lithe body tensed. Again
-her wolf blood was warning her. There was danger
-for Baree. Her lips drew back, baring her fangs.
-Her throat trembled, but the note in it never came.
-Out of the darkness two yards away came a soft,
-puppyish whine, and the caressing sound of Kazan’s
-tongue.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree had felt the thrill of his first great adventure.
-He had discovered his father.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This all happened in the third week of Baree’s life.
-He was just eighteen days old when Gray Wolf allowed
-Kazan to make the acquaintance of his son. If
-it had not been for Gray Wolf’s blindness and the
-memory of that day on the Sun Rock when the lynx
-had destroyed her eyes, she would have given birth
-to Baree in the open, and his legs would have been
-quite strong. He would have known the sun and the
-moon and the stars; he would have realized what the
-thunder meant, and would have seen the lightning
-flashing in the sky. But as it was, there had been
-nothing for him to do in that black cavern under the
-windfall but stumble about a little in the darkness,
-and lick with his tiny red tongue the raw bones that
-were strewn about them. Many times he had been
-left alone. He had heard his mother come and go,
-and nearly always it had been in response to a yelp
-from Kazan that came to them like a distant echo.
-He had never felt a very strong desire to follow until
-this day when Kazan’s big, cool tongue caressed his
-face. In those wonderful seconds nature was at
-work. His instinct was not quite born until then.
-And when Kazan went away, leaving them alone in
-darkness, Baree whimpered for him to come back,
-just as he had cried for his mother when now and then
-she had left him in response to her mate’s call.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The sun was straight above the forest when, an
-hour or two after Kazan’s visit, Gray Wolf slipped
-away. Between Baree’s nest and the top of the windfall
-were forty feet of jammed and broken timber
-through which not a ray of light could break. This
-blackness did not frighten him, for he had yet to
-learn the meaning of light. Day, and not night, was
-to fill him with his first great terror. So quite fearlessly,
-with a yelp for his mother to wait for him, he
-began to follow. If Gray Wolf heard him, she paid
-no attention to his call, and the scrape of her claws
-on the dead timber died swiftly away.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This time Baree did not stop at the eight-inch log
-which had always shut in his world in that particular
-direction. He clambered to the top of it and
-rolled over on the other side. Beyond this was vast
-adventure, and he plunged into it courageously.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It took him a long time to make the first twenty
-yards. Then he came to a log worn smooth by the
-feet of Gray Wolf and Kazan, and stopping every few
-feet to send out a whimpering call for his mother, he
-made his way farther and farther along it. As he
-went, there grew slowly a curious change in this
-world of his. He had known nothing but blackness.
-And now this blackness seemed breaking itself up
-into strange shapes and shadows. Once he caught
-the flash of a fiery streak above him—a gleam of sunshine—and
-it startled him so that he flattened himself
-down upon the log and did not move for half a
-minute. Then he went on. An ermine squeaked
-under him. He heard the swift rustling of a squirrel’s
-feet, and a curious <i>whut-whut-whut</i> that was not
-at all like any sound his mother had ever made. He
-was off the trail.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The log was no longer smooth, and it was leading
-him upward higher and higher into the tangle of the
-windfall, and was growing narrower every foot he
-progressed. He whined. His soft little nose sought
-vainly for the warm scent of his mother. The end
-came suddenly when he lost his balance and fell. He
-let out a piercing cry of terror as he felt himself slipping,
-and then plunged downward. He must have
-been high up in the windfall, for to Baree it was a
-tremendous fall. His soft little body thumped from
-log to log as he shot this way and that, and when
-at last he stopped, there was scarcely a breath left in
-him. But he stood up quickly on his four trembling
-legs—and blinked.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A new terror held Baree rooted there. In an instant
-the whole world had changed. It was a flood of
-sunlight. Everywhere he looked he could see strange
-things. But it was the sun that frightened him most.
-It was his first impression of fire, and it made his eyes
-smart. He would have slunk back into the friendly
-gloom of the windfall, but at this moment Gray Wolf
-came around the end of a great log, followed by
-Kazan. She muzzled Baree joyously, and Kazan in a
-most doglike fashion wagged his tail. This mark of
-the dog was to be a part of Baree. Half wolf, he
-would always wag his tail. He tried to wag it now.
-Perhaps Kazan saw the effort, for he emitted a muffled
-yelp of approbation as he sat back on his
-haunches.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Or he might have been saying to Gray Wolf:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Well, we’ve got the little rascal out of that windfall
-at last, haven’t we?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For Baree it had been a great day. He had discovered
-his father—and the world.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER II</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>And it was a wonderful world—a world of vast
-silence, empty of everything but the creatures
-of the wild. The nearest Hudson’s Bay post
-was a hundred miles away, and the first town of
-civilization was a straight three hundred to the south.
-Two years before, Tusoo, the Cree trapper, had called
-this his domain. It had come down to him, as was
-the law of the forests, through generations of forefathers;
-but Tusoo had been the last of his worn-out
-family; he had died of smallpox, and his wife and his
-children had died with him. Since then no human
-foot had taken up his trails. The lynx had multiplied.
-The moose and caribou had gone unhunted
-by man. The beaver had built their homes undisturbed.
-The tracks of the black bear were as
-thick as the tracks of the deer farther south. And
-where once the deadfalls and poison-baits of Tusoo
-had kept the wolves thinned down, there was no
-longer a menace for these <i>mohekuns</i> of the wilderness.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Following the sun of this first wonderful day came
-the moon and the stars of Baree’s first real night. It
-was a splendid night, and with it a full red moon
-sailed up over the forests, flooding the earth with a
-new kind of light, softer and more beautiful to Baree.
-The wolf was strong in him, and he was restless. He
-had slept that day in the warmth of the sun, but he
-could not sleep in this glow of the moon. He nosed
-uneasily about Gray Wolf, who lay flat on her belly,
-her beautiful head alert, listening yearningly to the
-night sounds, and for the tonguing of Kazan, who
-had slunk away like a shadow to hunt.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Half a dozen times, as Baree wandered about near
-the windfall, he heard a soft whir over his head, and
-once or twice he saw gray shadows floating swiftly
-through the air. They were the big northern owls
-swooping down to investigate him, and if he had been
-a rabbit instead of a wolf-dog whelp, his first night
-under the moon and stars would have been his last;
-for unlike Wapoos, the rabbit, he was not cautious.
-Gray Wolf did not watch him closely. Instinct told
-her that in these forests there was no great danger for
-Baree except at the hands of man. In his veins ran
-the blood of the wolf. He was a hunter of all other
-wild creatures, but no other creature, either winged
-or fanged, hunted him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In a way Baree sensed this. He was not afraid of
-the owls. He was not afraid of the strange blood-curdling
-cries they made in the black spruce-tops.
-But once fear entered into him, and he scurried back
-to his mother. It was when one of the winged hunters
-of the air swooped down on a snowshoe rabbit, and
-the squealing agony of the doomed creature set his
-heart thumping like a little hammer. He felt in those
-cries the nearness of that one ever-present tragedy
-of the wild—death. He felt it again that night when,
-snuggled close to Gray Wolf, he listened to the
-fierce outcry of a wolf-pack that was close on the
-heels of a young caribou bull. And the meaning of
-it all, and the wild thrill of it all, came home to him
-early in the gray dawn when Kazan returned, holding
-between his jaws a huge rabbit that was still
-kicking and squirming with life.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This rabbit was the climax in the first chapter of
-Baree’s education. It was as if Gray Wolf and Kazan
-had planned it all out, so that he might receive his
-first instruction in the art of killing. When Kazan
-had dropped it, Baree approached the big hare cautiously.
-The back of Wapoos, the rabbit, was
-broken. His round eyes were glazed, and he had
-ceased to feel pain. But to Baree, as he dug his tiny
-teeth into the heavy fur under Wapoos’s throat, the
-hare was very much alive. The teeth did not go
-through into the flesh. With puppyish fierceness
-Baree hung on. He thought that he was killing. He
-could feel the dying convulsions of Wapoos. He
-could hear the last gasping breaths leaving the warm
-body, and he snarled and tugged until finally he fell
-back with a mouthful of fur. When he returned to
-the attack, Wapoos was quite dead, and Baree continued
-to bite and snarl until Gray Wolf came with
-her sharp fangs and tore the rabbit to pieces. After
-that followed the feast.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>So Baree came to understand that to eat meant to
-kill, and as other days and nights passed, there grew
-in him swiftly the hunger for flesh. In this he was
-the true wolf. From Kazan he had taken other and
-stronger inheritances of the dog. He was magnificently
-black, which in later days gave him the name
-of <i>Kusketa Mohekun</i>—the black wolf. On his breast
-was a white star. His right ear was tipped with
-white. His tail, at six weeks, was bushy and hung
-low. It was a wolf’s tail. His ears were Gray
-Wolf’s ears—sharp, short, pointed, always alert. His
-fore-shoulders gave promise of being splendidly like
-Kazan’s, and when he stood up he was like the trace dog,
-except that he always stood <i>sidewise</i> to the point
-or object he was watching. This, again, was the
-wolf, for a dog faces the direction in which he is looking
-intently.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>One brilliant night, when Baree was two months
-old, and when the sky was filled with stars and a June
-moon so bright that it seemed scarcely higher than
-the tall spruce-tops, Baree settled back on his
-haunches and howled. It was a first effort. But
-there was no mistake in the note of it. It was the
-wolf-howl. But a moment later when Baree slunk up
-to Kazan, as if deeply ashamed of his effort, he was
-wagging his tail in an unmistakably apologetic manner.
-And this again was the dog. If Tusoo, the dead
-Indian trapper, could have seen him then, he would
-have judged him by that wagging of his tail. It revealed
-the fact that deep in his heart—and in his soul,
-if we can concede that he had one—Baree was dog.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In another way Tusoo would have found judgment
-of him. At two months the wolf whelp has forgotten
-how to play. He is a slinking part of the wilderness,
-already at work preying on creatures smaller and
-more helpless than himself. Baree still played. In
-his excursions away from the windfall he had never
-gone farther than the creek, a hundred yards from
-where his mother lay. He had helped to tear many
-dead and dying rabbits into pieces; he believed, if he
-thought upon the matter at all, that he was exceedingly
-fierce and courageous. But it was his
-ninth week before he felt his spurs and fought his
-terrible battle with the young owl in the edge of the
-thick forest.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The fact that Oohoomisew, the big snow-owl, had
-made her nest in a broken stub not far from the windfall
-was destined to change the whole course of
-Baree’s life, just as the blinding of Gray Wolf had
-changed hers, and a man’s club had changed Kazan’s.
-The creek ran close past the stub, which had been
-shriven by lightning; and this stub stood in a still,
-dark place in the forest, surrounded by tall, black
-spruce and enveloped in gloom even in broad day.
-Many times Baree had gone to the edge of this mysterious
-bit of forest and had peered in curiously, and
-with a growing desire.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>On this day of his great battle its lure was over-powering.
-Little by little he entered into it, his eyes
-shining brightly and his ears alert for the slightest
-sounds that might come out of it. His heart beat
-faster. The gloom enveloped him more. He forgot
-the windfall and Kazan and Gray Wolf. Here before
-him lay the thrill of adventure. He heard stranger
-sounds, but very soft sounds, as if made by padded
-feet and downy wings, and they filled him with a
-thrilling expectancy. Under his feet there were no
-grass or weeds or flowers, but a wonderful brown carpet
-of soft evergreen needles. They felt good to his
-feet, and were so velvety that he could not hear his
-own movement.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He was fully three hundred yards from the windfall
-when he passed Oohoomisew’s stub and into a thick
-growth of young balsams. And there—directly in his
-path—crouched the monster!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Papayuchisew (Young Owl) was not more than a
-third as large as Baree. But he was a terrifying
-looking object. To Baree he seemed all head and eyes.
-He could see nobody at all. Kazan had never
-brought in anything like this, and for a full
-half-minute he remained very quiet, eyeing it
-speculatively. Papayuchisew did not move a feather.
-But as Baree advanced, a cautious step at a time, the
-bird’s eyes grew bigger and the feathers about his
-head ruffled up as if stirred by a bit of wind. He
-came of a fighting family, this little Papayuchisew—a
-savage, fearless, and killing family—and even Kazan
-would have taken note of those ruffling feathers.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With a space of two feet between them, the pup
-and the owlet eyed each other. In that moment, if
-Gray Wolf could have seen, she might have said to
-Baree: “Use your legs—and run!” And Oohoomisew,
-the old owl, might have said to Papayuchisew:
-“You little fool—use your wings and fly!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They did neither—and the fight began.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Papayuchisew started it, and with a single wild
-yelp Baree went back in a heap, the owlet’s beak
-fastened like a red-hot vise in the soft flesh at the end
-of his nose. That one yelp of surprise and pain was
-Baree’s first and last cry in the fight. The wolf
-surged in him; rage and the desire to kill possessed
-him. As Papayuchisew hung on, he made a curious
-hissing sound; and as Baree rolled and gnashed his
-teeth and fought to free himself from that amazing
-grip on his nose, fierce little snarls rose out of his
-throat.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For fully a minute Baree had no use of his jaws.
-Then, by accident, he wedged Papayuchisew in a
-crotch of a low ground-shrub, and a bit of his nose
-gave way. He might have run then, but instead of
-that he was back at the owlet like a flash. Flop went
-Papayuchisew on his back, and Baree buried his
-needle-like teeth in the bird’s breast. It was like
-trying to bite through a pillow, the feathers were so
-close and thick. Deeper and deeper Baree sank his
-fangs, and just as they were beginning to prick the
-owlet’s skin, Papayuchisew—jabbing a little blindly
-with a beak that snapped sharply every time it
-closed—got him by the ear.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The pain of that hold was excruciating to Baree,
-and he made a more desperate effort to get his teeth
-through his enemy’s thick armour of feathers. In the
-struggle they rolled under the low balsams to the
-edge of the ravine through which ran the creek.
-Over the steep edge they plunged, and as they rolled
-and bumped to the bottom, Baree loosed his hold.
-Papayuchisew hung valiantly on, and when they
-reached the bottom he still had his grip on Baree’s
-ear.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree’s nose was bleeding; his ear felt as if it were
-being pulled from his head; and in this uncomfortable
-moment a newly awakened instinct made Baby
-Papayuchisew discover his wings as a fighting asset.
-An owl has never really begun to fight until he uses
-his wings, and with a joyous hissing, Papayuchisew
-began beating his antagonist so fast and so viciously
-that Baree was dazed. He was compelled to close
-his eyes, and he snapped blindly. For the first time
-since the battle began he felt a strong inclination
-to get away. He tried to tear himself free with his
-forepaws, but Papayuchisew—slow to reason but
-of firm conviction—hung to Baree’s ear like grim
-fate.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>At this critical point, when the understanding of
-defeat was forming itself swiftly in Baree’s mind,
-chance saved him. His fangs closed on one of the
-owlet’s tender feet. Papayuchisew gave a sudden
-squeak. The ear was free at last—and with a snarl
-of triumph Baree gave a vicious tug at Papayuchisew’s
-leg.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In the excitement of battle he had not heard the
-rushing tumult of the creek close under them, and
-over the edge of a rock Papayuchisew and he went
-together, the chill water of the rain-swollen stream
-muffling a final snarl and a final hiss of the two little
-fighters.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER III</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>To Papayuchisew, after his first mouthful
-of water, the stream was almost as safe as
-the air, for he went sailing down it with the
-lightness of a gull, wondering in his slow-thinking
-big head why he was moving so swiftly and so pleasantly
-without any effort of his own.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>To Baree it was a different matter. He went
-down almost like a stone. A mighty roaring filled
-his ears; it was dark, suffocating, terrible. In the
-swift current he was twisted over and over. For
-twenty feet he was under water. Then he rose to
-the surface and desperately began using his legs.
-It was of little use. He had only time to blink once
-or twice and catch a lungful of air when he shot
-into a current that was running like a millrace between
-the butts of two fallen trees, and for another
-twenty feet the sharpest eyes could not have seen
-hair or hide of him. He came up again at the edge
-of a shallow riffle over which the water ran like the
-rapids at Niagara in miniature, and for fifty or
-sixty yards he was flung along like a hairy ball.
-From this he was hurled into a deep, cold pool; and
-then—half dead—he found himself crawling out on
-a gravelly bar.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For a long time Baree lay there in a pool of sunlight
-without moving. His ear hurt him; his nose
-was raw, and burned as if he had thrust it into fire.
-His legs and body were sore, and as he began to
-wander along the gravel bar, he was the most
-wretched pup in the world. He was also completely
-turned around. In vain he looked about him for
-some familiar mark—something that might guide
-him back to his windfall home. Everything was
-strange. He did not know that the water had flung
-him out on the wrong side of the stream, and that
-to reach the windfall he would have to cross it
-again. He whined, but that was as loud as his
-voice rose. Gray Wolf could have heard his barking,
-for the windfall was not more than two hundred
-and fifty yards up the stream. But the wolf in
-Baree held him silent, except for his low whining.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Striking the main shore, Baree began going downstream.
-This was away from the windfall, and
-each step that he took carried him farther and farther
-from home. Every little while he stopped
-and listened. The forest was deeper. It was growing
-blacker and more mysterious. Its silence was
-frightening. At the end of half an hour Baree would
-even have welcomed Papayuchisew. And he would
-not have fought him—he would have inquired, if
-possible, the way back home.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree was fully three quarters of a mile from the
-windfall when he came to a point where the creek
-split itself into two channels. He had but one
-choice to follow—the stream that flowed a little
-south and east. This stream did not run swiftly.
-It was not filled with shimmering riffles, and rocks
-about which the water sang and foamed. It grew
-black, like the forest. It was still and deep. Without
-knowing it, Baree was burying himself deeper
-and deeper into Tusoo’s old trapping-grounds.
-Since Tusoo had died, they had lain undisturbed
-except for the wolves, for Gray Wolf and Kazan
-had not hunted on this side of the waterway—and
-the wolves themselves preferred the more open country
-for the chase.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Suddenly Baree found himself at the edge of a
-deep, dark pool in which the water lay still as oil,
-and his heart nearly jumped out of his body when
-a great, sleek, shining creature sprang out from almost
-under his nose and landed with a tremendous splash
-in the centre of it. It was Nekik, the otter.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The otter had not heard Baree, and in another
-moment Napanekik, his wife, came sailing out of
-a patch of gloom, and behind her came three little
-otters, leaving behind them four shimmering wakes
-in the oily-looking water. What happened after
-that made Baree forget for a few minutes that he
-was lost. Nekik had disappeared under the surface,
-and now he came up directly under his unsuspecting
-mate with a force that lifted her half out
-of the water. Instantly he was gone again, and
-Napanekik took after him fiercely. To Baree it
-did not look like play. Two of the baby otters had
-pitched on the third, which seemed to be fighting
-desperately. The chill and ache went out of Baree’s
-body. His blood ran excitedly; he forgot himself,
-and let out a bark. In a flash the otters disappeared.
-For several minutes the water in the pool continued
-to rock and heave—and that was all. After a little,
-Baree drew himself back into the bushes and went
-on.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was about three o’clock in the afternoon, and
-the sun should still have been well up in the sky.
-But it was growing darker steadily, and the strangeness
-and fear of it all lent greater speed to Baree’s
-legs. He stopped every little while to listen, and
-at one of these intervals he heard a sound that drew
-from him a responsive and joyous whine. It was a
-distant howl—a wolf’s howl—straight ahead of him.
-Baree was not thinking of wolves but of Kazan, and
-he ran through the gloom of the forest until he was
-winded. Then he stopped and listened a long time.
-The wolf-howl did not come again. Instead of it
-there rolled up from the west a deep and thunderous
-rumble. Through the treetops there flashed a vivid
-streak of lightning. A moaning whisper of wind
-rode in advance of the storm; the thunder grew
-nearer; and a second flash of lightning seemed
-searching Baree out where he stood shivering under
-a canopy of great spruce. This was his second storm.
-The first had frightened him terribly, and he had
-crawled far back into the shelter of the windfall.
-The best he could find now was a hollow under a big
-root, and into this he slunk, crying softly. It was
-a babyish cry, a cry for his mother, for home, for
-warmth, for something soft and protecting to nestle
-up to; and as he cried, the storm burst over the
-forest.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree had never before heard so much noise, and
-he had never seen the lightning play in such sheets
-of fire as when this June deluge fell. It seemed at
-times as though the whole world were aflame,
-and the earth seemed to shake and roll under the
-crashes of the thunder. He ceased his crying and
-made himself as small as he could under the root,
-which protected him partly from the terrific beat of
-the rain which came down through the treetops in
-a flood. It was now so black that except when the
-lightning ripped great holes in the gloom he could
-not see the spruce-trunks twenty feet away. Twice
-that distance from Baree there was a huge dead stub
-that stood out like a ghost each time the fires swept
-the sky, as if defying the flaming hands up there to
-strike—and strike, at last, one of them did! A
-bluish tongue of snapping flame ran down the old
-stub; and as it touched the earth, there came a
-tremendous explosion above the treetops. The
-massive stub shivered, and then it broke asunder
-as if cloven by a gigantic axe. It crashed down so
-close to Baree that earth and sticks flew about him,
-and he let out a wild yelp of terror as he tried to
-crowd himself deeper into the shallow hole under
-the root.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With the destruction of the old stub the thunder
-and lightning seemed to have vented their malevolence.
-The thunder passed on into the south and
-east like the rolling of ten thousand heavy cart-wheels
-over the roofs of the forest, and the lightning
-went with it. The rain fell steadily. The hole
-in which he had taken shelter was soppy. He was
-drenched; his teeth chattered as he waited for the
-next thing to happen.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was a long wait. When the rain stopped, and
-the sky cleared, it was night. Through the tops
-of the trees Baree could have seen the stars if he
-had poked out his head and looked upward. But
-he clung to his hole. Hour after hour passed.
-Exhausted, half drowned, footsore, and hungry, he
-did not move. At last he fell into a troubled sleep,
-a sleep in which every now and then he cried softly
-and forlornly for his mother. When he ventured
-out from under the root it was morning, and the sun
-was shining.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>At first Baree could hardly stand. His legs were
-cramped; every bone in his body seemed out of
-joint; his ear was stiff where the blood had oozed
-out of it and hardened, and when he tried to wrinkle
-his wounded nose, he gave a sharp little yap of pain.
-If such a thing were possible, he looked even worse
-than he felt. His hair had dried in muddy patches;
-he was dirt-stained from end to end; and where
-yesterday he had been plump and shiny, he was now
-as thin and wretched as misfortune could possibly
-make him. And he was hungry. He had never
-before known what it meant to be really hungry.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When he went on, continuing in the direction he
-had been following yesterday, he slunk along in a
-disheartened sort of way. His head and ears were
-no longer alert, and his curiosity was gone. He
-was not only stomach-hungry: mother-hunger rose
-above his physical yearning for something to eat.
-He wanted his mother as he had never wanted her
-before in his life. He wanted to snuggle his shivering
-little body close up to her and feel the warm caressing
-of her tongue and listen to the mothering whine
-of her voice. And he wanted Kazan, and the old
-windfall, and that big blue spot that was in the sky
-right over it. While he followed again along the
-edge of the creek, he whimpered for them as a child
-might grieve.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The forest grew more open after a time, and this
-cheered him up a little. Also the warmth of the sun
-was taking the ache out of his body. He grew
-hungrier and hungrier. He had depended entirely
-on Kazan and Gray Wolf for food. His parents
-had, in some ways, made a great baby of him. Gray
-Wolf’s blindness accounted for this, for since his
-birth she had not taken up her hunting with Kazan,
-and it was quite natural that Baree should stick
-close to her, though more than once he had been
-filled with a great yearning to follow his father.
-Nature was hard at work trying to overcome its
-handicap now. It was struggling to impress on
-Baree that the time had now come when he must
-seek his own food. The fact impinged itself upon
-him slowly but steadily, and he began to think of
-the three or four shellfish he had caught and
-devoured on the stony creek-bar near the windfall.
-He also remembered the open clam-shell he had
-found, and the lusciousness of the tender morsel
-inside it. A new excitement began to possess him.
-He became, all at once, a hunter.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With the thinning out of the forest the creek grew
-more shallow. It ran again over bars of sand and
-stones, and Baree began to nose along the edge of
-these. For a long time he had no success. The
-few crayfish that he saw were exceedingly lively and
-elusive, and all the clam-shells were shut so tight
-that even Kazan’s powerful jaws would have had
-difficulty in smashing them. It was almost noon
-when he caught his first crayfish, about as big as a
-man’s forefinger. He devoured it ravenously. The
-taste of food gave him fresh courage. He caught
-two more crayfish during the afternoon. It was
-almost dusk when he stirred a young rabbit out
-from under a cover of grass. If he had been a
-month older, he could have caught it. He was
-still very hungry, for three crayfish—scattered
-through the day—had not done much to fill the
-emptiness that was growing steadily in him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With the approach of night Baree’s fears and great
-loneliness returned. Before the day had quite gone
-he found himself a shelter under a big rock, where
-there was a warm, soft bed of sand. Since his fight
-with Papayuchisew, he had travelled a long distance,
-and the rock under which he made his bed this
-night was at least eight or nine miles from the windfall.
-It was in the open of the creek-bottom, with
-the dark forest of spruce and cedars close on either
-side; and when the moon rose, and the stars filled
-the sky, Baree could look out and see the water of
-the stream shimmering in a glow almost as bright
-as day. Directly in front of him, running to the
-water’s edge, was a broad carpet of white sand.
-Across this sand, half an hour later, came a huge
-black bear.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Until Baree had seen the otters at play in the
-creek, his conceptions of the forests had not gone
-beyond his own kind, and such creatures as owls and
-rabbits and small feathered things. The otters
-had not frightened him, because he still measured
-things by size, and Nekik was not half as big as
-Kazan. But the bear was a monster beside which
-Kazan would have stood a mere pigmy. He was
-big. If nature was taking this way of introducing
-Baree to the fact that there were more important
-creatures in the forests than dogs and wolves and
-owls and crayfish, she was driving the point home
-with a little more than necessary emphasis. For
-Wakayoo, the bear, weighed six hundred pounds if
-he weighed an ounce. He was fat and sleek from a
-month’s feasting on fish. His shiny coat was like
-black velvet in the moonlight, and he walked with a
-curious rolling motion with his head hung low.
-The horror grew when he stopped broadside in the
-carpet of sand not more than ten feet from the rock
-under which Baree was shivering as if he had the
-ague.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was quite evident that Wakayoo had caught
-scent of him in the air. Baree could hear him sniff—could
-hear his breathing—caught the starlight flashing
-in his reddish-brown eyes as they swung
-suspiciously toward the big boulder. If Baree could
-have known then that <i>he</i>—his insignificant little
-self—was making that monster actually nervous
-and uneasy, he would have given a yelp of joy.
-For Wakayoo, in spite of his size, was somewhat of
-a coward when it came to wolves. And Baree carried
-the wolf-scent. It grew stronger in Wakayoo’s
-nose; and just then, as if to increase whatever
-nervousness was growing in him, there came from out
-of the forest behind him a long and wailing howl.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With an audible grunt, Wakayoo moved on.
-Wolves were pests, he argued. They wouldn’t
-stand up and fight. They’d snap and yap at one’s
-heels for hours at a time, and were always out of
-the way quicker than a wink when one turned on
-them. What was the use of hanging around where
-there were wolves, on a beautiful night like this?
-He lumbered on decisively. Baree could hear him
-splashing heavily through the water of the creek.
-Not until then did the wolf-dog draw a full breath.
-It was almost a gasp.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But the excitement was not over for the night.
-Baree had chosen his bed at a place where the
-animals came down to drink, and where they crossed
-from one of the creek forests to the other. Not
-long after the bear had disappeared he heard a heavy
-crunching in the sand, and hoofs rattling against
-stones, and a bull moose with a huge sweep of antlers
-passed through the open space in the moonlight.
-Baree stared with popping eyes, for if Wakayoo
-had weighed six hundred pounds, this gigantic
-creature whose legs were so long that it seemed
-to be walking on stilts weighed at least twice as
-much. A cow moose followed, and then a calf.
-The calf seemed all legs. It was too much for
-Baree, and he shoved himself farther and farther
-back under the rock until he lay wedged in like a
-sardine in a box. And there he lay until morning.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER IV</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>When Baree ventured forth from under his
-rock at the beginning of the next day, he
-was a much older puppy than when he
-met Papayuchisew, the young owl, in his path near
-the old windfall. If experience can be made to take
-the place of age, he had aged a great deal in the
-last forty-eight hours. In fact, he had passed almost
-out of puppyhood. He awoke with a new
-and much broader conception of the world. It was
-a big place. It was filled with many things, of
-which Kazan and Gray Wolf were not the most
-important. The monsters he had seen on the moonlit
-plot of sand had roused in him a new kind of
-caution, and the one greatest instinct of beasts—the
-primal understanding that it is the strong that
-prey upon the weak—was wakening swiftly in him.
-As yet he quite naturally measured brute force and
-the menace of things by size alone. Thus the bear
-was more terrible than Kazan, and the moose was
-more terrible than the bear.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was quite fortunate for Baree that this instinct
-did not go to the limit in the beginning and make
-him understand that his own breed—the wolf—was
-most feared of all the creatures, claw, hoof, and wing,
-of the forests. Otherwise, like the small boy who
-thinks he can swim before he has mastered a stroke,
-he might somewhere have jumped in beyond his
-depth and had his head chewed off.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Very much alert, with the hair standing up along
-his spine, and a little growl in his throat, Baree
-smelled of the big footprints made by the bear and
-the moose. It was the bear-scent that made him
-growl. He followed the tracks to the edge of the
-creek. After that he resumed his wandering, and
-also his hunt for food.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For two hours he did not find a crayfish. Then
-he came out of the green timber into the edge of a
-burned-over country. Here everything was black.
-The stumps of the trees stood up like huge charred
-canes. It was a comparatively fresh “burn” of
-last autumn, and the ash was still soft under Baree’s
-feet. Straight through this black region ran the
-creek, and over it hung a blue sky in which the sun
-was shining. It was quite inviting to Baree. The
-fox, the wolf, the moose, and the caribou would have
-turned back from the edge of this dead country.
-In another year it would be good hunting-ground,
-but now it was lifeless. Even the owls would have
-found nothing to eat out there.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was the blue sky and the sun and the softness
-of the earth under his feet that lured Baree. It was
-pleasant to travel in after his painful experiences in
-the forest. He continued to follow the stream,
-though there was now little possibility of his finding
-anything to eat. The water had become sluggish
-and dark; the channel was choked with charred
-débris that had fallen into it when the forest had
-burned, and its shores were soft and muddy. After
-a time, when Baree stopped and looked about him,
-he could no longer see the green timber he had left.
-He was alone in that desolate wilderness of charred
-tree-corpses. It was as still as death, too. Not the
-chirp of a bird broke the silence. In the soft ash
-he could not hear the fall of his own feet. But he
-was not frightened. There was the assurance of
-safety here.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>If he could only find something to eat! That
-was the master-thought that possessed Baree. Instinct
-had not yet impressed upon him that this
-which he saw all about him was starvation. He went
-on, seeking hopefully for food. But at last, as the
-hours passed, hope began to die out of him. The
-sun sank westward. The sky grew less blue; a low
-wind began to ride over the tops of the stubs, and
-now and then one of them fell with a startling crash.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree could go no farther. An hour before dusk
-he lay down in the open, weak and starved. The
-sun disappeared behind the forest. The moon
-rolled up from the east. The sky glittered with
-stars—and all through the night Baree lay as if
-dead. When morning came, he dragged himself
-to the stream for a drink. With his last strength
-he went on. It was the wolf urging him—compelling
-him to struggle to the last for his life. The
-dog in him wanted to lie down and die. But the
-wolf-spark in him burned stronger. In the end it
-won. Half a mile farther on he came again to
-the green timber.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In the forests as well as in the great cities fate
-plays its changing and whimsical hand. If Baree
-had dragged himself into the timber half an hour
-later he would have died. He was too far gone
-now to hunt for crayfish or kill the weakest bird.
-But he came just as Sekoosew, the ermine—the most
-bloodthirsty little pirate of all the wild—was making
-a kill.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>That was fully a hundred yards from where
-Baree lay stretched out under a spruce, almost
-ready to give up the ghost. Sekoosew was a mighty
-hunter of his kind. His body was about seven
-inches long, with a tiny black-tipped tail appended
-to it, and he weighed perhaps five ounces. A baby’s
-fingers could have encircled him anywhere between
-his four legs, and his little sharp-pointed head
-with its beady red eyes could slip easily through a
-hole an inch in diameter. For several centuries
-Sekoosew had helped to make history. It was he—when
-his pelt was worth a hundred dollars in king’s
-gold—that lured the first shipload of gentlemen
-adventurers over the sea, with Prince Rupert at
-their head; it was little Sekoosew who was responsible
-for the forming of the great Hudson’s Bay Company
-and the discovery of half a continent; for almost
-three centuries he had fought his fight for existence
-with the trapper. And now, though he was no
-longer worth his weight in yellow gold, he was the
-cleverest, the fiercest, and the most merciless of all
-the creatures that made up his world.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>As Baree lay under his tree, Sekoosew was creeping
-on his prey. His game was a big fat spruce-hen
-standing under a thicket of black currant bushes.
-The ear of no living thing could have heard Sekoosew’s
-movement. He was like a shadow—a gray
-dot here, a flash there, now hidden behind a stick
-no larger than a man’s wrist, appearing for a
-moment, the next instant gone as completely as if
-he had not existed. Thus he approached from fifty
-feet to within three feet of the spruce-hen. That
-was his favourite striking distance. Unerringly he
-launched himself at the drowsy partridge’s throat, and
-his needle-like teeth sank through feathers into flesh.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Sekoosew was prepared for what happened then.
-It always happened when he attacked Napanao,
-the wood-partridge. Her wings were powerful, and
-her first instinct when he struck was always that
-of flight. She rose straight up now with a great
-thunder of wings. Sekoosew hung tight, his teeth
-buried deep in her throat, and his tiny, sharp claws
-clinging to her like hands. Through the air he
-whizzed with her, biting deeper and deeper, until a
-hundred yards from where that terrible death-thing
-had fastened to her throat, Napanao crashed again to
-earth.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Where she fell was not ten feet from Baree. For
-a few moments he looked at the struggling mass of
-feathers in a daze, not quite comprehending that at
-last food was almost within his reach. Napanao
-was dying, but she still struggled convulsively with
-her wings. Baree rose stealthily, and after a moment
-in which he gathered all his remaining
-strength, he made a rush for her. His teeth sank
-into her breast—and not until then did he see
-Sekoosew. The ermine had raised his head from
-the death-grip at the partridge’s throat, and his
-savage little red eyes glared for a single instant into
-Baree’s. Here was something too big to kill, and
-with an angry squeak the ermine was gone. Napanao’s
-wings relaxed, and the throb went out of
-her body. She was dead. Baree hung on until
-he was sure. Then he began his feast.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With murder in his heart, Sekoosew hovered
-near, whisking here and there but never coming
-nearer than half a dozen feet from Baree. His eyes
-were redder than ever. Now and then he emitted
-a sharp little squeak of rage. Never had he been so
-angry in all his life! To have a fat partridge stolen
-from him like this was an imposition he had never
-suffered before. He wanted to dart in and fasten
-his teeth in Baree’s jugular. But he was too good
-a general to make the attempt, too good a Napoleon
-to jump deliberately to his Waterloo. An owl he
-would have fought. He might even have given
-battle to his big brother—and his deadliest enemy—the
-mink. But in Baree he recognized the wolf-breed,
-and he vented his spite at a distance. After
-a time his good sense returned, and he went off on
-another hunt.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree ate a third of the partridge, and the remaining
-two thirds he cached very carefully at the
-foot of the big spruce. Then he hurried down to
-the creek for a drink. The world looked very different
-to him now. After all, one’s capacity for
-happiness depends largely on how deeply one has
-suffered. One’s hard luck and misfortune form
-the measuring-stick for future good luck and fortune.
-So it was with Baree. Forty-eight hours ago a full
-stomach would not have made him a tenth part as
-happy as he was now. Then his greatest longing
-was for his mother. Since then a still greater yearning
-had come into his life—for food. In a way it
-was fortunate for him that he had almost died of
-exhaustion and starvation, for his experience had
-helped to make a man of him—or a wolf-dog, just
-as you are of a mind to put it. He would miss
-his mother for a long time. But he would never miss
-her again as he had missed her yesterday, and the
-day before.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>That afternoon Baree took a long nap close to his
-cache. Then he uncovered the partridge and ate his
-supper. When his fourth night alone came, he
-did not hide himself as he had done on the three
-preceding nights. He was strangely and curiously
-alert. Under the moon and the stars he prowled in
-the edge of the forest and out on the burn. He
-listened with a new kind of thrill to the far-away
-cry of a wolf-pack on the hunt. He listened to the
-ghostly <i>whoo-whoo-whoo</i> of the owls without shivering.
-Sounds and silences were beginning to hold
-a new and significant note for him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For another day and night Baree remained in the
-vicinity of his cache. When the last bone was picked,
-he moved on. He now entered a country where subsistence
-was no longer a perilous problem for him.
-It was a lynx country, and where there are lynx,
-there are also a great many rabbits. When the
-rabbits thin out, the lynx emigrate to better
-hunting-grounds. As the snowshoe rabbit breeds all the
-summer through, Baree found himself in a land of
-plenty. It was not difficult for him to catch and
-kill the young rabbits. For a week he prospered
-and grew bigger and stronger each day. But all
-the time, stirred by that seeking, Wanderlust spirit—still
-hoping to find the old home and his mother—he
-travelled into the north and east.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And this was straight into the trapping country
-of Pierrot, the halfbreed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pierrot, until two years ago, had believed himself
-to be one of the most fortunate men in the big wilderness.
-That was before <i>La Mort Rouge</i>—the Red
-Death—came. He was half French, and he had
-married a Cree chief’s daughter, and in their log
-cabin on the Gray Loon they had lived for many
-years in great prosperity and happiness. Pierrot
-was proud of three things in this wild world of his:
-he was immensely proud of Wyola, his royal-blooded
-wife; he was proud of his daughter; and he was proud
-of his reputation as a hunter. Until the Red Death
-came, life was quite complete for him. It was then—two
-years ago—that the smallpox killed his princess-wife.
-He still lived in the little cabin on the Gray
-Loon, but he was a different Pierrot. The heart was
-sick in him. It would have died, had it not been for
-Nepeese, his daughter. His wife had named her
-Nepeese, which means the Willow. Nepeese had
-grown up like the willow, slender as a reed, with all
-her mother’s wild beauty, and with a little of the
-French thrown in. She was sixteen, with great,
-dark, wonderful eyes, and hair so beautiful that an
-agent from Montreal passing that way had once
-tried to buy it. It fell in two shining braids, each as
-big as a man’s wrist, almost to her knees. “<i>Non,
-M’sieu</i>,” Pierrot had said, a cold glitter in his eyes
-as he saw what was in the agent’s face. “It is not
-for barter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Two days after Baree had entered his trapping-ground,
-Pierrot came in from the forests with a
-troubled look in his face.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Something is killing off the young beavers,” he
-explained to Nepeese, speaking to her in French.
-“It is a lynx or a wolf. To-morrow——” He
-shrugged his thin shoulders, and smiled at her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“We will go on the hunt,” laughed Nepeese happily,
-in her soft Cree.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When Pierrot smiled at her like that, and began
-with “To-morrow,” it always meant that she might
-go with him on the adventure he was contemplating.</p>
-
-<hr class='c007' />
-
-<p class='c001'>Still another day later, at the end of the afternoon,
-Baree crossed the Gray Loon on a bridge of driftwood
-that had wedged between two trees. This
-was to the north. Just beyond the driftwood
-bridge there was a small open, and on the edge of
-this Baree paused to enjoy the last of the setting
-sun. As he stood motionless and listening, his tail
-drooping low, his ears alert, his sharp-pointed nose
-sniffing the new country to the north, there was
-not a pair of eyes in the forest that would not have
-taken him for a young wolf.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>From behind a clump of young balsams, a hundred
-yards away, Pierrot and Nepeese had watched him
-come over the driftwood bridge. Now was the
-time, and Pierrot levelled his rifle. It was not
-until then that Nepeese touched his arm softly.
-Her breath came a little excitedly as she whispered:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nootawe, let me shoot. I can kill him!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With a low chuckle Pierrot gave the gun to her.
-He counted the whelp as already dead. For Nepeese,
-at that distance, could send a bullet into an
-inch square nine times out of ten. And Nepeese,
-aiming carefully at Baree, pressed steadily with her
-brown forefinger upon the trigger.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER V</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>As the Willow pulled the trigger of her rifle,
-Baree sprang into the air. He felt the
-force of the bullet before he heard the report
-of the gun. It lifted him off his feet, and then
-sent him rolling over and over as if he had been struck
-a hideous blow with a club. For a flash he did not
-feel pain. Then it ran through him like a knife of
-fire, and with that pain the dog in him rose above the
-wolf, and he let out a wild outcry of puppyish yapping
-as he rolled and twisted on the ground.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pierrot and Nepeese had stepped from behind the
-balsams, the Willow’s beautiful eyes shining with
-pride at the accuracy of her shot. Instantly she
-caught her breath. Her brown fingers clutched
-at the barrel of her rifle. The chuckle of satisfaction
-died on Pierrot’s lips as Baree’s cries of pain
-filled the forest.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Uchi Moosis!</i>” gasped Nepeese, in her Cree.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pierrot caught the rifle from her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Diable!</i> A dog—a puppy!” he cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He started on a run for Baree. But in their
-amazement they had lost a few seconds and Baree’s
-dazed senses were returning. He saw them clearly
-as they came across the open—a new kind of monster
-of the forests! With a final wail he darted
-back into the deep shadows of the trees. It was
-almost sunset, and he ran for the thick gloom of the
-heavy spruce near the creek. He had shivered at
-sight of the bear and the moose, but for the first
-time he now sensed the real meaning of danger.
-And it was close after him. He could hear the
-crashing of the two-legged beasts in pursuit; strange
-cries were almost at his heels—and then suddenly
-he plunged without warning into a hole.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was a shock to have the earth go out from under
-his feet like that, but Baree did not yelp. The wolf
-was dominant in him again. It urged him to
-remain where he was, making no move, no sound—scarcely
-breathing. The voices were over him;
-the strange feet almost stumbled in the hole where
-he lay. Looking out of his dark hiding-place, he
-could see one of his enemies. It was Nepeese, the
-Willow. She was standing so that a last glow of the
-day fell upon her face. Baree did not take his eyes
-from her. Above his pain there rose in him a strange
-and thrilling fascination. The girl put her two hands
-to her mouth and in a voice that was soft and plaintive
-and amazingly comforting to his terrified little
-heart, cried:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Uchimoo—Uchimoo—Uchimoo!</i>”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And then he heard another voice; and this voice,
-too, was far less terrible than many sounds he had
-listened to in the forests.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“We cannot find him, Nepeese,” the voice was
-saying. “He has crawled off to die. It is too bad.
-Come.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Where Baree had stood in the edge of the open
-Pierrot paused and pointed to a birch sapling that
-had been cut clean off by the Willow’s bullet. Nepeese
-understood. The sapling, no larger than her
-thumb, had turned her shot a trifle and had saved
-Baree from instant death.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She turned again, and called:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Uchimoo—Uchimoo—Uchimoo!</i>”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Her eyes were no longer filled with the thrill of
-slaughter.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He would not understand that,” said Pierrot,
-leading the way across the open. “He is wild—born
-of the wolves. Perhaps he was of Koomo’s
-lead-bitch, who ran away to hunt with the packs
-last winter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And he will die——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Ayetun</i>—yes, he will die.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But Baree had no idea of dying. He was too tough
-a youngster to be shocked to death by a bullet passing
-through the soft flesh of his fore-leg. That was
-what had happened. His leg was torn to the bone,
-but the bone itself was untouched. He waited until
-the moon had risen before he crawled out of his hole.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>His leg had grown stiff then; it had stopped bleeding,
-but his whole body was racked by a terrible
-pain. A dozen Papayuchisews, all holding tight to
-his ears and nose, could not have hurt him more.
-Every time he moved, a sharp twinge shot through
-him; and yet he persisted in moving. Instinctively
-he felt that by travelling away from the hole he
-would get away from danger. This was the best
-thing that could have happened to him, for a little
-later a porcupine came wandering along, chattering
-to itself in its foolish, good-humoured way, and fell
-with a fat thud into the hole. Had Baree remained,
-he would have been so full of quills that he must
-surely have died.</p>
-
-<div id='i048' class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/illus-048.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic001'>
-<p>Nepeese, the trapper’s daughter, known to the forest men as “The Willow,” who became a big factor in the life of the pup Baree.</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'>In another way the exercise of travel was good
-for Baree. It gave his wound no opportunity to
-“set,” as Pierrot would have said, for in reality his
-hurt was more painful than serious. For the first
-hundred yards he hobbled along on three legs, and
-after that he found that he could use his fourth by
-humouring it a great deal. He followed the creek for
-a half-mile. Whenever a bit of brush touched his
-wound, he would snap at it viciously, and instead of
-whimpering when he felt one of the sharp twinges
-shooting through him, an angry little growl gathered
-in his throat, and his teeth clicked. Now that he
-was out of the hole, the effect of the Willow’s shot
-was stirring every drop of wolf-blood in his body.
-In him there was a growing animosity—a feeling
-of rage not against any one thing in particular, but
-against all things. It was not the feeling with
-which he had fought Papayuchisew, the young owl.
-On this night the dog in him had disappeared. An
-accumulation of misfortunes had descended upon him,
-and out of these misfortunes—and his present hurt—the
-wolf had risen savage and vengeful.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This was the first night Baree had travelled. He
-was, for the time, unafraid of anything that might
-creep up on him out of the darkness. The blackest
-shadows had lost their thrill. It was the first big
-fight between the two natures that were born in
-him—the wolf and the dog—and the dog was vanquished.
-Now and then he stopped to lick his
-wound, and as he licked it he growled, as though
-for the hurt itself he held a personal antagonism.
-If Pierrot could have seen and heard, he would have
-understood very quickly, and he would have said:
-“Let him die. The club will never take that devil
-out of him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In this humour Baree came, an hour later, out of
-the heavy timber of the creek-bottom into the more
-open spaces of a small plain that ran along the foot
-of a ridge. It was in this plain that Oohoomisew
-hunted. Oohoomisew was a huge snow-owl. He
-was the patriarch among all the owls of Pierrot’s
-trapping domain. He was so old that he was almost
-blind, and therefore he never hunted as other owls
-hunted. He did not hide himself in the black cover
-of spruce- and balsam-tops, or float softly through
-the night, ready in an instant to swoop down upon
-his prey. His eyesight was so poor that from a
-spruce-top he could not have seen a rabbit at all,
-and he might have mistaken a fox for a mouse.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>So old Oohoomisew, learning wisdom from experience,
-hunted from ambush. He would squat
-on the ground, and for hours at a time he would
-remain there without making a sound and scarcely
-moving a feather, waiting with the patience of
-Job for something to eat to come his way. Now and
-then he had made mistakes. Twice he had mistaken
-a lynx for a rabbit, and in the second attack he had
-lost a foot, so that when he slumbered aloft during
-the day he hung to his perch with one claw. Crippled,
-nearly blind, and so old that he had long ago
-lost the tufts of feathers over his ears, he was still a
-giant in strength, and when he was angry, one could
-hear the snap of his beak twenty yards away.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For three nights he had been unlucky, and to-night
-he had been particularly unfortunate. Two
-rabbits had come his way, and he had lunged at
-each of them from his cover. The first he had
-missed entirely; the second had left with him a
-mouthful of fur—and that was all. He was ravenously
-hungry, and he was gritting his bill in his bad
-temper when he heard Baree approaching.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Even if Baree could have seen under the dark
-bush ahead, and had discovered Oohoomisew ready
-to dart from his ambush, it is not likely that he
-would have gone very far aside. His own fighting
-blood was up. He, too, was ready for war.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Very indistinctly Oohoomisew saw him at last,
-coming across the little open which he was watching.
-He squatted down. His feathers ruffled up until
-he was like a ball. His almost sightless eyes glowed
-like two bluish pools of fire. Ten feet away, Baree
-stopped for a moment and licked his wound. Oohoomisew
-waited cautiously. Again Baree advanced,
-passing within six feet of the bush. With a swift
-hop and a sudden thunder of his powerful wings the
-great owl was upon him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This time Baree let out no cry of pain or of fright.
-The wolf is <i>kipichi-mao</i>, as the Indians say. No
-hunter ever heard a trapped wolf whine for mercy
-at the sting of a bullet or the beat of a club. He
-dies with his fangs bared. To-night it was a wolf-whelp
-that Oohoomisew was attacking, and not a
-dog-pup. The owl’s first rush keeled Baree over, and
-for a moment he was smothered under the huge,
-outspread wings, while Oohoomisew—pinioning him
-down—hopped for a claw-hold with his one good
-foot, and struck fiercely with his beak.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>One blow of that beak anywhere about the head
-would have settled for a rabbit, but at the first
-thrust Oohoomisew discovered that it was not a
-rabbit he was holding under his wings. A blood-curdling
-snarl answered the blow, and Oohoomisew
-remembered the lynx, his lost foot, and his narrow
-escape with his life. The old pirate might have
-beaten a retreat, but Baree was no longer the puppyish
-Baree of that hour in which he had fought young
-Papayuchisew. Experience and hardship had aged
-and strengthened him; his jaws had passed quickly
-from the bone-licking to the bone-cracking age—and
-before Oohoomisew could get away, if he was thinking
-of flight at all, Baree’s fangs closed with a vicious
-snap on his one good leg.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In the stillness of night there rose a still greater
-thunder of wings, and for a few moments Baree
-closed his eyes to keep from being blinded by Oohoomisew’s
-furious blows. But he hung on grimly, and
-as his teeth met through the flesh of the old night-pirate’s
-leg, his angry snarl carried defiance to Oohoomisew’s
-ears. Rare good fortune had given him
-that grip on the leg, and Baree knew that triumph or
-defeat depended on his ability to hold it. The old
-owl had no other claw to sink into him, and it was
-impossible—caught as he was—for him to tear at
-Baree with his beak. So he continued to beat that
-thunder of blows with his four-foot wings.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The wings made a great tumult about Baree, but
-they did not hurt him. He buried his fangs deeper.
-His snarls rose more fiercely as he got the taste of
-Oohoomisew’s blood, and through him there surged
-more hotly the desire to kill this monster of the
-night, as though in the death of this creature he had
-the opportunity of avenging himself for all the hurts
-and hardships that had befallen him since he lost
-his mother.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Oohoomisew had never felt a great fear until now.
-The lynx had snapped at him but once—and was
-gone, leaving him crippled. But the lynx had not
-snarled in that wolfish way, and it had not hung on.
-A thousand and one nights Oohoomisew had listened
-to the wolf-howl. Instinct had told him what it
-meant. He had seen the packs pass swiftly through
-the night, and always when they passed he had kept
-in the deepest shadows. To him, as for all other
-wild things, the wolf-howl stood for death. But
-until now, with Baree’s fangs buried in his leg, he
-had never sensed fully the wolf-fear. It had taken
-it years to enter into his slow, stupid head—but now
-that it was there, it possessed him as no other thing
-had ever possessed him in all his life.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Suddenly Oohoomisew ceased his beating and
-launched himself upward. Like huge fans his powerful
-wings churned the air, and Baree felt himself
-lifted suddenly from the earth. Still he held on—and
-in a moment both bird and beast fell back with a
-thud.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Oohoomisew tried again. This time he was more
-successful, and he rose fully six feet into the air with
-Baree. They fell again. A third time the old
-outlaw fought to wing himself free of Baree’s grip;
-and then, exhausted, he lay with his giant wings outspread,
-hissing and cracking his bill.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Under those wings Baree’s mind worked with the
-swift instincts of the killer. Suddenly he changed his
-hold, burying his fangs into the under part of Oohoomisew’s
-body. They sank into three inches of
-feathers. Swift as Baree had been, Oohoomisew
-was equally swift to take advantage of his opportunity.
-In an instant he had swooped upward.
-There was a jerk, a rending of feathers from flesh—and
-Baree was alone on the field of battle.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree had not killed, but he had conquered.
-His first great day—or night—had come. The world
-was filled with a new promise for him, as vast as the
-night itself. And after a moment he sat back on his
-haunches, sniffing the air for his beaten enemy; and
-then, as if defying the feathered monster to come
-back and fight to the end, he pointed his sharp little
-muzzle up to the stars and sent forth his first babyish
-wolf-howl into the night.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER VI</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>Baree’s fight with Oohoomisew was good
-medicine for him. It not only gave him
-great confidence in himself, but it also cleared
-the fever of ugliness from his blood. He no longer
-snapped and snarled at things as he went on through
-the night.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was a wonderful night. The moon was straight
-overhead, and the sky was filled with stars, so that
-in the open spaces the light was almost like that of
-day, except that it was softer and more beautiful.
-It was very still. There was no wind in the treetops,
-and it seemed to Baree that the howl he had
-given must have echoed to the end of the world.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Now and then Baree heard a sound—and always
-he stopped, attentive and listening. Far away he
-heard the long, soft mooing of a cow moose; he heard
-a great splashing in the water of a small lake that he
-came to, and once there came to him the sharp
-cracking of horn against horn—two bucks settling
-a little difference of opinion a quarter of a mile away.
-But it was always the wolf-howl that made him sit
-and listen longest, his heart beating with a strange
-impulse which he did not as yet understand. It was
-the call of his breed, growing in him slowly but
-insistently.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He was still a wanderer—<i>pupamootao</i>, the Indians
-call it. It is this “wander spirit” that inspires for a
-time nearly every creature of the wild as soon as it
-is able to care for itself—nature’s scheme, perhaps,
-for doing away with too close family relations and
-possibly dangerous interbreeding. Baree, like the
-young wolf seeking new hunting-grounds, or the
-young fox discovering a new world, had no reason
-or method in his wandering. He was simply “travelling”—going
-on. He wanted something which
-he could not find. The wolf-note brought it to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The stars and the moon filled Baree with a yearning
-for this something. The distant sounds impinged
-upon him his great aloneness. And instinct
-told him that only by questing could he find. It
-was not so much Kazan and Gray Wolf that he missed
-now—not so much motherhood and home as it was
-companionship. Now that he had fought the
-wolfish rage out of him in his battle with Oohoomisew,
-the dog part of him had come into its own
-again—the lovable half of him, the part that wanted
-to snuggle up near something that was alive and
-friendly, small odds whether it wore feathers or fur,
-was clawed or hoofed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He was sore from the Willow’s bullet, and he was
-sore from battle, and toward dawn he lay down under
-a shelter of alders at the edge of a second small
-lake and rested until midday. Then he began
-questing in the reeds and close to the pond-lilies for
-food. He found a dead jackfish, partly eaten by a
-mink, and finished it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>His wound was much less painful this afternoon,
-and by nightfall he scarcely noticed it at all. Since
-his almost tragic end at the hands of Nepeese, he
-had been travelling in a general northeasterly direction,
-following instinctively the run of the water-ways;
-but his progress had been slow, and when
-darkness came again he was not more than eight or
-ten miles from the hole into which he had fallen after
-the Willow had shot him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree did not travel far this night. The fact that
-his wound had come with dusk, and his fight with
-Oohoomisew still later, filled him with caution.
-Experience had taught him that the dark shadows
-and the black pits in the forest were possible ambuscades
-of danger. He was no longer afraid, as he
-had once been, but he had had fighting enough for
-a time, and so he accepted circumspection as the
-better part of valour and held himself aloof from the
-perils of darkness. It was a strange instinct that
-made him seek his bed on the top of a huge rock up
-which he had some difficulty in climbing. Perhaps
-it was a harkening back to the days of long ago when
-Gray Wolf, in her first motherhood, sought refuge
-at the summit of the Sun Rock which towered high
-above the forest-world of which she and Kazan were
-a part, and where later she was blinded in her battle
-with the lynx.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree’s rock, instead of rising for a hundred feet
-or more straight up, was possibly as high as a man’s
-head. It was in the edge of the creek-bottom, with
-the spruce forest close at his back. For many
-hours he did not sleep, but lay keenly alert, his ears
-tuned to catch every sound that came out of the
-dark world about him. There was more than curiosity
-in his alertness to-night. His education had
-broadened immensely in one way: he had learned
-that he was a very small part of all this wonderful
-earth that lay under the stars and the moon, and
-he was keenly alive with the desire to become better
-acquainted with it without any more fighting or
-hurt. To-night he knew what it meant when he
-saw now and then gray shadows float silently out of
-the forest into the moonlight—the owls, monsters
-of the breed with which he had fought. He heard the
-crackling of hoofed feet and the smashing of heavy
-bodies in the underbrush. He heard again the mooing
-of the moose. Voices came to him that he had
-not heard before—the sharp <i>yap-yap-yap</i> of a fox,
-the unearthly, laughing cry of a great Northern
-loon on a lake half a mile away, the scream of a
-lynx that came floating through miles of forest, the
-low, soft croaks of the nighthawks between himself
-and the stars. He heard strange whisperings in the
-treetops—whisperings of the winds; and once, in the
-heart of a dead stillness, a buck whistled shrilly close
-behind his rock—and at the wolf-scent in the air
-shot away in a terror-stricken gray streak.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>All these sounds held their new meaning for Baree.
-Swiftly he was coming into his knowledge of the
-wilderness. His eyes gleamed; his blood thrilled.
-For many minutes at a time he scarcely moved.
-But of all the sounds that came to him, the wolf-cry
-thrilled him most. Again and again he listened
-to it. At times it was far away, so far that it was
-like a whisper, dying away almost before it reached
-him; and then again it would come to him full-throated,
-hot with the breath of the chase, calling
-him to the red thrill of the hunt, to the wild orgy of
-torn flesh and running blood—calling, calling, calling.
-That was it, calling him to his own kin, to the
-bone of his bone and the flesh of his flesh—to the
-wild, fierce hunting-packs of his mother’s tribe! It
-was Gray Wolf’s voice seeking for him in the night—Gray
-Wolf’s blood inviting him to the Brotherhood
-of the Pack.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree trembled as he listened. In his throat he
-whined softly. He edged to the sheer face of the
-rock. He wanted to go; nature was urging him to
-go. But the call of the wild was struggling against
-odds; for in him was the dog, with its generations of
-subdued and sleeping instincts—and all that night
-the dog in him kept Baree to the top of his rock.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Next morning Baree found many crawfish along
-the creek, and he feasted on their succulent flesh
-until he felt that he would never be hungry again.
-Nothing had tasted quite so good since he had eaten
-the partridge of which he had robbed Sekoosew the
-ermine.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In the middle of the afternoon Baree came into a
-part of the forest that was very quiet and very
-peaceful. The creek had deepened. In places its
-banks swept out until they formed small ponds.
-Twice he made considerable detours to get around
-these ponds. He travelled very quietly, listening and
-watching. Not since the ill-fated day he had left
-the old windfall had he felt quite so much at home
-as now. It seemed to him that at last he was treading
-country which he knew, and where he would
-find friends. Perhaps this was another miracle-mystery
-of instinct—of nature. For he was in old
-Beaver-tooth’s domain. It was here that his father
-and mother had hunted in the days before he was
-born. It was not far from here that Kazan and
-Beaver-tooth had fought that mighty duel under
-water, from which Kazan had escaped with his
-life without another breath to lose.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree would never know these things. He would
-never know that he was travelling over old trails.
-But something deep in him gripped at him strangely.
-He sniffed the air, as if in it he found the scent of
-familiar things. It was only a faint breath—an
-indefinable promise that brought him to the point of a
-mysterious anticipation.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The forest grew deeper. It was wonderful. There
-was no undergrowth, and travelling under the trees
-was like being in a vast, mystery-filled cavern
-through the roof of which the light of day broke
-softly, brightened here and there by golden splashes
-of the sun. For a mile Baree made his way quietly
-through this forest. He saw nothing but a few
-winged flittings of birds; there was almost no sound.
-Then he came to a still larger pond. Around this
-pond there was a thick growth of alders and willows;
-the larger trees had thinned out. He saw the
-glimmer of afternoon sunlight on the water—and
-then, all at once, he heard life.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There had been few changes in Beaver-tooth’s
-colony since the days of his feud with Kazan and
-the otters. Old Beaver-tooth was still older. He
-was fatter. He slept a great deal, and perhaps he
-was less cautious. He was dozing on the great
-mud-and-brushwood dam of which he had been
-engineer-in-chief, when Baree came out softly on a high bank
-thirty or forty feet away. So noiseless had Baree
-been that none of the beavers had seen or heard him.
-He squatted himself flat on his belly, hidden behind a
-tuft of grass, and with eager interest watched every
-movement. Beaver-tooth was rousing himself. He
-stood on his short legs for a moment; then he tilted
-himself up on his broad, flat tail like a soldier at
-attention, and with a sudden whistle dived into the
-pond with a great splash.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In another moment it seemed to Baree that the
-pond was alive with beavers. Heads and bodies
-appeared and disappeared, rushing this way and that
-through the water in a manner that amazed and
-puzzled him. It was the colony’s evening frolic.
-Tails hit the water like flat boards. Odd whistlings
-rose above the splashing—and then as suddenly as it
-had begun, the play came to an end. There were
-probably twenty beavers, not counting the young,
-and as if guided by a common signal—something
-which Baree had not heard—they became so quiet
-that hardly a sound could be heard in the pond. A
-few of them sank under the water and disappeared
-entirely, but most of them Baree could watch as they
-drew themselves out on shore.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The beavers lost no time in getting at their labour,
-and Baree watched and listened without so much as
-rustling a blade of the grass in which he was concealed.
-He was trying to understand. He was striving to
-place these curious and comfortable-looking creatures
-in his knowledge of things. They did not alarm him;
-he felt no uneasiness at their number or size. His
-stillness was not the quiet of discretion, but rather
-of a strange and growing desire to get better acquainted
-with this curious four-legged brotherhood
-of the pond. Already they had begun to make the
-big forest less lonely for him. And then, close under
-him—not more than ten feet from where he lay—he
-saw something that almost gave voice to the
-puppyish longing for companionship that was in
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Down there, on a clean strip of the shore that rose
-out of the soft mud of the pond, waddled fat little
-Umisk and three of his playmates. Umisk was just
-about Baree’s age, perhaps a week or two younger.
-But he was fully as heavy, and almost as wide as he
-was long. Nature can produce no four-footed
-creature that is more lovable than a baby beaver,
-unless it is a baby bear; and Umisk would have
-taken first prize at any beaver baby-show in the world.
-His three companions were a bit smaller. They
-came waddling from behind a low willow, making
-queer little chuckling noises, their little flat tails
-dragging like tiny sledges behind them. They were
-fat and furry, and mighty friendly looking to Baree,
-and his heart beat a sudden swift <i>pit-a-pat</i> of joy.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But Baree did not move. He scarcely breathed.
-And then, suddenly, Umisk turned on one of his
-playmates and bowled him over. Instantly the
-other two were on Umisk, and the four little beavers
-rolled over and over, kicking with their short feet
-and spatting with their tails, and all the time
-emitting soft little squeaking cries. Baree knew that
-it was not fight but frolic. He rose up on his feet.
-He forgot where he was—forgot everything in the
-world but those playing, furry balls. For the
-moment all the hard training nature had been giving
-him was lost. He was no longer a fighter, no longer
-a hunter, no longer a seeker after food. He was a
-puppy, and in him there rose a desire that was greater
-than hunger. He wanted to go down there with
-Umisk and his little chums and roll and play. He
-wanted to tell them, if such a thing were possible,
-that he had lost his mother and his home, and that
-he had been having a mighty hard time of it, and
-that he would like to stay with them and their
-mothers and fathers if they didn’t care.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In his throat there came the least bit of a whine.
-It was so low that Umisk and his playmates did not
-hear it. They were tremendously busy.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Softly Baree took his first step toward them,
-and then another—and at last he stood on the
-narrow strip of shore within half a dozen feet of
-them. His sharp little ears were pitched forward,
-and he was wiggling his tail as fast as he could, and
-every muscle in his body was trembling in
-anticipation.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was then that Umisk saw him, and his fat
-little body became suddenly as motionless as a stone.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Hello!” said Baree, wiggling his whole body and
-talking as plainly as a human tongue could talk.
-“Do you care if I play with you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Umisk made no response. His three playmates
-now had their eyes on Baree. They didn’t make a
-move. They looked stunned. Four pairs of staring,
-wondering eyes were fixed on the stranger.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree made another effort. He grovelled on his
-fore-legs, while his tail and hind-legs continued to
-wiggle, and with a sniff he grabbed a bit of stick
-between his teeth.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Come on—let me in,” he urged. “I know how to
-play!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He tossed the stick in the air as if to prove what he
-was saying, and gave a little yap.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Umisk and his brothers were like dummies.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And then, of a sudden, some one saw Baree. It
-was a big beaver swimming down the pond with a
-sapling timber for the new dam that was under way.
-Instantly he loosed his hold and faced the shore.
-And then, like the report of a rifle, there came the
-crack of his big flat tail on the water—the beaver’s
-signal of danger that on a quiet night can be heard
-half a mile away.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Danger</i>,” it warned. “<i>Danger—danger—danger!</i>”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Scarcely had the signal gone forth when tails were
-cracking in all directions—in the pond, in the
-hidden canals, in the thick willows and alders. To
-Umisk and his companions they said:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Run for your lives!</i>”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree stood rigid and motionless now. In amazement
-he watched the four little beavers plunge into
-the pond and disappear. He heard the sounds of
-other and heavier bodies striking the water. And
-then there followed a strange and disquieting silence.
-Softly Baree whined, and his whine was almost a
-sobbing cry. Why had Umisk and his little mates
-run away from him? What had he done that they
-didn’t want to make friends with him? A great
-loneliness swept over him—a loneliness greater even
-than that of his first night away from his mother.
-The last of the sun faded out of the sky as he stood
-there. Darker shadows crept over the pond. He
-looked into the forest, where night was gathering—and
-with another whining cry he slunk back into it.
-He had not found friendship. He had not found
-comradeship. And his heart was very sad.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER VII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>For two or three days Baree’s excursions
-after food took him farther and farther away
-from the pond. But each afternoon he
-returned to it—until the third day, when he discovered
-a new creek, and Wakayoo. The creek was
-fully two miles back in the forest. This was a
-different sort of stream. It sang merrily over a
-gravelly bed and between chasm walls of split rock.
-It formed deep pools and foaming eddies, and where
-Baree first struck it, the air trembled with the distant
-thunder of a waterfall. It was much pleasanter
-than the dark and silent beaver-stream. It seemed
-possessed of life, and the rush and tumult of it—the
-song and thunder of the water—gave to Baree
-entirely new sensations. He made his way along
-it slowly and cautiously, and it was because of this
-slowness and caution that he came suddenly and
-unobserved upon Wakayoo, the big black bear, hard
-at work fishing.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Wakayoo stood knee-deep in a pool that had
-formed behind a sand bar, and he was having tremendously
-good luck. Even as Baree shrank back,
-his eyes popping at sight of this monster he had
-seen but once before, in the gloom of night, one of
-Wakayoo’s big paws sent a great splash of water
-high in the air, and a fish landed on the pebbly shore.
-A little while before, the suckers had run up the
-creek in thousands to spawn, and the rapid lowering
-of the water had caught many of them in these
-prison-pools. Wakayoo’s fat, sleek body was evidence
-of the prosperity this circumstance had brought
-him. Although it was a little past the “prime”
-season for bearskins, Wakayoo’s coat was splendidly
-thick and black.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For a quarter of an hour Baree watched him while
-he knocked fish out of the pool. When at last he
-stopped, there were twenty or thirty fish among the
-stones, some of them dead and others still flopping.
-From where he lay flattened out between two rocks,
-Baree could hear the crunching of flesh and bone as
-the bear devoured his dinner. It sounded good, and
-the fresh smell of fish filled him with a craving that
-had never been roused by crawfish or even partridge.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In spite of his fat and his size, Wakayoo was not
-a glutton, and after he had eaten his fourth fish he
-pawed all the others together in a pile, partly covered
-them by raking up sand and stones with his
-long claws, and finished his work of caching by breaking
-down a small balsam sapling so that the fish
-were entirely concealed. Then he lumbered slowly
-away in the direction of the rumbling waterfall.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Twenty seconds after the last of Wakayoo had
-disappeared in a turn of the creek, Baree was under
-the broken balsam. He dragged out a fish that was
-still alive. He ate the whole of it, and it was delicious.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree now found that Wakayoo had solved the
-food problem for him, and this day he did not return
-to the beaver pond, nor the next. The big bear
-was incessantly fishing up and down the creek,
-and day after day Baree continued his feasts. It
-was not difficult for him to find Wakayoo’s caches.
-All he had to do was to follow along the shore of the
-stream, sniffing carefully. Some of the caches were
-getting old, and their perfume was anything but
-pleasant to Baree. These he avoided—but he never
-missed a meal or two out of a fresh one.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For a week life continued to be exceedingly
-pleasant. And then came the break—the change
-that was destined to mean as much for Baree as
-that other day, long ago, had meant for Kazan, his
-father, when he killed the man-brute in the edge of
-the wilderness.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This change came on the day when, in trotting
-around a great rock near the waterfall, Baree found
-himself face to face with Pierrot the hunter and
-Nepeese, the star-eyed girl who had shot him in the
-edge of the clearing.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was Nepeese whom he saw first. If it had
-been Pierrot, he would have turned back quickly.
-But again the blood of his forbear was rousing
-strange tremblings within him. Was it like this
-that the first woman had looked to Kazan?</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree stood still. Nepeese was not more than
-twenty feet from him. She sat on a rock, full in
-the early morning sun, and was brushing out her
-wonderful hair. Her lips parted. Her eyes shone
-in an instant like stars. One hand remained poised,
-weighted with the jet tresses. She recognized him.
-She saw the white star on his breast and the white
-tip on his ear, and under her breath she whispered
-“<i>Uchi moosis!</i>”—“The dog-pup!” It was the
-wild-dog she had shot—and thought had died!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The evening before Pierrot and Nepeese had built
-a shelter of balsams behind the big rock, and on a
-small white plot of sand Pierrot was kneeling over
-a fire preparing breakfast while the Willow arranged
-her hair. He raised his head to speak to her, and
-saw Baree. In that instant the spell was broken.
-Baree saw the man-beast as he rose to his feet.
-Like a shot he was gone.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Scarcely swifter was he than Nepeese.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Dépêchez vous, mon père!</i>” she cried. “It is
-the dog-pup! Quick——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In the floating cloud of her hair she sped after
-Baree like the wind. Pierrot followed, and in going
-he caught up his rifle. It was difficult for him to
-catch up with the Willow. She was like a wild
-spirit, her little moccasined feet scarcely touching
-the sand as she ran up the long bar. It was wonderful
-to see the lithe swiftness of her, and that wonderful
-hair streaming out in the sun. Even now, in this
-moment’s excitement, it made Pierrot think of
-McTaggart, the Hudson’s Bay Company’s factor
-over at Lac Bain, and what he had said yesterday.
-Half the night Pierrot had lain awake, gritting his
-teeth at thought of it; and this morning, before
-Baree ran upon them, he had looked at Nepeese
-more closely than ever before in his life. She was
-beautiful. She was lovelier even than Wyola, her
-princess mother, who was dead. That hair—which
-made men stare as if they could not believe! Those
-eyes—like pools filled with wonderful starlight! Her
-slimness, that was like a flower! And McTaggart
-had said——</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Floating back to him there came an excited cry.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Hurry, Nootawe! He has turned into the blind
-cañon. He cannot escape us now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She was panting when he came up to her. The
-French blood in her glowed a vivid crimson in her
-cheeks and lips. Her white teeth gleamed like
-milk.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“In there!” And she pointed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They went in.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Ahead of them Baree was running for his life.
-He sensed instinctively the fact that these wonderful
-two-legged beings he had looked upon were all-powerful.
-And they were after him! He could hear
-them. Nepeese was following almost as swiftly as
-he could run. Suddenly he turned into a cleft between
-two great rocks. Twenty feet in, his way
-was barred, and he ran back. When he darted out,
-straight up the cañon, Nepeese was not a dozen
-yards behind him, and he saw Pierrot almost at her
-side. The Willow gave a cry.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Mana</i>—<i>mana</i>—there he is!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She caught her breath, and darted into a copse of
-young balsams where Baree had disappeared. Like
-a great entangling web her loose hair impeded her
-in the brush, and with an encouraging cry to Pierrot
-she stopped to gather it over her shoulder as he ran
-past her. She lost only a moment or two, and was
-after him. Fifty yards ahead of her Pierrot gave a
-warning shout. Baree had turned. Almost in the
-same breath he was tearing over his back-trail,
-directly toward the Willow. He did not see her
-in time to stop or swerve aside, and Nepeese flung
-herself down in his path. For an instant or two
-they were together. Baree felt the smother of her
-hair, and the clutch of her hands. Then he squirmed
-away and darted again toward the blind end of the
-cañon.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Nepeese sprang to her feet. She was panting—and
-laughing. Pierrot came back wildly, and the
-Willow pointed beyond him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I had him—and he didn’t bite!” she said, breathing
-swiftly. She still pointed to the end of the
-cañon, and she said again: “I had him—and he
-didn’t bite me, Nootawe!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>That was the wonder of it. She had been reckless—and
-Baree had not bitten her! It was then, with
-her eyes shining at Pierrot, and the smile fading
-slowly from her lips, that she spoke softly the
-word “<i>Baree</i>,” which in her tongue meant “the wild
-dog”—a little brother of the wolf.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Come,” cried Pierrot, “or we will lose him!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pierrot was confident. The cañon had narrowed.
-Baree could not get past them unseen. Three minutes
-later Baree came to the blind end of the cañon—a
-wall of rock that rose straight up like the curve of
-a dish. Feasting on fish and long hours of sleep had
-fattened him, and he was half winded as he sought
-vainly for an exit. He was at the far end of the
-dishlike curve of rock, without a bush or a clump of
-grass to hide him, when Pierrot and Nepeese saw
-him again. Nepeese made straight toward him.
-Pierrot, foreseeing what Baree would do, hurried to
-the left, at right-angles to the end of the cañon.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In and out among the rocks Baree sought swiftly
-for a way of escape. In a moment more he had
-come to the “box,” or cup of the cañon. This was a
-break in the wall, fifty or sixty feet wide, which
-opened into a natural prison about an acre in extent.
-It was a beautiful spot. On all sides but that leading
-into the coulée it was shut in by walls of rock.
-At the far end a waterfall broke down in a series of
-rippling cascades. The grass was thick underfoot
-and strewn with flowers. In this trap Pierrot had
-got more than one fine haunch of venison. From
-it there was no escape, except in the face of his rifle.
-He called to Nepeese as he saw Baree entering it,
-and together they climbed the slope.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree had almost reached the edge of the little
-prison-meadow when suddenly he stopped himself
-so quickly that he fell back on his haunches, and his
-heart jumped up into his throat.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Full in his path stood Wakayoo, the huge black
-bear!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For perhaps a half-minute Baree hesitated between
-the two perils. He heard the voices of Nepeese
-and Pierrot. He caught the rattle of stones
-under their feet. And he was filled with a great
-dread. Then he looked at Wakayoo. The big bear
-had not moved an inch. He, too, was listening. But
-to him there was a thing more disturbing than the
-sounds he heard. It was the scent which he caught
-in the air—the man-scent.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree, watching him, saw his head swing slowly
-even as the footsteps of Nepeese and Pierrot became
-more and more distinct. It was the first time Baree
-had ever stood face to face with the big bear. He had
-watched him fish; he had fattened on Wakayoo’s
-prowess; he had held him in splendid awe. Now
-there was something about the bear that took away
-his fear and gave him in its place a new and thrilling
-confidence. Wakayoo, big and powerful as he was,
-would not run from the two-legged creatures who
-pursued him! If Baree could only get past Wakayoo
-he was safe!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree darted to one side and ran for the open
-meadow. Wakayoo did not stir as Baree sped past
-him—no more than if he had been a bird or a rabbit.
-Then came another breath of air, heavy with the
-scent of man. This, at last, put life into him. He
-turned and began lumbering after Baree into the
-meadow-trap. Baree, looking back, saw him coming—and
-thought it was pursuit. Nepeese and
-Pierrot came over the slope, and at the same instant
-they saw both Wakayoo and Baree.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Where they entered into the grassy dip under the
-rock walls, Baree turned sharply to the right.
-Here was a great boulder, one end of it tilted up off
-the earth. It looked like a splendid hiding-place,
-and Baree crawled under it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But Wakayoo kept straight ahead into the meadow.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>From where he lay Baree could see what happened.
-Scarcely had he crawled under the rock
-when Nepeese and Pierrot appeared through the
-break in the dip, and stopped. The fact that they
-stopped thrilled Baree. They were afraid of Wakayoo!
-The big bear was two thirds of the way across
-the meadow. The sun fell on him, so that his coat
-shone like black satin. Pierrot stared at him for a
-moment. Pierrot did not kill for the love of killing.
-Necessity made him a conservationist. But he saw
-that in spite of the lateness of the season, Wakayoo’s
-coat was splendid—and he raised his rifle.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree saw this action. He saw, a moment later,
-something spit from the end of the gun, and then he
-heard that deafening crash that had come with his
-own hurt, when the Willow’s bullet had burned
-through his flesh. He turned his eyes swiftly to
-Wakayoo. The big bear had stumbled; he was on
-his knees; and then he struggled up and lumbered
-on.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The roar of the rifle came again, and a second time
-Wakayoo went down. Pierrot could not miss at that
-distance. Wakayoo made a splendid mark. It was
-slaughter; yet for Pierrot and Nepeese it was business—the
-business of life.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree was shivering. It was more from excitement
-than fear, for he had lost his own fear in the
-tragedy of these moments. A low whine rose in his
-throat as he looked at Wakayoo, who had risen
-again and faced his enemies—his jaws gaping, his
-head swinging slowly, his legs weakening under him
-as the blood poured through his torn lungs. Baree
-whined—because Wakayoo had fished for him,
-because he had come to look on him as a friend, and
-because he knew it was death that Wakayoo was
-facing now. There was a third shot—the last.
-Wakayoo sank down in his tracks. His big head
-dropped between his forepaws. A racking cough
-or two came to Baree. And then there was silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was slaughter—but business.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A minute later, standing over Wakayoo, Pierrot
-said to Nepeese:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Mon Dieu</i>, but it is a fine skin, <i>Sakahet!</i> It is
-worth twenty dollars over at Lac Bain!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He drew forth his knife and began whetting if
-on a stone which he carried in his pocket. In these
-minutes Baree might have crawled out from under
-his rock and escaped down the cañon; for a space
-he was forgotten. Then Nepeese thought of him,
-and in that same strange, wondering voice she
-spoke again the word “<i>Baree</i>.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pierrot, who was kneeling, looked up at her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Oui, Sakahet.</i> He was born of the wild. And
-now he is gone——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Willow shook her head.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Non</i>, he is not gone,” she said, and her dark eyes
-quested the sunlit meadow.</p>
-
-<div id='i094' class='figcenter id002'>
-<img src='images/illus-094.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic001'>
-<p>Baree stood still. Nepeese was not more than twenty feet from him. He sat on a rock, full in the early morning sun. She saw the white star on his breast and the white tip on his ear, and under her breath she whispered “<i>Uchi moosis!</i>”—“The dog-pup!” It was the wild-dog she had shot—and thought had died!</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER VIII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>As Nepeese gazed about the rock-walled end
-of the cañon, the prison into which they had
-driven Wakayoo and Baree, Pierrot looked
-up again from his skinning of the big black bear,
-and he muttered something that no one but himself
-could have heard. “<i>Non</i>, it is not possible,” he had
-said a moment before; but to Nepeese it was
-possible—the thought that was in her mind. It was a
-wonderful thought. It thrilled her to the depth of
-her wild, beautiful soul. It sent a glow into her
-eyes and a deeper flush of excitement into her
-cheeks and lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>As she quested the ragged edges of the little meadow
-for signs of the dog-pup, her thoughts flashed
-back swiftly. Two years ago they had buried her
-princess mother under the tall spruce near their
-cabin. That day Pierrot’s sun had set for all time,
-and her own life was filled with a vast loneliness.
-There had been three at the graveside that afternoon
-as the sun went down—Pierrot, herself, and a
-dog, a great, powerful husky with a white star on
-his breast and a white-tipped ear. He had been
-her dead mother’s pet from puppyhood—her bodyguard,
-with her always, even with his head resting
-on the side of her bed as she died. And that night,
-the night of the day they buried her, the dog had
-disappeared. He had gone as quietly and as
-completely as her spirit. No one ever saw him after
-that. It was strange, and to Pierrot it was a miracle.
-Deep in his heart he was filled with the wonderful
-conviction that the dog had gone with his beloved
-Wyola into heaven.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But Nepeese had spent three winters at the
-Missioner’s school at Nelson House. She had learned a
-great deal about white people and the real God,
-and she knew that Pierrot’s thought was impossible.
-She believed that her mother’s husky was either
-dead or had joined the wolves. Probably he had
-gone to the wolves. So—was it not possible that
-this youngster she and her father had pursued was
-of the flesh and blood of her mother’s pet? It was
-more than possible. The white star on his breast,
-the white-tipped ear—the fact that he had not bitten
-her when he might easily have buried his fangs in the
-soft flesh of her arms! She was convinced. While
-Pierrot skinned the bear, she began hunting for
-Baree.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree had not moved an inch from under his rock.
-He lay like a thing stunned, his eyes fixed steadily
-on the scene of the tragedy out in the meadow.
-He had seen something that he would never forget—even
-as he would never quite forget his mother and
-Kazan and the old windfall. He had witnessed the
-death of the creature he had thought all-powerful.
-Wakayoo, the big bear, had not even put up a fight.
-Pierrot and Nepeese had killed him <i>without touching
-him</i>; now Pierrot was cutting him with a knife which
-shot silvery flashes in the sun; and Wakayoo made
-no movement. It made Baree shiver, and he drew
-himself an inch farther back under the rock, where
-he was already wedged as if he had been shoved
-there by a strong hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He could see Nepeese. She came straight back
-to the break through which his flight had taken him,
-and stood at last not more than twenty feet from
-where he was hidden. Now that she stood where he
-could not escape, she began weaving her shining hair
-into two thick braids. Baree had taken his eyes
-from Pierrot, and he watched her curiously. He was
-not afraid now. His nerves tingled. In him a
-strange and growing force was struggling to solve
-a great mystery—the reason for his desire to creep
-out from under his rock and approach that wonderful
-creature with the shining eyes and the
-beautiful hair.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree wanted to approach. It was like an invisible
-string tugging at his very heart. It was
-Kazan, and not Gray Wolf, calling to him back
-through the centuries, a “call” that was as old as
-the Egyptian pyramids and perhaps ten thousand
-years older. But against that desire Gray Wolf
-was pulling from out the black ages of the forests.
-The wolf held him quiet and motionless. Nepeese
-was looking about her. She was smiling. For a
-moment her face was turned toward him, and he
-saw the white shine of her teeth, and her beautiful
-eyes seemed glowing straight at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And then, suddenly, she dropped on her knees and
-peered under the rock.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Their eyes met. For at least half a minute there
-was not a sound. Nepeese did not move, and her
-breath came so softly that Baree could not hear it.
-Then she said, almost in a whisper:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Baree! Baree! Upi Baree!</i>”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was the first time Baree had heard his name,
-and there was something so soft and assuring in
-the sound of it that in spite of himself the dog in
-him responded to it in a whimper that just reached
-the Willow’s ears. Slowly she stretched in an arm.
-It was bare and round and soft. He might have
-darted forward the length of his body and buried
-his fangs in it easily. But something held him back.
-He knew that it was not an enemy; he knew that the
-dark eyes shining at him so wonderfully were not
-filled with the desire to harm—and the voice that
-came to him softly was like a strange and thrilling
-music.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Baree! Baree! Upi Baree!</i>”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Over and over again the Willow called to him
-like that, while on her face she tried to draw herself
-a few inches farther under the rock. She could not
-reach him. There was still a foot between her
-hand and Baree, and she could not wedge herself
-in an inch more. And then she saw where on the
-other side of the rock there was a hollow, shut in
-by a stone. If she had removed the stone, and
-come in that way——</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She drew herself out and stood once more in the
-sunshine. Her heart thrilled. Pierrot was busy over
-his bear—and she would not call him. She made an
-effort to move the stone which closed in the hollow
-under the big boulder, but it was wedged in tightly.
-Then she began digging with a stick. If Pierrot
-had been there, his sharp eyes would have discovered
-the significance of that stone, which was not larger
-than a water pail. Possibly for centuries it had lain
-there, its support keeping the huge rock from toppling
-down, just as an ounce-weight may swing the balance
-of a wheel that weighs a ton.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Five minutes—and Nepeese could move the stone.
-She tugged at it. Inch by inch she dragged it out
-until at last it lay at her feet and the opening was
-ready for her body. She looked again toward
-Pierrot. He was still busy, and she laughed softly
-as she untied a big red-and-white Bay handkerchief
-from about her shoulders. With this she would
-secure Baree. She dropped on her hands and knees
-and then lowered herself flat on the ground and began
-crawling into the hollow under the boulder.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree had moved. With the back of his head
-flattened against the rock, he had heard something
-which Nepeese had not heard; he had felt a slow and
-growing pressure, and from this pressure he had
-dragged himself slowly—and the pressure still followed.
-The mass of rock was settling! Nepeese
-did not see or hear or understand. She was calling
-to him more and more pleadingly:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Baree—Baree—Baree——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Her head and shoulders and both arms were
-under the rock now. The glow of her eyes was
-very close to Baree. He whined. The thrill of a
-great and impending danger stirred in his blood.
-And then——</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In that moment Nepeese felt the pressure of the
-rock on her shoulder, and into the eyes that had been
-glowing softly at Baree there shot a sudden wild
-look of horror. And then there came from her lips
-a cry that was not like any other sound Baree had
-ever heard in the wilderness—wild, piercing, filled
-with agonized fear. Pierrot did not hear that first
-cry. But he heard the second and the third—and
-then scream after scream as the Willow’s tender
-body was slowly crushed under the settling mass.
-He ran toward it with the speed of the wind. The
-cries were weaker—dying away. He saw Baree
-as he came out from under the rock and ran into the
-cañon, and in the same instant he saw a part of the
-Willow’s dress and her moccasined feet. The rest
-of her was hidden under the death-trap. Like a
-madman Pierrot began digging. When a few moments
-later he drew Nepeese out from under the
-boulder she was white and deathly still. Her eyes
-were closed. His hand could not feel that she was
-living, and a great moan of anguish rose out of his
-soul. But he knew how to fight for a life. He tore
-open her dress and found that she was not crushed
-as he had feared. Then he ran for water. When
-he returned, the Willow’s eyes were open and she
-was gasping for breath.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The blessed saints be praised!” sobbed Pierrot,
-falling on his knees at her side. “<i>Nepeese, ma
-Nepeese!</i>”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She smiled at him, with her two hands on her bare
-breast, and Pierrot hugged her up to him, forgetting
-the water he had run so hard to get.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Still later, when he got down on his knees and
-peered under the rock, his face turned white and he
-said:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Mon Dieu</i>, if it had not been for that little
-hollow in the earth, Nepeese——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He shuddered, and said no more. But Nepeese,
-happy in her salvation, made a movement with her
-hand and said, smiling at him:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I would have been like—<i>that</i>. Ah, <i>mon père</i>,
-I hope I shall never have a lover like that rock!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pierrot’s face darkened as he bent over her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Non!</i>” he said fiercely. “Never!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He was thinking again of McTaggart, the factor
-at Lac Bain, and his hands clenched while his lips
-softly touched the Willow’s hair.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER IX</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>Impelled by the wild alarm of the Willow’s
-terrible cries and the sight of Pierrot dashing
-madly toward him from the dead body of
-Wakayoo, Baree did not stop running until it seemed
-as though his lungs could not draw another breath.
-When he stopped, he was well out of the cañon and
-headed for the beaver-pond. For almost a week
-Baree had not been near the pond. He had not
-forgotten Beaver-tooth and Umisk and the other
-little beavers, but Wakayoo and his daily catch of
-fresh fish had been too big a temptation for him.
-Now Wakayoo was gone. He sensed the fact that
-the big black bear would never fish again in the
-quiet pools and shimmering eddies, and that where
-for many days there had been peace and plenty,
-there was now great danger; and just as in another
-country he would have fled for safety to the old
-windfall, he now fled desperately for the beaver-pond.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Exactly wherein lay Baree’s fears it would be
-difficult to say—but surely it was not because of
-Nepeese. The Willow had chased him hard. She
-had flung herself upon him. He had felt the clutch
-of her hands and the smother of her soft hair, and
-yet of her he was not afraid! If he stopped now and
-then in his flight and looked back, it was to see if
-Nepeese was following. He would not have run
-hard from her—alone. Her eyes and voice and
-hands had set something stirring in him; he was
-filled with a greater yearning and a greater loneliness
-now—and that night he dreamed troubled
-dreams.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He found himself a bed under a spruce root not
-far from the beaver-pond, and all through the night
-his sleep was filled with that restless dreaming—dreams
-of his mother, of Kazan, the old windfall,
-of Umisk—and of Nepeese. Once, when he awoke,
-he thought the spruce root was Gray Wolf; and when
-he found that she was not there, Pierrot and the
-Willow could have told what his crying meant if
-they had heard it. Again and again he had visions
-of the thrilling happenings of that day. He saw
-the flight of Wakayoo over the little meadow—he
-saw him die again. He saw the glow of the
-Willow’s eyes close to his own, heard her voice—so
-sweet and low that it was like strange music to
-him—and again he heard her terrible screams.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree was glad when the dawn came. He did not
-seek for food, but went down to the pond. There
-was little hope and anticipation in his manner now.
-He remembered that, as plainly as animal ways
-could talk, Umisk and his playmates had told him
-they wanted nothing to do with him. And yet the
-fact that they were there took away some of his
-loneliness. It was more than loneliness. The wolf
-in him was submerged. The dog was master.
-And in these passing moments, when the blood of the
-wild was almost dormant in him, he was depressed
-by the instinctive and growing feeling that he was
-not of that wild, but a fugitive in it, menaced on all
-sides by strange dangers.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Deep in the northern forests the beaver does not
-work and play in darkness only, but uses day even
-more than night, and many of Beaver-tooth’s
-people were awake when Baree began disconsolately
-to investigate the shores of the pond. The little
-beavers were still with their mothers in the big houses
-that looked like great domes of sticks and mud out
-in the middle of the lake. There were three of these
-houses, one of them at least twenty feet in diameter.
-Baree had some difficulty in following his side of the
-pond. When he got back among the willows and
-alders and birch, dozens of little canals crossed and
-criss-crossed in his path. Some of these canals
-were a foot wide, and others three or four feet, and
-all were filled with water. No country in the world
-ever had a better system of traffic than this domain
-of the beavers, down which they brought their
-working materials and food into the main reservoir—the
-pond.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In one of the larger canals Baree surprised a big
-beaver towing a four-foot cutting of birch as thick
-through as a man’s leg—half a dozen breakfasts and
-dinners and suppers in that one cargo. The four or
-five inner barks of the birch are what might be called
-the bread and butter and potatoes of the beaver
-menu, while the more highly prized barks of the
-willow and young alder take the place of meat and
-pie.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree smelled curiously of the birch cutting after
-the old beaver had abandoned it in flight, and then
-went on. He did not try to hide himself now, and
-at least half a dozen beavers had a good look at
-him before he came to the point where the pond
-narrowed down to the width of the stream, almost
-half a mile from the dam. Then he wandered back.
-All that morning he hovered about the pond, showing
-himself openly.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In their big mud-and-stick strongholds the beavers
-held a council of war. They were distinctly puzzled.
-There were four enemies which they dreaded above
-all others: the otter, who destroyed their dams in the
-winter-time and brought death to them from cold and
-by lowering the water so they could not get to their
-food-supplies; the lynx, who preyed on them all,
-young and old alike; and the fox and wolf, who would
-lie in ambush for hours in order to pounce on the
-very young, like Umisk and his playmates. If
-Baree had been any one of these four, wily Beaver-tooth
-and his people would have known what to
-do. But Baree was surely not an otter, and if he
-was a fox or a wolf or a lynx, his actions were very
-strange, to say the least. Half a dozen times he
-had had the opportunity to pounce on his prey, if
-he had been seeking prey. But at no time had he
-shown the desire to harm them.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It may be that the beavers discussed the matter
-fully among themselves. It is possible that Umisk
-and his playmates told their parents of their adventure,
-and of how Baree made no move to harm them
-when he could quite easily have caught them. It
-is also more than likely that the older beavers who
-had fled from Baree that morning gave an account
-of their adventures, again emphasizing the fact that
-the stranger, while frightening them, had shown no
-disposition to attack them. All this is quite possible,
-for if beavers can make a large part of a continent’s
-history, and can perform engineering feats
-that nothing less than dynamite can destroy, it is
-only reasonable to suppose that they have some way
-of making one another understand.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>However this may be, courageous old Beaver-tooth
-took it upon himself to end the suspense.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was early in the afternoon that for the third or
-fourth time Baree walked out on the dam. This
-dam was fully two hundred feet in length, but at no
-point did the water run over it, the overflow finding
-its way through narrow sluices. A week or two ago
-Baree could have crossed to the opposite side of the
-pond on this dam, but now—at the far end—Beaver-tooth
-and his engineers were adding a new section
-of dam, and in order to accomplish their work more
-easily, they had flooded fully fifty yards of the low
-ground on which they were working. The main dam
-held a fascination for Baree. It was strong with the
-smell of beaver. The top of it was high and dry,
-and there were dozens of smoothly worn little hollows
-in which the beavers had taken their sun-baths.
-In one of these hollows Baree stretched himself out,
-with his eyes on the pond. Not a ripple stirred its
-velvety smoothness. Not a sound broke the drowsy
-stillness of the afternoon. The beavers might have
-been dead or asleep, for all the stir they made. And
-yet they knew that Baree was on the dam. Where
-he lay, the sun fell in a warm flood, and it was so
-comfortable that after a time he had difficulty in
-keeping his eyes open to watch the pond. Then he
-fell asleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Just how Beaver-tooth sensed this fact is a mystery.
-Five minutes later he came up quietly, without
-a splash or a sound, within fifty yards of Baree.
-For a few moments he scarcely moved in the water.
-Then he swam very slowly parallel with the dam
-across the pond. At the other side he drew himself
-ashore, and for another minute sat as motionless
-as a stone, with his eyes on that part of the dam
-where Baree was lying. Not another beaver was
-moving, and it was very soon apparent that Beaver-tooth
-had but one object in mind—getting a closer
-observation of Baree. When he entered the water
-again, he swam along close to the dam. Ten feet
-beyond Baree he began to climb out. He did this
-with great slowness and caution. At last he reached
-the top of the dam.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A few yards away Baree was almost hidden in his
-hollow, only the top of his shiny black body appearing
-to Beaver-tooth’s scrutiny. To get a better
-look, the old beaver spread his flat tail out beyond
-him and rose to a sitting posture on his hind-quarters,
-his two front paws held squirrel-like over his breast.
-In this pose he was fully three feet tall. He probably
-weighed forty pounds, and in some ways he
-resembled one of those fat, good-natured, silly-looking
-dogs that go largely to stomach. But his brain was
-working with amazing celerity. Suddenly he gave
-the hard mud of the dam a single slap with his
-tail—and Baree sat up. Instantly he saw Beaver-tooth,
-and stared. Beaver-tooth stared. For a
-full half-minute neither moved the thousandth part
-of an inch. Then Baree stood up and wagged his
-tail.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>That was enough. Dropping to his forefeet.
-Beaver-tooth waddled leisurely to the edge of the
-dam and dived over. He was neither cautious nor
-in very great haste now. He made a great commotion
-in the water and swam boldly back and
-forth under Baree. When he had done this several
-times, he cut straight up the pond to the largest of
-the three houses and disappeared. Five minutes
-after Beaver-tooth’s exploit word was passing
-quickly among the colony. The stranger—Baree—was
-not a lynx. He was not a fox. He was not a
-wolf. Moreover, he was very young—and harmless.
-Work could be resumed. Play could be resumed.
-There was no danger. Such was Beaver-tooth’s
-verdict.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>If some one had shouted these facts in beaver-language
-through a megaphone, the response could
-not have been quicker. All at once it seemed to
-Baree, who was still standing on the edge of the dam,
-that the pond was alive with beavers. He had never
-seen so many at one time before. They were popping
-up everywhere, and some of them swam up within
-a dozen feet of him and looked him over in a leisurely
-and curious way. For perhaps five minutes
-the beavers seemed to have no particular object in
-view. Then Beaver-tooth himself struck straight
-for the shore and climbed out. Others followed
-him. Half a dozen workers disappeared in the
-canals. As many more waddled out among the
-alders and willows. Eagerly Baree watched for
-Umisk and his chums. At last he saw them, swimming
-forth from one of the smaller houses. They
-climbed out on their playground—the smooth bar
-above the shore of mud. Baree wagged his tail so
-hard that his whole body shook, and hurried along
-the dam.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When he came out on the level strip of shore,
-Umisk was there alone, nibbling his supper from a
-long, freshly cut willow. The other little beavers had
-gone into a thick clump of young alders.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This time Umisk did not run. He looked up from
-his stick. Baree squatted himself, wiggling in a
-most friendly and ingratiating manner. For a few
-seconds Umisk regarded him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then, very coolly, he resumed his supper.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER X</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>Just as in the life of every man there is one
-big, controlling influence, either for good or
-bad, so in the life of Baree the beaver-pond
-was largely an arbiter of destiny. Where he might
-have gone if he had not discovered it, and what
-might have happened to him, are matters of conjecture.
-But it held him. It began to take the
-place of the old windfall, and in the beavers themselves
-he found a companionship which made up, in
-a way, for his loss of the protection and friendship of
-Kazan and Gray Wolf.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This companionship, if it could be called that,
-went just so far and no farther. With each day
-that passed the older beavers became more accustomed
-to seeing Baree. At the end of two weeks,
-if Baree had gone away, they would have missed
-him—but not in the same way that Baree would have
-missed the beavers. It was a matter of good-natured
-toleration on their part. With Baree it was
-different. He was still <i>uskahis</i>, as Nepeese would
-have said; he still wanted mothering; he was still
-moved by the puppyish yearnings which he had
-not yet had the time to outgrow; and when night
-came—to speak that yearning quite plainly—he had
-the desire to go into the big beaver house with Umisk
-and his chums and sleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>During this fortnight that followed Beaver-tooth’s
-exploit on the dam Baree ate his meals a mile up the
-creek, where there were plenty of crawfish. But
-the pond was home. Night always found him there,
-and a large part of his day. He slept at the end of
-the dam, or on top of it on particularly clear nights,
-and the beavers accepted him as a permanent guest.
-They worked in his presence as if he did not exist.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree was fascinated by this work, and he never
-grew tired of watching it. It puzzled and bewildered
-him. Day after day he saw them float timber and
-brush through the water for the new dam. He saw
-this dam growing steadily under their efforts. One
-day he lay within a dozen feet of an old beaver
-who was cutting down a tree six inches through.
-When the tree fell, and the old beaver scurried
-away, Baree scurried, too. Then he came back and
-smelled of the cutting, wondering what it was all
-about, and why Umisk’s uncle or grandfather or
-aunt had gone to all that trouble.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He still could not induce Umisk and the other
-young beavers to join him in play, and after the
-first week or so he gave up his efforts. In fact, their
-play puzzled him almost as much as the dam-building
-operations of the older beavers. Umisk, for
-instance, was fond of playing in the mud at the
-edge of the pond. He was like a very small boy.
-Where his elders floated timbers from three inches
-to a foot in diameter to the big dam, Umisk brought
-small sticks and twigs no larger around than a lead-pencil
-to his playground, and built a make-believe
-dam of his own.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Umisk would work an hour at a time on this
-play-dam as industriously as his father and mother
-were working on the big dam, and Baree would lie
-flat on his belly a few feet away, watching him and
-wondering mightily. And through this half-dry
-mud Umisk would also dig his miniature canals,
-just as a small boy might have dug his Mississippi
-River and pirate-infested oceans in the outflow of
-some back-lot spring. With his sharp little teeth
-he cut down his big timber—willow-sprouts never
-more than an inch in diameter; and when one of
-these four or five-foot sprouts toppled down, he
-undoubtedly felt as great a satisfaction as Beaver-tooth
-felt when he sent a seventy-foot birch crashing
-into the edge of the pond. Baree could not
-understand the fun of all this. He could see some
-reason for nibbling at sticks—he liked to sharpen
-his teeth on sticks himself; but it puzzled him to
-explain why Umisk so painstakingly stripped the
-bark from the sticks and swallowed it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Another method of play still further discouraged
-Baree’s advances. A short distance from the spot
-where he had first seen Umisk there was a shelving
-bank that rose ten or twelve feet from the water,
-and this bank was used by the young beavers as a
-slide. It was worn smooth and hard. Umisk would
-climb up the bank at a point where it was not so
-steep. At the top of the slide he would put his tail
-out flat behind him and give himself a shove, shooting
-down the toboggan and landing in the water with a
-big splash. At times there were from six to ten
-young beavers engaged in this sport, and now
-and then one of the older beavers would waddle to
-the top of the slide and take a turn with the youngsters.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>One afternoon, when the toboggan was particularly
-wet and slippery from recent use, Baree
-went up the beaver-path to the top of the bank, and
-began investigating. Nowhere had he found the
-beaver-smell so strong as on the slide. He began
-sniffing and incautiously went too far. In an instant
-his feet shot out from under him, and with a single
-wild yelp he went shooting down the toboggan.
-For the second time in his life he found himself
-struggling under water, and when a minute or two
-later he dragged himself up through the soft mud to
-the firmer footing of the shore, he had at last a very
-well-defined opinion of beaver play.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It may be that Umisk saw him. It may be that
-very soon the story of his adventure was known by
-all the inhabitants of Beaver Town. For when
-Baree came upon Umisk eating his supper of alder-bark
-that evening, Umisk stood his ground to the
-last inch, and for the first time they smelled noses.
-At least Baree sniffed audibly, and plucky little
-Umisk sat like a rolled-up sphinx. That was the
-final cementing of their friendship—on Baree’s part.
-He capered about extravagantly for a few moments,
-telling Umisk how much he liked him, and that
-they’d be great chums. Umisk didn’t talk. He
-didn’t make a move until he resumed his supper.
-But he was a companionable looking little fellow,
-for all that, and Baree was happier than he had been
-since the day he left the old windfall.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This friendship, even though it outwardly appeared
-to be quite one-sided, was decidedly fortunate
-for Umisk. When Baree was at the pond, he always
-kept as near to Umisk as possible, when he could
-find him. One day he was lying in a patch of grass,
-half asleep, while Umisk busied himself in a clump
-of alder-shoots a few yards away. It was the warning
-crack of a beaver tail that fully roused Baree;
-and then another and another, like pistol-shots.
-He jumped up. Everywhere beavers were scurrying
-for the pond.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Just then Umisk came out of the alders and hurried
-as fast as his short, fat legs would carry him
-toward the water. He had almost reached the mud
-when a lightning flash of red passed before Baree’s
-eyes in the afternoon sun, and in another instant
-Napakasew—the he-fox—had fastened his sharp
-fangs in Umisk’s throat. Baree heard his little
-friend’s agonized cry; he heard the frenzied <i>flap-flap-flap</i>
-of many tails—and his blood pounded suddenly
-with the thrill of excitement and rage.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>As swiftly as the red fox himself, Baree darted to
-the rescue. He was as big and as heavy as the fox,
-and when he struck Napakasew, it was with a ferocious
-snarl that Pierrot might have heard on the
-farther side of the pond, and his teeth sank like
-knives into the shoulder of Umisk’s assailant. The
-fox was of a breed of forest highwaymen which
-kills from behind. He was not a fighter when it
-came fang-to-fang, unless cornered—and so fierce and
-sudden was Baree’s assault that Napakasew took
-to flight almost as quickly as he had begun his attack
-on Umisk.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree did not follow him, but went to Umisk,
-who lay half in the mud, whimpering and snuffling
-in a curious sort of way. Gently Baree nosed him,
-and after a moment or two Umisk got up on his
-webbed feet, while fully twenty or thirty beavers
-were making a tremendous fuss in the water near the
-shore.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>After this the beaver-pond seemed more than
-ever like home to Baree.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XI</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>While lovely Nepeese was shuddering
-over her thrilling experience under the
-rock—while Pierrot still offered grateful
-thanks in his prayers for her deliverance and Baree
-was becoming more and more a fixture at the beaver-pond—Bush
-McTaggart was perfecting a little
-scheme of his own up at Post Lac Bain, about forty
-miles north and west. McTaggart had been factor
-at Lac Bain for seven years. In the Company’s
-books down in Winnipeg he was counted a remarkably
-successful man. The expense of his post was
-below the average, and his semi-annual report of
-furs always ranked among the first. After his name,
-kept on file in the main office, was one notation
-which said: “Gets more out of a dollar than any
-other man north of God’s Lake.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Indians knew why this was so. They called
-him <i>Napao Wetikoo</i>—the man-devil. This was
-under their breath—a name whispered sinisterly in
-the glow of tepee fires, or spoken softly where not
-even the winds might carry it to the ears of Bush
-McTaggart. They feared him; they hated him.
-They died of starvation and sickness, and the tighter
-Bush McTaggart clenched the fingers of his iron
-rule, the more meekly, it seemed to him, did they
-respond to his mastery. His was a small soul,
-hidden in the hulk of a brute, which rejoiced in power.
-And here—with the raw wilderness on four sides of
-him—his power knew no end. The Big Company
-was behind him. It had made him king of a
-domain in which there was little law except his own.
-And in return he gave back to the Company bales
-and bundles of furs beyond their expectation. It
-was not for them to have suspicions. They were a
-thousand or more miles away—and dollars counted.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Gregson might have told. Gregson was the Investigating
-Agent of that district, who visited
-McTaggart once each year. He might have reported
-that the Indians called McTaggart <i>Napao Wetikoo</i>
-because he gave them only half price for their
-furs; he might have told the Company quite plainly
-that he kept the people of the trap-lines at the edge
-of starvation through every month of the winter,
-that he had them on their knees with his hands at
-their throats—putting the truth in a mild and pretty
-way—and that he always had a woman or a girl,
-Indian or halfbreed, living with him at the Post.
-But Gregson enjoyed his visits too much at Lac
-Bain. Always he could count on two weeks of
-coarse pleasures; and in addition to that, his own
-womenfolk at home wore a rich treasure of fur that
-came to them from McTaggart.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>One evening, a week after the adventure of Nepeese
-and Baree under the rock, McTaggart sat under
-the glow of an oil lamp in his “store.” He had
-sent his little pippin-faced English clerk to bed, and
-he was alone. For six weeks there had been in him
-a great unrest. It was just six weeks ago that Pierrot
-had brought Nepeese on her first visit to Lac Bain
-since McTaggart had been factor there. She had
-taken his breath away. Since then he had been
-able to think of nothing but her. Twice in that six
-weeks he had gone down to Pierrot’s cabin. To-morrow
-he was going again. Marie, the slim Cree
-girl over in his cabin, he had forgotten—just as a
-dozen others before Marie had slipped out of his
-memory. It was Nepeese now. He had never seen
-anything quite so beautiful as Pierrot’s girl.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Audibly he cursed Pierrot as he looked at a sheet
-of paper under his hand, on which for an hour or
-more he had been making notes out of worn and
-dusty Company ledgers. It was Pierrot who stood
-in his way. Pierrot’s father, according to those
-notes, had been a full-blooded Frenchman. Therefore
-Pierrot was half French, and Nepeese was
-quarter French—though she was so beautiful he
-could have sworn there was not more than a drop or
-two of Indian blood in her veins. If they had been
-all Indian—Chippewayan, Cree, Ojibway, Dog Rib—anything—there
-would have been no trouble at
-all in the matter. He would have bent them to his
-power, and Nepeese would have come to his cabin, as
-Marie came six months ago. But there was the
-accursed French of it! Pierrot and Nepeese were
-different. And yet——</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He smiled grimly, and his hands clenched tighter.
-After all, was not his power sufficient? Would even
-Pierrot dare stand against that? If Pierrot objected,
-he would drive him from the country—from
-the trapping regions that had come down to
-him as heritage from father and grandfather, and
-even before their day. He would make of Pierrot a
-wanderer and an outcast, as he had made wanderers
-and outcasts of a score of others who had lost his
-favour. No other Post would sell to or buy from
-Pierrot if <i>Le Bête</i>—the black cross—was put after his
-name. That was his power—a law of the Factors
-that had come down through the centuries. It was a
-tremendous power for evil. It had brought him
-Marie, the slim, dark-eyed Cree girl, who hated him—and
-in spite of her hatred “kept house for him.”
-That was the polite way of explaining her presence
-if explanations were ever necessary.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>McTaggart looked again at the notes he had made
-on the sheet of paper. Pierrot’s trapping-country,
-his own property according to the common law of
-the wilderness, was very valuable. During the last
-seven years he had received an average of a thousand
-dollars a year for his furs, for McTaggart had
-been unable to cheat Pierrot quite as completely as
-he had cheated the Indians. A thousand dollars a
-year! Pierrot would think twice before he gave
-that up. McTaggart chuckled as he crumpled the
-paper in his hand and prepared to put out the light.
-Under his close-cropped shaggy beard his reddish
-face blazed with the fire that was in his blood. It
-was an unpleasant face—like iron, merciless, filled
-with the look that gave him his name of <i>Napao Wetikoo</i>.
-His eyes gleamed, and he drew a quick breath
-as he put out the light.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He chuckled again as he made his way through the
-darkness to the door. Nepeese as good as belonged
-to him. He would have her if it cost—<i>Pierrot’s
-life</i>. And—<i>why not</i>? It was all so easy. A shot
-on a lonely trap-line, a single knife-thrust—and
-who would know? Who would guess where Pierrot
-had gone? And it would all be Pierrot’s fault.
-For the last time he had seen Pierrot, he had made an
-honest proposition: he would marry Nepeese. Yes,
-even that. He had told Pierrot so. He had told
-Pierrot that when the latter was his father-in-law,
-he would pay him double price for furs.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And Pierrot had stared—had stared with that
-strange, stunned look in his face, like a man dazed
-by a blow from a club. And so if he did not get
-Nepeese without trouble it would all be Pierrot’s
-fault. To-morrow McTaggart would start again
-for the halfbreed’s country. And the next day
-Pierrot would have an answer for him. Bush McTaggart
-chuckled again when he went to bed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Until the next to the last day Pierrot said nothing
-to Nepeese about what had passed between him and
-the factor at Lac Bain. Then he told her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He is a beast—a man-devil,” he said, when he
-had finished. “I would rather see you out there—with
-her—dead.” And he pointed to the tall
-spruce under which the princess mother lay.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Nepeese had not uttered a sound. But her eyes
-had grown bigger and darker, and there was a flush
-in her cheeks which Pierrot had never seen there
-before. She stood up when he had done, and she
-seemed taller to him. Never had she looked quite
-so much like a woman, and Pierrot’s eyes were
-deep-shadowed with fear and uneasiness as he watched
-her while she gazed off into the northwest—toward
-Lac Bain.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She was wonderful, this slip of a girl-woman. Her
-beauty troubled him. He had seen the look in
-Bush McTaggart’s eyes. He had heard the thrill in
-McTaggart’s voice. He had caught the desire of a
-beast in McTaggart’s face. It had frightened him
-at first. But now—he was not frightened. He was
-uneasy, but his hands were clenched. In his heart
-there was a smoldering fire. At last Nepeese turned
-and came and sat down beside him again, at his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He is coming to-morrow, <i>ma chérie</i>,” he said.
-“What shall I tell him?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Willow’s lips were red. Her eyes shone.
-But she did not look up at her father.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nothing, Nootawe—except that you are to say
-to him that I am the one to whom he must come—for
-what he seeks.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pierrot bent over and caught her smiling. The
-sun went down. His heart sank with it, like cold
-lead.</p>
-
-<hr class='c007' />
-
-<p class='c001'>From Lac Bain to Pierrot’s cabin the trail cut
-within half a mile of the beaver-pond, a dozen miles
-from where Pierrot lived; and it was here, on a twist
-of the creek in which Wakayoo had caught fish for
-Baree, that Bush McTaggart made his camp for the
-night. Only twenty miles of the journey could be
-made by canoe, and as McTaggart was travelling
-the last stretch afoot, his camp was a simple affair—a
-few cut balsams, a light blanket, a small fire. Before
-he prepared his supper, the Factor drew a number
-of copper-wire snares from his small pack and
-spent half an hour in setting them in rabbit runways.
-This method of securing meat was far less
-arduous than carrying a gun in hot weather, and it
-was certain. Half a dozen snares were good for at
-least three rabbits, and one of these three was sure
-to be young and tender enough for the frying-pan.
-After he had placed his snares McTaggart set a
-skillet of bacon over the coals and boiled his coffee.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Of all the odours of a camp, the smell of bacon
-reaches farthest in the forest. It needs no wind.
-It drifts on its own wings. On a still night a fox will
-sniff it a mile away—twice that far if the air is moving
-in the right direction. It was this smell of bacon
-that came to Baree where he lay in his hollow on top
-of the beaver-dam.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Since his experience in the cañon and the death of
-Wakayoo, he had not fared particularly well. Caution
-had held him near the pond, and he had lived
-almost entirely on crawfish. This new perfume
-that came with the night wind roused his hunger.
-But it was elusive: now he could smell it—the next
-instant it was gone. He left the dam and began
-questing for the source of it in the forest, until after
-a time he lost it altogether. McTaggart had finished
-frying his bacon and was eating it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was a splendid night that followed. Perhaps
-Baree would have slept through it in his nest on the
-top of the dam if the bacon smell had not stirred the
-new hunger in him. Since his adventure in the
-cañon, the deeper forest had held a dread for him,
-especially at night. But this night was like a pale,
-golden day: it was moonless; but the stars shone like
-a billion distant lamps, flooding the world in a soft
-and billowy sea of light. A gentle whisper of wind
-made pleasant sounds in the treetops. Beyond that
-it was very quiet, for it was <i>Puskowepesim</i>—the
-Moulting Moon—and the wolves were not hunting,
-the owls had lost their voice, the foxes slunk with he
-silence of shadows, and even the beavers had begun
-to cease their labours. The horns of the moose,
-the deer, and the caribou were in tender velvet, and
-they moved but little and fought not at all. It was
-late July, Moulting Moon of the Cree, Moon of
-Silence for the Chippewayan.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In this silence Baree began to hunt. He stirred
-up a family of half-grown partridges, but they
-escaped him. He pursued a rabbit that was swifter
-than he. For an hour he had no luck. Then he
-heard a sound that made every drop of blood in him
-thrill. He was close to McTaggart’s camp, and
-what he had heard was a rabbit in one of McTaggart’s
-snares. He came out into a little starlit open
-and there he saw the rabbit going through a most
-marvellous pantomime. It amazed him for a moment,
-and he stopped in his tracks.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Wapoos, the rabbit, had run his furry head into
-the snare, and his first frightened jump had “shot”
-the sapling to which the copper wire was attached so
-that he was now hung half in midair, with only his
-hind feet touching the ground. And there he was
-dancing madly while the noose about his neck slowly
-choked him to death.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree gave a sort of gasp. He could understand
-nothing of the part that the wire and the sapling
-were playing in this curious game. All he could see
-was that Wapoos was hopping and dancing about on
-his hind legs in a most puzzling and unrabbit-like
-fashion. It may be that he thought it some sort of
-play. In this instance, however, he did not regard
-Wapoos as he had looked on Umisk the beaver.
-He knew that Wapoos made mighty fine eating, and
-after another moment or two of hesitation he darted
-upon his prey.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Wapoos, half gone already, made almost no struggle,
-and in the glow of the stars Baree finished him,
-and for half an hour afterward he feasted.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>McTaggart had heard no sound, for the snare into
-which Wapoos had run his head was the one set
-farthest from his camp. Beside the smouldering
-coals of his fire he sat with his back to a tree, smoking
-his black pipe and dreaming covetously of Nepeese,
-when Baree continued his night-wandering. Baree
-no longer had the desire to hunt. He was too full.
-But he nosed in and out of the starlit spaces, enjoying
-immensely the stillness and the golden glow of
-the night. He was following a rabbit-run when he
-came to a place where two fallen logs left a trail
-no wider than his body. He squeezed through;
-something tightened about his neck; there was a
-sudden snap—a swish as the sapling was released
-from its “trigger”—and Baree was jerked off his
-feet so suddenly that he had no time to conjecture
-as to what was happening.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The yelp in his throat died in a gurgle, and the
-next moment he was going through the pantomimic
-actions of Wapoos, who was having his vengeance
-inside him. For the life of him Baree could not
-keep from dancing about, while the wire grew tighter
-and tighter about his neck. When he snapped at
-the wire and flung the weight of his body to the
-ground, the sapling would bend obligingly, and then—in
-its rebound—would yank him for an instant
-completely off the earth. Furiously he struggled.
-It was a miracle that the fine wire held him. In a
-few moments more it must have broken—but McTaggart
-had heard him! The Factor caught up
-his blanket and a heavy stick as he hurried toward
-the snare. It was not a rabbit making those sounds—he
-knew that. Perhaps a fisher-cat—a lynx, a
-fox, a young wolf——</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was the wolf he thought of first when he saw
-Baree at the end of the wire. He dropped the
-blanket and raised the club. If there had been
-clouds overhead, or the stars had been less brilliant,
-Baree would have died as surely as Wapoos had
-died. With the club raised over his head McTaggart
-saw in time the white star, the white-tipped
-ear, and the jet black of Baree’s coat.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With a swift movement he exchanged the club for
-the blanket.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In that hour, could McTaggart have looked ahead
-to the days that were to come, he would have used
-the club. Could he have foreseen the great tragedy
-in which Baree was to play a vital part, wrecking
-his hopes and destroying his world, he would have
-beaten him to a pulp there under the light of the
-stars. And Baree, could he have foreseen what was
-to happen between this brute with a white skin and
-the most beautiful thing in the forests, would have
-fought even more bitterly before he surrendered
-himself to the smothering embrace of the Factor’s
-blanket. On this night Fate had played a strange
-hand for them both, and only that Fate, and perhaps
-the stars above, held a knowledge of what its
-outcome was to be.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>Half an hour later Rush McTaggart’s fire
-was burning brightly again. In the glow
-of it Baree lay trussed up like an Indian
-papoose, tied into a balloon-shaped ball with <i>babiche</i>
-thong, his head alone showing where his captor had
-cut a hole for it in the blanket. He was hopelessly
-caught—so closely imprisoned in the blanket that he
-could scarcely move a muscle of his body. A few
-feet away from him McTaggart was bathing a bleeding
-hand in a basin of water. There was also a
-red streak down the side of McTaggart’s bullish
-neck.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You little devil!” he snarled at Baree. “You
-little devil!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He reached over suddenly and gave Baree’s head
-a vicious blow with his heavy hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I ought to beat your brains out, and—I believe
-I will!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree watched him as he picked up a stick close
-at his side—a bit of firewood. Pierrot had chased
-him, but this was the first time he had been near
-enough to the man-monster to see the red glow in his
-eyes. They were not like the eyes of the wonderful
-creature who had almost caught him in the web of
-her hair, and who had crawled after him under the
-rock. They were beast-eyes. They made him
-shrink and try to draw his head back into the blanket
-as the stick was raised. At the same time he snarled.
-His white fangs gleamed in the firelight. His ears
-were flat. He wanted to sink his teeth in the red
-throat where he had already drawn blood.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The stick fell. It fell again and again, and when
-McTaggart was done, Baree lay half stunned, his
-eyes partly closed by the blows, and his mouth
-bleeding.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That’s the way we take the devil out of a wild
-dog,” snarled McTaggart. “I guess you won’t try
-the biting game again, eh, youngster? A thousand
-devils—but you went almost to the bone of this
-hand!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He began washing the wound again. Baree’s
-teeth had sunk deep, and there was a troubled look
-in the Factor’s face. It was July—a bad month
-for bites. From his kit he got a small flask of whisky
-and turned a bit of the raw liquor on the wound,
-cursing Baree as it burned into his flesh.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree’s half-shut eyes were fixed on him steadily.
-He knew that at last he had met the deadliest of all
-his enemies. And yet he was not afraid. The club
-in Bush McTaggart’s hand had not killed his spirit.
-It had killed his fear. It had roused in him a hatred
-such as he had never known—not even when he was
-fighting Oohoomisew, the outlaw owl. The vengeful
-animosity of the wolf was burning in him now,
-along with the savage courage of the dog. He did
-not flinch when McTaggart approached him again.
-He made an effort to raise himself, that he might
-spring at this man-monster. In the effort, swaddled
-as he was in the blanket, he rolled over in a helpless
-and ludicrous heap.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The sight of it touched McTaggart’s risibilities,
-and he laughed. He sat down with his back to the
-tree again and filled his pipe.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree did not take his eyes from McTaggart as
-he smoked. He watched the man when the latter
-stretched himself out on the bare ground and went
-to sleep. He listened, still later, to the man-monster’s
-heinous snoring. Again and again during
-the long night he struggled to free himself. He
-would never forget that night. It was terrible.
-In the thick, hot folds of the blanket his limbs and
-body were suffocated until the blood almost stood
-still in his veins. Yet he did not whine.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They began to journey before the sun was up,
-for if Baree’s blood was almost dead within him,
-Bush McTaggart’s was scorching his body with the
-heat of its anticipation. He made his last plans as
-he walked swiftly through the forest with Baree
-under his arm. He would send Pierrot at once for
-Father Grotin at his Mission seventy miles to the
-west. He would marry Nepeese—yes, marry her!
-That would tickle Pierrot. And he would be alone
-with Nepeese while Pierrot was gone for the missioner.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This thought flamed McTaggart’s blood like strong
-whisky. There was no thought in his hot and
-unreasoning brain of what Nepeese might say—of
-what she might think. He was not after the soul
-of her. His hand clenched, and he laughed harshly as
-there flashed on him for an instant the thought that
-perhaps Pierrot would not want to give her up.
-Pierrot! Bah! It would not be the first time he had
-killed a man—or the second.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>McTaggart laughed again, and he walked still
-faster. There was no chance of his losing—no
-chance for Nepeese to get away from him.
-He—Bush McTaggart—was lord of this wilderness,
-master of its people, arbiter of their destinies. He was
-power—and the law.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The sun was well up when Pierrot, standing in
-front of his cabin with Nepeese, pointed to a rise in
-the trail three or four hundred yards away, over
-which McTaggart had just appeared.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He is coming.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With a face which had aged since last night he
-looked at Nepeese. Again he saw the dark glow in
-her eyes and the deepening red of her parted lips,
-and his heart was sick again with dread. Was it
-possible——</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She turned on him, her eyes shining, her voice
-trembling.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Remember, Nootawe—you must send him to me
-for his answer,” she cried quickly, and she darted
-into the cabin. With a cold, gray face Pierrot faced
-Bush McTaggart.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XIII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>From the window, her face screened by the
-folds of the curtain which she had made
-for it, the Willow saw what happened outside.
-She was not smiling now. She was breathing
-quickly, and her body was tense. Bush McTaggart
-paused not a dozen feet from the window and shook
-hands with Pierrot, her father. She heard McTaggart’s
-coarse voice, his boisterous greeting, and then
-she saw him showing Pierrot what he carried under
-his arm. There came to her distinctly his explanation
-of how he had caught his captive in a rabbit-snare.
-He unwrapped the blanket. Nepeese gave
-a cry of amazement. In an instant she was out beside
-them. She did not look at McTaggart’s red
-face, blazing in its joy and exultation.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is Baree!” she cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She took the bundle from McTaggart and turned
-to Pierrot.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Tell him that Baree belongs to me,” she said.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She hurried into the cabin. McTaggart looked
-after her, stunned and amazed. Then he looked at
-Pierrot. A man half blind could have seen that
-Pierrot was as amazed as he. Nepeese had not
-spoken to him—the Factor of Lac Bain! She had
-not <i>looked</i> at him! And she had taken the dog from
-him with as little concern as though he had been a
-wooden man. The red in his face deepened as he
-stared from Pierrot to the door through which she
-had gone, and which she had closed behind her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>On the floor of the cabin Nepeese dropped on her
-knees and finished unwrapping the blanket. She
-was not afraid of Baree. She had forgotten McTaggart.
-And then, as Baree rolled in a limp heap
-on the floor, she saw his half-closed eyes and the
-dry blood on his jaws, and the light left her face
-as swiftly as the sun is shadowed by a cloud.
-“Baree,” she cried softly. “Baree—Baree!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She partly lifted him in her two hands. Baree’s
-head sagged. His body was numbed until he was
-powerless to move. His legs were without feeling.
-He could scarcely see. But he heard her voice! It
-was the same voice that had come to him that day
-he had felt the sting of the bullet, the voice that had
-pleaded with him under the rock!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The voice of the Willow thrilled Baree. It seemed
-to stir the sluggish blood in his veins, and he opened
-his eyes wider and saw again the wonderful stars
-that had glowed at him so softly the day of Wakayoo’s
-death. One of the Willow’s long braids fell
-over her shoulder, and he smelled again the sweet
-scent of her hair as her hand caressed him and her
-voice talked to him. Then she got up suddenly and
-left him, and he did not move while he waited for
-her. In a moment she was back with a basin
-of water and a cloth. Gently she washed the blood
-from his eyes and mouth. And still Baree made
-no move. He scarcely breathed. But Nepeese saw
-the little quivers that shot through his body when
-her hand touched him, like electric shocks.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He beat you with a club,” she was saying, her
-dark eyes within a foot of Baree’s. “He beat you!
-That man-beast!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There came an interruption. The door opened,
-and the man-beast stood looking down on them, a
-grin on his red face. Instantly Baree showed that
-he was alive. He sprang back from under the Willow’s
-hand with a sudden snarl and faced McTaggart.
-The hair of his spine stood up like a brush;
-his fangs gleamed menacingly, and his eyes burned
-like living coals.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“There is a devil in him,” said McTaggart.
-“He is wild—born of the wolf. You must be careful
-or he will take off a hand, <i>ka sakahet</i>!” It was
-the first time he had called her that lover’s name in
-Cree—<i>sweetheart</i>! Her heart pounded. She bent
-her head for a moment over her clenched hands, and
-McTaggart—looking down on what he thought was
-her confusion—laid his hand caressingly on her
-hair. From the door Pierrot had heard the word,
-and now he saw the caress, and he raised a hand as
-if to shut out the sight of a sacrilege.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Mon Dieu!</i>” he breathed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In the next instant he had given a sharp cry of
-wonder that mingled with a sudden yell of pain from
-McTaggart. Like a flash Baree had darted across
-the floor and fastened his teeth in the Factor’s leg.
-They had bitten deep before McTaggart freed himself
-with a powerful kick. With an oath he snatched
-his revolver from its holster. The Willow was ahead
-of him. With a little cry she darted to Baree and
-caught him in her arms. As she looked up at McTaggart,
-her soft, bare throat was within a few inches of
-Baree’s naked fangs. Her eyes blazed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You beat him!” she cried. “He hates you—hates
-you——”</p>
-
-<div id='i126' class='figcenter id002'>
-<img src='images/illus-126.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic001'>
-<p>With an oath McTaggart snatched his revolver from its holster. The Willow was ahead of him. With a little cry she darted to Baree and caught him in her arms.... Her eyes blazed. “You beat him!” she cried. “He hates you—hates you—hates you.”</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Let him go!” called Pierrot in an agony of fear.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Mon Dieu!</i> I say let him go or he will tear the
-life from you!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He hates you—hates you—hates you——” the
-Willow was repeating over and over again into
-McTaggart’s startled face. Then suddenly she turned
-to her father. “No, he will not tear the life from
-me,” she cried. “See! It is Baree. Did I not
-tell you that? It is Baree! Is it not proof that he
-defended me——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“From me!” gasped McTaggart, his face darkening.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pierrot advanced and laid a hand on McTaggart’s
-arm. He was smiling.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Let us leave them to fight it out between themselves,
-m’sieu,” he said. “They are two little firebrands,
-and we are not safe. If she is bitten——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He shrugged his shoulders. A great load had been
-lifted from them suddenly. His voice was soft and
-persuasive. And now the anger had gone out of the
-Willow’s face. A coquettish uplift of her eyes caught
-McTaggart, and she looked straight at him half
-smiling, as she spoke to her father:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I will join you soon, <i>mon père</i>—you and M’sieu
-the Factor from Lac Bain!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There were undeniable little devils in her eyes,
-McTaggart thought—little devils laughing full at him
-as she spoke, setting his brain afire and his blood to
-running wildly. Those eyes—full of dancing witches!
-How he would tame them and play with them—very
-soon now! He followed Pierrot outside. In his
-exultation he no longer felt the smart of Baree’s
-teeth.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I will show you my new cariole that I have made
-for winter, m’sieu,” said Pierrot as the door closed
-behind them.</p>
-
-<hr class='c007' />
-
-<p class='c001'>Half an hour later Nepeese came out of the cabin.
-She could see that Pierrot and the Factor had been
-talking about something that had not been pleasant
-to her father. His face was strained. She caught
-in his eyes the smoulder of fire which he was trying
-to smother, as one might smother flames under a
-blanket. McTaggart’s jaws were set, but his eyes
-flared up with pleasure when he saw her. She knew
-what it was about. The Factor from Lac Bain had
-been demanding his answer of Pierrot, and Pierrot
-had been telling him what she had insisted upon—that
-he must come to her. And he was coming!
-She turned with a quick beating of the heart and hurried
-down a little path. She heard McTaggart’s
-footsteps behind her, and threw the flash of a smile
-over her shoulder. But her teeth were set tight.
-The nails of her fingers were cutting into the palms
-of her hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pierrot stood without moving. He watched them
-as they disappeared into the edge of the forest,
-Nepeese still a few steps ahead of McTaggart. Out
-of his breast rose a sharp breath.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Par les mille cornes du diable!</i>” he swore softly.
-“Is it possible—that she smiles from her heart at
-that beast? <i>Non!</i> It is impossible. And yet—if it
-is so——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>One of his brown hands tightened convulsively
-about the handle of the knife in his belt, and slowly
-he began to follow them.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>McTaggart did not hurry to overtake Nepeese.
-She was following the narrow path deeper into the
-forest, and he was glad of that. They would be
-alone—away from Pierrot. He was ten steps behind
-her, and again the Willow smiled at him over her
-shoulder. Her body moved sinuously and swiftly.
-She was keeping accurate measurement of the
-distance between them—but McTaggart did not guess
-that this was why she looked back every now and
-then. He was satisfied to let her go on. When she
-turned from the narrow trail into a side path that
-scarcely bore the mark of travel, his heart gave an
-exultant jump. If she kept on, he would very soon
-have her alone—a good distance from the cabin.
-The blood ran hot in his face. He did not speak to
-her, through fear that she would stop. Ahead of
-them he heard the rumble of water. It was the
-creek running through the chasm.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Nepeese was making straight for that sound.
-With a little laugh she started to run, and when she
-stood at the edge of the chasm, McTaggart was fully
-fifty yards behind her. Twenty feet sheer down
-there was a deep pool between the rock walls, a pool
-so deep that it was like blue ink. She turned to face
-the Factor from Lac Bain. He had never looked
-more like a red beast to her. Until this moment she
-had been unafraid. But now—in an instant—he
-terrified her. Before she could speak what she had
-planned to say, he was at her side, and had taken
-her face between his two great hands, his coarse
-fingers twining in the silken strands of her thick
-braids where they fell over her shoulders at the neck.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Ka sakahet!</i>” he cried passionately. “Pierrot
-said you would have an answer for me. But I need
-no answer now. You are mine! Mine!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She gave a cry. It was a gasping, broken cry.
-His arms were about her like bands of iron, crushing
-her slender body, shutting off her breath, turning the
-world almost black for her. She could neither
-struggle nor cry out. She felt the hot passion of his
-lips on her face, heard his voice—and then came a
-moment’s freedom, and air into her strangled lungs.
-Pierrot was calling! He had come to the fork in the
-trail, and he was calling the Willow’s name!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>McTaggart’s hot hand came over her mouth.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Don’t answer,” she heard him say.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Strength—anger—hatred flared up in her, and
-fiercely she struck the hand down. Something in
-her wonderful eyes held McTaggart. They blazed
-into his very soul.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Bête noir!</i>” she panted at him, freeing herself
-from the last touch of his hands. “Beast—black
-beast!” Her voice trembled, and her face flamed.
-“See—I came to show you my pool—and tell you
-what you wanted to hear—and you—you—have
-crushed me like a beast—like a great rock——See!
-down there—it is my pool!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She had not planned it like this. She had
-intended to be smiling, even laughing, in this moment.
-But McTaggart had spoiled them—her carefully
-made plans! And yet, as she pointed, the Factor
-from Lac Bain looked for an instant over the edge of
-the chasm. And then she laughed—laughed as she
-gave him a sudden shove from behind.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And that is my answer, M’sieu le Facteur from
-Lac Bain!” she cried tauntingly as he plunged
-headlong into the deep pool between the rock walls.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XIV</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>From the edge of the open Pierrot saw what
-had happened, and he gave a great gasp. He
-drew back among the balsams. This was not
-a moment for him to show himself. While his heart
-drummed like a hammer, his face was filled with joy.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>On her hands and knees the Willow was peering
-over the edge. Bush McTaggart had disappeared.
-He had gone down like the great clod he was; the
-water of her pool had closed over him with a dull
-splash that was like a chuckle of triumph. He
-appeared now, beating out with his arms and legs to
-keep himself afloat, while the Willow’s voice came
-to him in taunting cries.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Bête noir!</i> <i>Bête noir!</i> Beast! Beast——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She flung small sticks and tufts of earth down at
-him fiercely; and McTaggart, looking up as he gained
-his equilibrium, saw her leaning so far over that she
-seemed about to fall. Her long braids hung down into
-the chasm, gleaming in the sun; her eyes were
-laughing while her lips taunted him; he could see the
-flash of her white teeth.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Beast! Beast!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He began swimming, still looking up at her. It
-was a hundred yards down the slow-going current to
-the beach of shale where he could climb out, and a half
-of that distance she followed him, laughing and
-taunting him, and flinging down sticks and pebbles.
-He noted that none of the sticks or stones was large
-enough to hurt him. When at last his feet touched
-bottom, she was gone.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Swiftly Nepeese ran back over the trail, and almost
-into Pierrot’s arms. She was panting and laughing
-when for a moment she stopped.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I have given him the answer, Nootawe! He is in
-the pool!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Into the balsams she disappeared like a bird.
-Pierrot made no effort to stop her or to follow.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Tonnerre de Dieu!</i>” he chuckled—and cut
-straight across for the other trail.</p>
-
-<hr class='c007' />
-
-<p class='c001'>Nepeese was out of breath when she reached the
-cabin. Baree, fastened to a table-leg by a <i>babiche</i>
-thong, heard her pause for a moment at the door.
-Then she entered and came straight to him. During
-the half-hour of her absence Baree had scarcely
-moved. That half-hour, and the few minutes that
-had preceded it, had made tremendous impressions
-upon him. Nature, heredity, and instinct were at
-work, clashing and readjusting, impinging on him
-a new intelligence—the beginning of a new
-understanding. A swift and savage impulse had made him
-leap at Bush McTaggart when the Factor put his
-hand on the Willow’s head. It was not reason. It
-was a hearkening back of the dog to that day long
-ago when Kazan, his father, had killed the man-brute
-in the tent, the man-brute who had dared to attempt
-the sacrilege of Thorpe’s wife, whom Kazan
-worshipped. It was the dog—and woman.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And here again it was the woman. She had called
-to the great hidden passion that was in Baree and
-that had come to him from Kazan. Of all the living
-things in the world, he knew that he must not hurt
-this creature that appeared to him through the door.
-He trembled as she knelt before him again, and up
-through the years came the wild and glorious surge
-of Kazan’s blood, overwhelming the wolf, submerging
-the savagery of his birth—and with his head flat on
-the floor he whined softly, and <i>wagged his tail</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Nepeese gave a cry of joy.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Baree!” she whispered, taking his head in her
-hands. “Baree!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Her touch thrilled him. It sent little throbs
-through his body, a tremulous quivering which she
-could feel and which deepened the glow in her eyes.
-Gently her hand stroked his head and his back. It
-seemed to Nepeese that he did not breathe. Under
-the caress of her hand his eyes closed. In another
-moment she was talking to him, and at the sound of
-her voice his eyes shot open.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He will come here—that beast—and he will kill
-us,” she was saying. “He will kill you because you
-bit him, Baree. Ugh, I wish you were bigger, and
-stronger, so that you could take off his head for me!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She was untying the <i>babiche</i> from about the table-leg,
-and under her breath she laughed. She was not
-frightened. It was a tremendous adventure—and
-she throbbed with exultation at the thought of having
-beaten the man-beast in her own way. She could
-see him in the pool struggling and beating about like
-a great fish. He was just about crawling out of the
-chasm now—and she laughed again as she caught
-Baree up under her arm.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Oh—<i>oopi-nao</i>—but you are heavy!” she gasped.
-“And yet I must carry you—because I am going to
-run!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She hurried outside. Pierrot had not come, and
-she darted swiftly into the balsams back of the cabin,
-with Baree hung in the crook of her arm, like a sack
-filled at both ends and tied in the middle. He felt
-like that, too. But he still had no inclination to
-wriggle himself free. Nepeese ran with him until
-her arm ached. Then she stopped and put him down
-on his feet, holding to the end of the caribou-skin
-thong that was tied about his neck. She was prepared
-for any lunge he might make to escape. She
-expected that he would make an attempt, and for a
-few moments she watched him closely, while Baree,
-with his feet on earth once more, looked about him.
-And then the Willow spoke to him softly.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You are not going to run away, Baree. <i>Non</i>,
-you are going to stay with me, and we will kill that
-man-beast if he dares do to me again what he did back
-there.” She flung back the loose hair from about
-her flushed face, and for a moment she forgot Baree
-as she thought of that half-minute at the edge of the
-chasm. He was looking straight up at her when her
-glance fell on him again. “<i>Non</i>, you are not going
-to run away—you are going to follow me,” she
-whispered. “Come.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The <i>babiche</i> string tightened about Baree’s neck
-as she urged him to follow. It was like another
-rabbit-snare, and he braced his forefeet and bared his
-fangs just a little. The Willow did not pull. Fearlessly
-she put her hand on his head again. From
-the direction of the cabin came a shout, and at the
-sound of it she took Baree up under her arm once
-more.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Bête noir—bête noir!</i>” she called back tauntingly,
-but only loud enough to be heard a few yards away.
-“Go back to Lac Bain—<i>owases</i>—you wild beast!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Nepeese began to make her way swiftly through the
-forest. It grew deeper and darker, and there were
-no trails. Three times in the next half-hour she
-stopped to put Baree down and rest her arm. Each
-time she pleaded with him coaxingly to follow her.
-The second and third times Baree wriggled and
-wagged his tail, but beyond those demonstrations
-of his satisfaction at the turn his affairs had taken
-he would not go. When the string tightened around
-his neck, he braced himself; once he growled—again
-he snapped viciously at the <i>babiche</i>. So Nepeese
-continued to carry him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They came at last into an open. It was a tiny
-meadow in the heart of the forest, not more than
-three or four times as big as the cabin; underfoot the
-grass was soft and green, and thick with flowers.
-Straight through the heart of this little oasis trickled
-a streamlet across which the Willow jumped with
-Baree under her arm, and on the edge of the rill was a
-small wigwam made of freshly cut spruce- and
-balsam-boughs. Into her diminutive <i>mekewap</i> the
-Willow thrust her head to see that things were as she
-had left them yesterday. Then, with a long breath
-of relief, she put down her four-legged burden and
-fastened the end of the <i>babiche</i> to one of the cut
-spruce-limbs.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree burrowed himself back into the wall of the
-wigwam, and with head alert—and eyes wide open—watched
-attentively what happened after this. Not
-a movement of the Willow escaped him. She was
-radiant—and happy. Her laugh, sweet and wild
-as a bird’s trill, set Baree’s heart throbbing with a
-desire to jump about with her among the flowers.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For a time Nepeese seemed to forget Baree. Her
-wild blood raced with the joy of her triumph over the
-Factor from Lac Bain. She saw him again, floundering
-about in the pool—pictured him at the cabin
-now, soaked and angry, demanding of <i>mon père</i>
-where she had gone. And <i>mon père</i>, with a shrug of
-his shoulders, was telling him that he didn’t know—that
-probably she had run off into the forest. It did
-not enter into her head that in tricking Bush McTaggart
-in that way she had played with dynamite.
-She did not foresee the peril that in an instant would
-have stamped the wild flush from her face and curdled
-the blood in her veins—did not guess that McTaggart
-had become for her a deadlier menace than ever.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Nepeese knew that he was angry. But what had
-she to fear? <i>Mon père</i> would be angry, too, if she
-told him what had happened at the edge of the chasm.
-But she would not tell him. He might kill the beast
-from Lac Bain. A factor was great. But Pierrot,
-her father, was greater. It was an unlimited faith in
-her, born of her mother. Perhaps even now Pierrot
-was sending him back to Lac Bain, telling him that
-his business was there. But she would not return
-to the cabin to see. She would wait here. <i>Mon
-père</i> would understand—and he knew where to
-find her when the beast was gone. But it would
-have been such fun to throw sticks at him as he
-went!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>After a little Nepeese returned to Baree. She
-brought him water and gave him a piece of raw fish.
-For hours they were alone, and with each hour there
-grew stronger in Baree the desire to follow the girl
-in every movement she made, to crawl close to her
-when she sat down, to feel the touch of her dress,
-of her hand—and hear her voice. But he did not
-show this desire. He was still a little savage of
-the forests—a four-footed barbarian born half of a
-wolf and half of a dog; and he lay still. With Umisk
-he would have played. With Oohoomisew he would
-have fought. At Bush McTaggart he would have
-bared his fangs, and buried them deep when the
-chance came. But the girl was different. Like the
-Kazan of old, he had begun to worship. If the Willow
-had freed Baree, he would not have run away.
-If she had left him, he would possibly have followed
-her—at a distance. His eyes were never away from
-her. He watched her build a small fire and cook a
-piece of the fish. He watched her eat her dinner.
-It was quite late in the afternoon when she came and
-sat down close to him, with her lap full of flowers
-which she twined in the long, shining braids of her
-hair. Then, playfully, she began beating Baree with
-the end of one of these braids. He shrank under the
-soft blows, and with that low, birdlike laughter in her
-throat, Nepeese drew his head into her lap where the
-scatter of flowers lay. She talked to him. Her
-hand stroked his head. Then it remained still, so
-near that he wanted to thrust out his warm red
-tongue and caress it. He breathed in the flower-scented
-perfume of it—and lay as if dead. It was
-a glorious moment. Nepeese, looking down on him,
-could not see that he was breathing.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There came an interruption. It was the snapping
-of a dry stick. Through the forest Pierrot had come
-with the stealth of a cat, and when they looked
-up, he stood at the edge of the open. Baree knew
-that it was not Bush McTaggart. But it was a
-man-beast! Instantly his body stiffened under the
-Willow’s hand. He drew back slowly and cautiously
-from her lap, and as Pierrot advanced, Baree
-snarled. The next instant Nepeese had risen and
-had run to Pierrot. The look in her father’s face
-alarmed her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What has happened, <i>mon père</i>?” she cried.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pierrot shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nothing, <i>ma Nepeese</i>—except that you have
-roused a thousand devils in the heart of the Factor
-from Lac Bain, and that——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He stopped as he saw Baree, and pointed at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Last night when M’sieu the Factor caught him
-in a snare, he bit M’sieu’s hand. M’sieu’s hand is
-swollen twice its size, and I can see his blood turning
-black. It is <i>pechipoo</i>.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Pechipoo!</i>” gasped Nepeese.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She looked into Pierrot’s eyes. They were dark,
-and filled with a sinister gleam—a flash of exultation,
-she thought.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes, it is the blood-poison,” said Pierrot. A
-gleam of cunning shot into his eyes as he looked
-over his shoulder, and nodded. “I have hidden the
-medicine—and told him there is no time to lose in
-getting back to Lac Bain. And he is afraid—that
-devil! He is waiting. With that blackening hand,
-he is afraid to start back alone—and so I go with
-him. And—listen, <i>ma Nepeese</i>. We will be away
-by sundown, and there is something you must know
-before I go.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree saw them there, close together in the
-shadows thrown by the tall spruce trees. He heard
-the low murmur of their voices—chiefly of Pierrot’s,
-and at last he saw Nepeese put her two arms up
-around the man-beast’s neck, and then Pierrot went
-away again into the forest. He thought that the
-Willow would never turn her face toward him after
-that. For a long time she stood looking in the
-direction which Pierrot had taken. And when after
-a time she turned and came back to Baree, she did
-not look like the Nepeese who had been twining
-flowers in her hair. The laughter was gone from
-her face and eyes. She knelt down beside him and
-with sudden fierceness she cried:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is <i>pechipoo</i>, Baree! It was you—you—who
-put the poison in his blood. And I hope he dies!
-For I am afraid—afraid!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She shivered.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Perhaps it was in this moment that the Great
-Spirit of things meant Baree to understand—that
-at last it was given him to comprehend that his day
-had dawned, that the rising and the setting of his
-sun no longer existed in the sky but in this girl whose
-hand rested on his head. He whined softly, and
-inch by inch he dragged himself nearer to her until
-again his head rested in the hollow of her lap.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XV</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>For a long time after Pierrot left them the
-Willow did not move from where she had
-seated herself beside Baree. It was at last
-the deepening shadows and a near rumble in the
-sky that roused her from the fear of the things Pierrot
-had told her. When she looked up, black clouds
-were massing slowly over the open space above the
-spruce-tops. Darkness was falling. In the whisper
-of the wind and the dead stillness of the thickening
-gloom there was the sullen brewing of storm. To-night
-there would be no glorious sunset. There
-would be no twilight hour in which to follow the
-trail, no moon, no stars—and unless Pierrot and the
-Factor were already on their way, they would
-not start in the face of the pitch blackness that
-would soon shroud the land.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Nepeese shivered and rose to her feet. For the
-first time Baree got up, and he stood close at her
-side. Above them a lightning-flash cut the clouds
-like a knife of fire, followed in an instant by a
-terrific crash of thunder. Baree shrank back as if
-struck a blow. He would have slunk into the shelter
-of the brush wall of the wigwam, but there was
-something about the Willow as he looked at her
-which gave him confidence. The thunder crashed
-again. But he retreated no farther. His eyes were
-fixed on Nepeese.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She stood straight and slim in that gathering gloom
-riven by the lightning, her beautiful head thrown
-back, her lips parted, and her eyes glowing with an
-almost eager anticipation—a sculptured goddess welcoming
-with bated breath the onrushing forces of
-the heavens. Perhaps it was because she was born
-on a night of storm. Many times Pierrot and the
-dead princess mother had told her that—how on the
-night she had come into the world the crash of thunder
-and the flare of lightning had made the hours an
-inferno, how the streams had burst over their banks
-and the stems of ten thousand forest trees had snapped
-in its fury—and the beat of the deluge on their cabin
-roof had drowned the sound of her mother’s pain,
-and of her own first babyish cries.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>On that night, it may be, the Spirit of Storm was
-born in Nepeese. She loved to face it, as she was
-facing it now. It made her forget all things but
-the splendid might of nature; her half-wild soul
-thrilled to the crash and fire of it; often she had
-reached up her bare arms and laughed with joy as the
-deluge burst about her. Even now she might have
-stood there in the little open until the rain fell, if a
-whine from Baree had not turned her. As the first
-big drops struck with the dull thud of leaden bullets
-about them, she went with him into the balsam shelter.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Once before Baree had passed through a night of
-terrible storm—the night he had hidden himself
-under a root and saw the tree riven by lightning;
-but now he had company, and the warmth and soft
-pressure of the Willow’s hand on his head and neck
-filled him with a strange courage. He growled
-softly at the crashing thunder. He wanted to snap
-at the lightning-flashes. Under her hand Nepeese
-felt the stiffening of his body, and in a moment of
-uncanny stillness she heard the sharp, uneasy click
-of his teeth. Then the rain fell.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was not like other rains Baree had known. It
-was an inundation sweeping down out of the blackness
-of the skies. Within five minutes the interior of the
-balsam shelter was a shower-bath—half an hour of
-that torrential downpour, and Nepeese was soaked
-to the skin. The water ran in little rivulets down
-her back and breast; it trickled in tiny streams from
-her drenched braids and dropped from her long lashes,
-and the blanket under her was wet as a mop. To
-Baree it was almost as bad as his near-drowning in
-the stream after his fight with Papayuchisew, and he
-snuggled closer and closer under the sheltering arm of
-the Willow. It seemed an interminable time before
-the thunder rolled far to the east, and the lightning
-died away into distant and intermittent flashings.
-Even after that the rain fell for another hour. Then
-it stopped as suddenly as it had begun.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With a laughing gasp Nepeese rose to her feet.
-The water gurgled in her moccasins as she walked
-out into the open. She paid no attention to Baree—and
-he followed her. Across the open in the treetops
-the last of the storm-clouds were drifting away.
-A star shone—then another; and the Willow stood
-watching them as they appeared until there were so
-many she could not count. It was no longer black.
-A wonderful starlight flooded the open after the inky
-gloom of the storm.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Nepeese looked down and saw Baree. He was
-standing clear and unleashed, with freedom on all sides
-of him. Yet he did not run. He was waiting, wet as a
-water-rat, with his eyes on her expectantly. Nepeese
-made a movement toward him, and hesitated.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“No, you will not run away, Baree. I will leave
-you free. And now we must have a fire!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A fire! Any one but Pierrot might have said that
-she was crazy. Not a stem or twig in the forest that
-was not dripping! They could hear the trickle of
-running water all about them.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A fire,” she said again. “Let us hunt for the
-<i>wuskwi</i>, Baree.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With her wet clothes clinging to her tightly, she
-was like a slim shadow as she crossed the soggy open
-and buried herself among the forest trees. Baree
-still followed. She went straight to a birch-tree
-that she had located that day and began tearing off
-the loose bark. An armful of this bark she carried
-close to the wigwam, and on it she heaped load after
-load of wet wood until she had a great pile. From
-a bottle in the wigwam she secured a dry match, and
-at the first touch of its tiny flame the birch-bark
-flared up like paper soaked in oil. Half an hour
-later the Willow’s fire—if there had been no forest
-walls to hide it—could have been seen at the cabin a
-mile away. Not until it was blazing a dozen feet into
-the air did she cease putting wood on it. Then she
-drove sticks into the soft ground and over these
-sticks stretched the blanket out to dry. After that
-she began to undress.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The rain had cooled the air, and the tonic of it—laden
-with the breath of the balsam and spruce—set
-the Willow’s blood dancing in her veins. She forgot
-the discomfort of the deluge. She forgot the Factor
-from Lac Bain, and what Pierrot had told her.
-After all, she was a bird of the forests, wild with the
-sweet wildness of the flowers under her bare feet—and
-in the glory of these wonderful hours that had
-followed the storm she could see nothing and think
-of nothing that might harm her. She danced about
-Baree, tossing her sea of hair about her, her naked
-body shimmering in and out of it, her eyes aglow,
-her lips laughing in her unreasoning happiness—the
-happiness of being alive, of drinking into her
-lungs the perfumed air of the forest, of seeing the
-stars and the wonderful sky above her. She stopped
-before Baree, and cried laughingly at him, holding
-out her arms:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Ahe</i>, Baree—if you could only throw off your
-skin as easily as I have thrown off my clothes!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She drew a deep breath, and her eyes shone with
-a sudden inspiration. Slowly her mouth formed into
-a round red O, and leaning still nearer to Baree, she
-whispered:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It will be deep—and sweet to-night. <i>Ninga</i>—yes—we
-will go!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She called to him softly as she slipped on her wet
-moccasins and followed the creek into the forest.
-A hundred yards from the open she came to the edge
-of a pool. It was deep and full to-night, three times
-as big as it had been before the storm. She could
-hear the gurgle and inrush of water. On its ruffled
-surface the stars shone. For a moment or two she
-stood poised on a rock with the cool depths half a
-dozen feet below her. Then she flung back her hair
-and shot like a slim white arrow through the starlight.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree saw her go. He heard the plunge of her
-body. For half an hour he lay flat and still, close to
-the edge of the pool, and watched her. Sometimes
-she was just under him, floating silently, her hair
-forming a cloud darker than the water about her;
-again she was cutting over the surface almost as
-swiftly as the otters he had seen—and then with a
-sudden plunge she would disappear, and Baree’s
-heart would quicken its pulse as he waited for her.
-Once she was gone a long time. He whined. He
-knew she was not like the beaver and the otter, and
-he was filled with an immense relief when she came up.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>So their first night passed—storm, the cool, deep
-pool, the big fire; and later, when the Willow’s
-clothes and the blanket had dried, a few hours’
-sleep. At dawn they returned to the cabin. It was
-a cautious approach. There was no smoke coming
-from the chimney. The door was closed. Pierrot
-and Bush McTaggart were gone.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XVI</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>It was the beginning of August—the Flying-up
-Moon—when Pierrot returned from Lac
-Bain, and in three days more it would be the
-Willow’s seventeenth birthday. He brought back
-with him many things for Nepeese—ribbons for her
-hair, real shoes, which she wore at times like the two
-Englishwomen at Nelson House, and chief glory of
-all, some wonderful red cloth for a dress. In the
-three winters she had spent at the Mission these
-women had made much of Nepeese. They had
-taught her to sew as well as to spell and read and
-pray, and at times there came to the Willow a compelling
-desire to do as they did.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>So for three days Nepeese worked hard on her new
-dress and on her birthday she stood before Pierrot
-in a fashion that took his breath away. She had
-piled her hair in great glowing masses and coils on
-the crown of her head, as Yvonne, the younger of
-the Englishwomen, had taught her, and in the rich
-jet of it had half buried a vivid sprig of the crimson
-fire-flower. Under this, and the glow in her
-eyes, and the red flush of her lips and cheeks came
-the wonderful red dress, fitted to the slim and
-sinuous beauty of her form—as the style had been
-two winters ago at Nelson House. And under the
-dress, which reached just below the knees—Nepeese
-had quite forgotten the proper length, or else her
-material had run out—came the <i>coup de maître</i> of her
-toilet, real stockings and the wonderful shoes with
-high heels! She was a vision before which the gods
-of the forests might have felt their hearts stop beating.
-Pierrot turned her round and round without a
-word, but smiling; but when she left him, followed
-by Baree, and limping a little in the tightness of her
-shoes, the smile faded from his face, leaving it cold
-and staring.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Mon Dieu</i>,” he whispered to himself in French,
-with a thought that was like a sharp stab at his heart,
-“she is not of her mother’s blood—<i>non</i>. It is French.
-She is—yes—like an angel.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was a change in Pierrot. During the three
-days of her dressmaking Nepeese had been quite too
-excited to notice this change, and Pierrot had tried
-to keep it from her. He had been away ten days on
-the trip to Lac Bain, and he brought back to Nepeese
-the joyous news that M’sieu McTaggart was very
-sick with <i>pechipoo</i>—the blood-poison—news that
-made the Willow clap her hands and laugh happily.
-But he knew that the Factor would get well, and that
-he would come again to their cabin on the Gray
-Loon. And when next time he came——</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was when he was thinking of this that his face
-grew cold and hard, and his eyes burned. And he
-was thinking of it on this her birthday, even as her
-laughter floated to him like a song. <i>Dieu</i>, in spite
-of her seventeen years, she was nothing but a child—a
-baby! She could not guess his horrible visions.
-And the dread of awakening her for all time from that
-beautiful childhood kept him from telling her the
-whole truth so that she might have understood fully
-and completely. <i>Non</i>, it should not be that. His
-soul beat with a great and gentle love. He, Pierrot
-Du Quesne, would do the watching. And she should
-laugh and sing and play—and have no share in the
-black forebodings that had come to spoil his life.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>On this day there came up from the south MacDonald,
-the government map-maker. He was gray
-and grizzled, with a great, free laugh and a clean
-heart. Two days he remained with Pierrot. He
-told Nepeese of his daughters at home, of their
-mother, whom he worshipped more than anything
-else on earth—and before he went on in his quest of
-the last timber-line of Banksian pine, he took pictures
-of the Willow as he had first seen her on her
-birthday: her hair piled in glossy coils and masses,
-her red dress, the high-heeled shoes. He carried
-the negatives on with him, promising Pierrot that
-he would get a picture back in some way. Thus
-fate works in its strange and apparently innocent
-ways as it spins its webs of tragedy.</p>
-
-<hr class='c007' />
-
-<p class='c001'>For many weeks after this there followed tranquil
-days on the Gray Loon. They were wonderful
-days for Baree. At first he was suspicious of Pierrot.
-After a little he tolerated him, and at last accepted
-him as a part of the cabin—and Nepeese. It was
-the Willow whose shadow he became. Pierrot noted
-the attachment with the deepest satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ah, in a few months more, if he should leap at the
-throat of M’sieu the Factor,” he said to himself one day.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In September, when he was six months old, Baree
-was almost as large as Gray Wolf—big-boned, long-fanged,
-with a deep chest, and jaws that could already
-crack a bone as if it were a stick. He was with
-Nepeese whenever and wherever she moved. They
-swam together in the two pools—the pool in the
-forest and the pool between the chasm walls. At
-first it alarmed Baree to see Nepeese dive from the
-rock wall over which she had pushed McTaggart,
-but at the end of a month she had taught him to
-plunge after her through that twenty feet of space.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was late in August when Baree saw the first of
-his kind outside of Kazan and Gray Wolf. During
-the summer Pierrot allowed his dogs to run at large
-on a small island in the centre of a lake two or three
-miles away, and twice a week he netted fish for them.
-On one of these trips Nepeese accompanied him
-and took Baree with her. Pierrot carried his long
-caribou-gut whip. He expected a fight. But there
-was none. Baree joined the pack in their rush for
-fish, and ate with them. This pleased Pierrot more
-than ever.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He will make a great sledge-dog,” he chuckled.
-“It is best to leave him for a week with the pack, <i>ma
-Nepeese</i>.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Reluctantly Nepeese gave her consent. While
-the dogs were still at their fish, they started homeward.
-Their canoe had stolen well out before Baree
-discovered the trick they had played on him. Instantly
-he leaped into the water and swam after
-them—and the Willow helped him into the canoe.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Early in September a passing Indian brought
-Pierrot word of Bush McTaggart. The Factor had
-been very sick. He had almost died from the blood-poison,
-but he was well now. With the first exhilarating
-tang of autumn in the air a new dread
-oppressed Pierrot. But at present he said nothing
-of what was in his mind to Nepeese. The Willow had
-almost forgotten the Factor from Lac Bain, for the
-glory and thrill of wilderness autumn was in her
-blood. She went on long trips with Pierrot, helping
-him to blaze out the new trap-lines that would be
-used when the first snows came, and on these journeys
-she was always accompanied by Baree.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Most of Nepeese’s spare hours she spent in training
-him for the sledge. She began with a <i>babiche</i>
-string and a stick. It was a whole day before she
-could induce Baree to drag this stick without turning
-at every other step to snap and growl at it. Then
-she fastened another length of <i>babiche</i> to him, and
-made him drag two sticks. Thus little by little
-she trained him to the sledge-harness, until at the
-end of a fortnight he was tugging heroically at anything
-she had a mind to fasten him to. Pierrot
-brought home two of the dogs from the island,
-and Baree was put into training with these, and
-helped to drag the empty sledge. Nepeese was delighted.
-On the day the first light snow fell she
-clapped her hands and cried to Pierrot:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“By mid-winter I will have him the finest dog in
-the pack, <i>mon père</i>!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This was the time for Pierrot to say what was in
-his mind. He smiled. <i>Diantre</i>—would not that
-beast the Factor fall into the very devil of a rage
-when he found how he had been cheated! And
-yet——</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He tried to make his voice quiet and commonplace.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I am going to send you down to the school at
-Nelson House again this winter, <i>ma chérie</i>,” he said.
-“Baree will help draw you down on the first good
-snow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Willow was tying a knot in Baree’s <i>babiche</i>,
-and she rose slowly to her feet and looked at Pierrot.
-Her eyes were big and dark and steady.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I am not going, <i>mon père</i>!”</p>
-
-<div id='i160' class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/illus-160.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic001'>
-<p>The Willow rose slowly to her feet and looked at Pierrot. Her eyes were big and dark and steady. “I am not going, <i>mon père</i>!”</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was the first time Nepeese had ever said that to
-Pierrot—in just that way. It thrilled him. And he
-could scarcely face the look in her eyes. He was not
-good at bluffing. She saw what was in his face; it
-seemed to him that she was reading what was in his
-mind, and that she grew a little taller as she stood
-there. Certainly her breath came quicker, and he
-could see the throb of her breast. Nepeese did not
-wait for him to gather speech.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I am not going!” she repeated with even greater
-finality, and bent again over Baree.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With a shrug of his shoulders Pierrot watched
-her. After all, was he not glad? Would his heart
-not have turned sick if she had been happy at the
-thought of leaving him? He moved to her side and
-with great gentleness laid a hand on her glossy head.
-Up from under it the Willow smiled at him. Between
-them they heard the click of Baree’s jaws as
-he rested his muzzle on the Willow’s arm. For the
-first time in weeks the world seemed suddenly filled
-with sunshine for Pierrot. When he went back
-to the cabin he held his head higher. Nepeese
-would not leave him! He laughed softly. He rubbed
-his hands together. His fear of the Factor from
-Lac Bain was gone. From the cabin door he looked
-back at Nepeese and Baree.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The Saints be blessed!” he murmured. “Now—now—it
-is Pierrot Du Quesne who knows what
-to do!”</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XVII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>Back to Lac Bain, late in September, came
-MacDonald the map-maker. For ten days
-Gregson, the investigating agent, had been
-Bush McTaggart’s guest at the post, and twice in
-that time it had come into Marie’s mind to creep
-upon him while he slept and kill him. The Factor
-himself paid little attention to her now, a fact which
-would have made her happy if it had not been for
-Gregson. He was enraptured with the wild, sinuous
-beauty of the Cree girl, and McTaggart, without
-jealousy, encouraged him. He was tired of Marie.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>McTaggart told Gregson this. He wanted to get
-rid of her, and if he—Gregson—could possibly take
-her on with him it would be a great favour. He
-explained why. A little later, when the deep snows
-came, he was going to bring the daughter of Pierrot
-Du Quesne to the Post. In the rottenness of their
-brotherhood he told of his visit, of the manner of his
-reception, and of the incident at the chasm. In
-spite of all this, he assured Gregson. Pierrot’s girl
-would soon be at Lac Bain.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was at this time that MacDonald came. He
-remained only one night, and without knowing that
-he was adding fuel to a fire already dangerously blazing,
-he gave the photograph he had taken of Nepeese
-to the Factor. It was a splendid picture.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“If you can get it down to that girl some day I’ll
-be mightily obliged,” he said to McTaggart. “I
-promised her one. Her father’s name is Du Quesne—Pierrot
-Du Quesne. You probably know them. And
-the girl——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>His blood warmed as he described to McTaggart
-how beautiful she was that day in her red dress,
-which had taken black in the photograph. He did
-not guess how near the boiling point McTaggart’s
-blood was.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The next day MacDonald started for Norway
-House. McTaggart did not show Gregson the picture.
-He kept it to himself, and at night, under the
-glow of his lamp, he looked at it with thoughts that
-filled him with a growing resolution. There was but
-one way. The scheme had been in his mind for
-weeks—and the picture determined him. He dared
-not whisper his secret even to Gregson. But it was
-the one way. It would give him Nepeese. Only—he
-must wait for the deep snows, the mid-winter snows.
-They buried their tragedies deepest.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>McTaggart was glad when Gregson followed the
-map-maker to Norway House. Out of courtesy he
-accompanied him a day’s journey on his way. When
-he returned to the Post, Marie was gone. He was
-glad. He sent off a runner with a load of presents for
-her people, and the message: “Don’t beat her.
-Keep her. She is free.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Along with the bustle and stir of the beginning of
-the trapping season McTaggart began to prepare his
-house for the coming of Nepeese. He knew what
-she liked in the way of cleanliness and a few other
-things. He had the log walls painted white with
-the lead and oil that were intended for his York
-boats. Certain partitions were torn down, and new
-ones were built; the Indian wife of his chief runner
-made curtains for the windows, and he confiscated
-a small phonograph that should have gone on to Lac
-la Biche. He had no doubts, and he counted the
-days as they passed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Down on the Gray Loon Pierrot and Nepeese
-were busy at many things, so busy that at times
-Pierrot’s fears of the Factor at Lac Bain were forgotten,
-and they went out of the Willow’s mind
-entirely. It was the Red Moon, and it thrilled with
-the anticipation and excitement of the winter hunt.
-Nepeese carefully dipped a hundred traps in boiling
-caribou-fat mixed with beaver-grease, while Pierrot
-made fresh deadfalls ready for setting on his trails.
-When he was gone more than a day from the cabin,
-she was always with him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But at the cabin there was much to do, for Pierrot,
-like all his Northern brotherhood, did not begin to
-prepare until the keen tang of autumn was in the air.
-There were snowshoes to be rewebbed with new
-<i>babiche</i>, there was wood to be cut in readiness for the
-winter storms; the cabin had to be banked, a new
-harness made, skinning-knives sharpened and winter
-moccasins to be manufactured—a hundred and one
-affairs to be attended to, even to the repairing of the
-meat rack at the back of the cabin, where, from the
-beginning of cold weather until the end, would hang
-the haunches of deer, caribou, and moose for the
-family larder and, when fish were scarce, the dogs’
-rations.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In the bustle of all this Nepeese was compelled to
-give less attention to Baree than during the preceding
-weeks. They did not play so much; they no longer
-swam, for with the mornings there was deep frost
-on the ground, and the water was turning icy cold:
-they no longer wandered deep in the forest after
-flowers and berries. For hours at a time Baree
-would now lie at the Willow’s feet, watching her
-slender fingers as they weaved swiftly in and out with
-her snowshoe <i>babiche</i>; and now and then Nepeese
-would pause to lean over and put her hand on his
-head, and talk to him for a moment—sometimes in
-her soft Cree, sometimes in English or her father’s
-French.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was the Willow’s voice which Baree had learned
-to understand, and the movement of her lips, her
-gesture, the poise of her body, the changing moods
-which brought shadow or sunlight into her face. He
-knew what it meant when she smiled; he shook himself,
-and often jumped about her in sympathetic
-rejoicing, when she laughed; her happiness was a part
-of him, a stern word from her was worse than a blow.
-Twice Pierrot had struck him, and twice Baree had
-sprang back and faced him with bared fangs and an
-angry snarl, the crest along his back standing up
-like a brush. Had one of the other dogs done this,
-Pierrot would have half killed him. It would have
-been mutiny, and the man must be master. But
-Baree was always safe. A touch of the Willow’s
-hand, a word from her lips, and the crest slowly
-settled and the snarl went out of his throat.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pierrot was not at all displeased.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Dieu.</i> I will never go so far as to try and whip
-that out of him,” he told himself. “He is a
-barbarian—a wild beast—and her slave. For her he
-would kill!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>So it came, through Pierrot himself—and without
-telling his reason for it—that Baree did not become a
-sledge-dog. He was allowed his freedom, and was
-never tied, like the others. Nepeese was glad, but
-did not guess the thought that was in Pierrot’s mind.
-To himself Pierrot chuckled. She would never know
-why he kept Baree always suspicious of him, even to
-the point of hating him. It required considerable skill
-and cunning on his part. With himself he reasoned:
-“If I make him hate me, he will hate all men.
-Mey-oo! That is good.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>So he looked into the future—for Nepeese.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Now the tonic-filled days and cold, frosty nights
-of the Red Moon brought about the big change in
-Baree. It was inevitable. Pierrot knew that it
-would come, and the first night that Baree settled
-back on his haunches and howled up at the Red Moon,
-Pierrot prepared Nepeese for it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He is a wild dog, <i>Ma Nepeese</i>,” he said to her.
-“He is half wolf, and the Call will come to him strong.
-He will go into the forests. He will disappear at
-times. But we must not fasten him. He will come
-back. <i>Ka</i>, he will come back!” And he rubbed his
-hands in the moon-glow until his knuckles cracked.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Call came to Baree like a thief entering
-slowly and cautiously into a forbidden place. He
-did not understand it at first. It made him nervous
-and uneasy, so restless that Nepeese frequently heard
-him whine softly in his sleep. He was waiting for
-something. What was it? Pierrot knew, and smiled
-in his inscrutable way.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And then it came. It was night, a glorious night
-filled with moon and stars, under which the earth was
-whitening with a film of frost, when they heard the
-first hunt-call of the wolves. Now and then during
-the summer there had come the lone wolf-howl, but
-this was the tonguing of the pack; and as it floated
-through the vast silence and mystery of the night, a
-song of savagery that had come with each Red Moon
-down through unending ages, Pierrot knew that at last
-had come that for which Baree had been waiting.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In an instant Baree had sensed it. His muscles
-grew taut as pieces of stretched rope as he stood up
-in the moonlight, facing the direction from which
-floated the mystery and thrill of the sound. They
-could hear him whining softly; and Pierrot, bending
-down so that he caught the light of the night properly,
-could see him trembling.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is <i>Mee-Koo</i>!” he said in a whisper to Nepeese.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>That was it, the call of the blood that was running
-swift in Baree’s veins—not alone the call of his species,
-but the call of Kazan and Gray Wolf and of his forbears
-for generations unnumbered. It was the voice
-of his people. So Pierrot had whispered, and he was
-right. In the golden night the Willow was waiting,
-for it was she who had gambled most, and it was she
-who must lose or win. She uttered no sound, replied
-not to the low voice of Pierrot, but held her breath
-and watched Baree as he slowly faded away, step
-by step, in the shadows. In a few moments more he
-was gone. It was then that she stood straight, and
-flung back her head, with eyes that glowed in rivalry
-with the stars.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Baree!” she called. “Baree! Baree! Baree!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He must have been near the edge of the forest, for
-she had drawn a slow, waiting breath or two before
-he was back at her side. But he had come, straight
-as an arrow, and he whined up into her face. Nepeese
-put her hands to his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You are right, <i>mon père</i>,” she said. “He will
-go to the wolves, but he will come back. He will
-never leave me for long.” With one hand still on
-Baree’s head, she pointed with the other into the
-pitlike blackness of the forest. “Go to them,
-Baree!” she whispered. “But you must come back.
-You must. <i>Cheamao!</i>”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With Pierrot she went into the cabin; the door
-closed behind them, and Baree was alone. There
-was a long silence. In it he could hear the soft night
-sounds: the clinking of the chains to which the dogs
-were fastened, the restless movement of their bodies,
-the throbbing whir of a pair of wings, the breath of
-the night itself. For to him this night, even in its
-stillness, seemed alive. Again he went into it, and
-close to the forest once more he stopped to listen.
-The wind had turned, and on it rode the wailing,
-blood-thrilling cry of the pack. Far off to the west
-a lone wolf turned his muzzle to the sky and answered
-that gathering-call of his clan; and then out of
-the east came a voice, so far beyond the cabin that
-it was like an echo dying away in the vastness of the
-night.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A choking note gathered in Baree’s throat. He
-threw up his head. Straight above him was the Red
-Moon, inviting him to the thrill and mystery of the
-open world. The sound grew in his throat, and
-slowly it rose in volume until his answer was rising
-to the stars. In their cabin Pierrot and the Willow
-heard it. Pierrot shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He is gone,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Oui</i>, he is gone, <i>mon père</i>,” replied Nepeese,
-peering through the window.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XVIII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>No longer, as in the days of old, did the
-darkness of the forests hold a fear for Baree.
-This night his hunt-cry had risen to the stars
-and the moon, and in that cry he had, for the first
-time, sent forth his defiance of night and space, his
-warning to all the wild, and his acceptance of the
-Brotherhood. In that cry, and the answers that
-came back to him, he sensed a new power—the final
-triumph of nature in impinging on him the fact that
-the forests and the creatures they held were no longer
-to be feared, but that all things feared him. Off there,
-beyond the pale of the cabin and the influence of
-Nepeese, were all the things that the wolf-blood in
-him found now most desirable: companionship of his
-kind, the lure of adventure, the red, sweet blood of
-the chase—and matehood. This last, after all, was
-the dominant mystery that was urging him, and yet
-least of all did he understand it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He ran straight into the darkness to the north and
-west, slinking low under the bushes, his tail drooping,
-his ears aslant—the wolf as the wolf runs on the night
-trail. The pack had swung due north, and was
-travelling faster than he, so that at the end of half an
-hour he could no longer hear it. But the lone wolf-howl
-to the west was nearer, and three times Baree
-gave answer to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>At the end of an hour he heard the pack again,
-swinging southward. Pierrot would easily have
-understood. Their quarry had found safety beyond
-water, or in a lake, and the <i>muhekuns</i> were on a fresh
-trail. By this time not more than a quarter of a mile
-of the forest separated Baree from the lone wolf, but
-the lone wolf was also an old wolf, and with the directness
-and precision of long experience, he swerved in
-the direction of the hunters, compassing his trail so
-that he was heading for a point half or three quarters
-of a mile in advance of the pack.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This was a trick of the Brotherhood which Baree
-had yet to learn; and the result of his ignorance, and
-lack of skill, was that twice within the next half-hour
-he found himself near to the pack without being able
-to join it. Then came a long and final silence. The
-pack had pulled down its kill, and in their feasting
-they made no sound.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The rest of the night Baree wandered alone, or at
-least until the moon was well on the wane. He was
-a long way from the cabin, and his trail had been an
-uncertain and twisting one, but he was no longer
-possessed with the discomforting sensation of being
-lost. The last two or three months had been developing
-strongly in him the sense of orientation, that
-“sixth sense” which guides the pigeon unerringly on
-its way and takes a bear straight as a bird might fly
-to its last year’s denning-place.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree had not forgotten Nepeese. A dozen times
-he turned his head back and whined, and always he
-picked out accurately the direction in which the cabin
-lay. But he did not turn back. As the night lengthened,
-his search for that mysterious something which
-he had not found continued. His hunger, even with
-the fading-out of the moon and the coming of the
-gray dawn, was not sufficiently keen to make him
-hunt for food.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was cold, and it seemed colder when the glow
-of the moon and stars died out. Under his padded
-feet, especially in the open spaces, was a thick white
-frost in which he left clearly at times the imprint of
-his toes and claws. He had travelled steadily for
-hours, a great many miles in all, and he was tired
-when the first light of the day came. And then there
-came the time when, with a sudden sharp click of his
-jaws, he stopped like a shot in his tracks.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>At last it had come—the meeting with that for
-which he had been seeking. It was in an open,
-lighted by the cold dawn—a tiny amphitheatre that
-lay on the side of a ridge, facing the east. With
-her head toward him, and waiting for him as he came
-out of the shadows, his scent strong in her keen nose,
-stood Maheegun, the young wolf. Baree had not
-smelled her, but he saw her directly he came out of
-the rim of young balsams that fringed the open. It
-was then that he stopped, and for a full minute neither
-of them moved a muscle or seemed to breathe.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was not a fortnight’s difference in their age
-and yet Maheegun was much the smaller of the two;
-her body was as long, but she was slimmer; she stood
-on slender legs that were almost like the legs of a fox,
-and the curve of her back was that of a slightly bent
-bow, a sign of swiftness almost equal to the wind.
-She stood poised for flight even as Baree advanced
-his first step toward her, and then very slowly her
-body relaxed, and in a direct ratio as he drew nearer
-her ears lost their alertness and dropped aslant.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree whined. His own ears were up, his head
-alert, his tail aloft and bushy. Cleverness, if not
-strategy, had already become a part of his masculine
-superiority, and he did not immediately press the
-affair. He was within five feet of Maheegun when
-he casually turned away from her and faced the
-east, where a faint pencilling of red and gold was
-heralding the day. For a few moments he sniffed
-and looked around and pointed the wind with much
-seriousness, as though impressing on his fair acquaintance—as
-many a two-legged animal has done
-before him—his tremendous importance in the world
-at large.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And Maheegun was properly impressed. Baree’s
-bluff worked as beautifully as the bluffs of the two-legged
-animals. He sniffed the air with such thrilling
-and suspicious zeal that Maheegun’s ears sprang
-alert, and she sniffed it with him; he turned his head
-from point to point so sharply and alertly that her
-feminine curiosity, if not anxiety, made her turn her
-own head in questioning conjunction; and when he
-whined, as though in the air he had caught a mystery
-which she could not possibly understand, a responsive
-note gathered in her throat, but smothered and low
-as a woman’s exclamation when she is not quite sure
-whether she should interrupt her lord or not. At
-this sound, which Baree’s sharp ears caught, he
-swung up to her with a light and mincing step, and in
-another moment they were smelling noses.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When the sun rose, half an hour later, it found them
-still in the small open on the side of the ridge,
-with a deep fringe of forest under them, and beyond
-that a wide, timbered plain which looked like a
-ghostly shroud in its mantle of frost. Up over this
-came the first red glow of the day, filling the open
-with a warmth that grew more and more comfortable
-as the sun crept higher.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Neither Baree nor Maheegun were inclined to
-move for a while, and for an hour or two they lay
-basking in a cup of the slope, looking down with
-questing and wide-awake eyes upon the wooded plain
-that stretched away under them like a great sea.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Maheegun, too, had sought the hunt-pack, and
-like Baree had failed to catch it. They were tired,
-a little discouraged for the time, and hungry—but
-still alive with the fine thrill of anticipation, and
-restlessly sensitive to the new and mysterious consciousness
-of companionship. Half a dozen times
-Baree got up and nosed about Maheegun as she lay
-in the sun, whining to her softly and touching her
-soft coat with his muzzle, but for a long time she
-paid little attention to him. At last she followed
-him. All that day they wandered and rested together.
-Once more the night came.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was without moon or stars. Gray masses of
-clouds swept slowly down out of the north and east,
-and in the treetops there was scarcely a whisper of
-wind as night gathered in. The snow began to fall
-at dusk, thickly, heavily, without a breath of sound.
-It was not cold, but it was still—so still that Baree
-and Maheegun travelled only a few yards at a time,
-and then stopped to listen. In this way all the
-night-prowlers of the forest were travelling, if they
-were moving at all. It was the first of the Big Snow.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>To the flesh-eating wild things of the forests,
-clawed and winged, the Big Snow was the beginning
-of the winter carnival of slaughter and feasting, of
-wild adventure in the long nights, of merciless warfare
-on the frozen trails. The days of breeding, of
-motherhood—the peace of spring and summer—were
-over; out of the sky came the wakening of the
-Northland, the call of all flesh-eating creatures to the
-long hunt, and in the first thrill of it living things
-were moving but little this night, and that watchfully
-and with suspicion. Youth made it all new to
-Baree and Maheegun; their blood ran swiftly; their
-feet fell softly; their ears were attuned to catch the
-slightest sounds.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In this first of the Big Snow they felt the exciting
-pulse of a new life. It lured them on. It invited
-them to adventure into the white mystery of the
-silent storm; and inspired by that restlessness of
-youth and its desires, they went on.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The snow grew deeper under their feet. In the
-open spaces they waded through it to their knees,
-and it continued to fall in a vast white cloud that
-descended steadily out of the sky. It was near midnight
-when it stopped. The clouds drifted away
-from under the stars and the moon, and for a long
-time Baree and Maheegun stood without moving,
-looking down from the bald crest of a ridge upon a
-wonderful world.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Never had they seen so far, except in the light of
-day. Under them was a plain. They could see its
-forests, lone trees that stood up like shadows out
-of the snow, a stream—still unfrozen—shimmering
-like glass with the flicker of firelight on it. Toward
-this stream Baree led the way. He no longer thought
-of Nepeese, and he whined with pent-up happiness
-as he stopped halfway down and turned to muzzle
-Maheegun. He wanted to roll in the snow and
-frisk about with his companion; he wanted to bark,
-to put up his head and howl as he had howled at
-the Red Moon back at the cabin.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Something held him from doing these things.
-Perhaps it was Maheegun’s demeanour. She accepted
-his attentions rigidly. Once or twice she
-had seemed almost frightened; twice Baree had
-heard the sharp clicking of her teeth. The previous
-night, and all through to-night’s storm, their companionship
-had grown more intimate, but now there
-was taking its place a mysterious aloofness on the
-part of Maheegun. Pierrot could have explained.
-With the white snow under and about him, and the
-luminous moon and stars above him, Baree, like the
-night, had undergone a transformation which even
-the sunlight of day had not made in him before.
-His coat was like polished jet. Every hair in his body
-glistened black. <i>Black!</i> That was it. And Nature
-was trying to tell Maheegun that of all the creatures
-hated by her kind, the creature which they feared
-and hated most was black. With her it was not
-experience, but instinct—telling her of the age-old
-feud between the gray wolf and the black bear. And
-Baree’s coat, in the moonlight and the snow, was
-blacker than Wakayoo’s had ever been in the fish-fattening
-days of May. Until they struck the broad
-openings of the plain, the young she-wolf had followed
-Baree without hesitation; now there was a
-gathering strangeness and indecision in her manner,
-and twice she stopped and would have let Baree go
-on without her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>An hour after they entered the plain there came
-suddenly out of the west the tonguing of the wolf-pack.
-It was not far distant, probably not more
-than a mile along the foot of the ridge, and the sharp,
-quick yapping that followed the first outburst was
-evidence that the long-fanged hunters had put up
-sudden game, a caribou or young moose, and were
-close at its heels. At the voice of her own people
-Maheegun laid her ears close to her head and was
-off like an arrow from a bow.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The unexpectedness of her movement and the
-swiftness of her flight put Baree well behind her in
-the race over the plain. She was running blindly,
-favoured by luck. For an interval of perhaps five
-minutes the pack were so near to their game that
-they made no sound, and the chase swung full into
-the face of Maheegun and Baree. The latter was
-not half a dozen lengths behind the young wolf when
-a crashing in the brush directly ahead stopped them
-so sharply that they tore up the snow with their
-braced forefeet and squat haunches. Ten seconds
-later a caribou burst through and flashed across an
-open not more than twenty yards from where they
-stood. They could hear its swift panting as it disappeared.
-And then came the pack.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>At sight of those swiftly moving gray bodies
-Baree’s heart leaped for an instant into his throat.
-He forgot Maheegun, and that she had run away
-from him. The moon and the stars went out of
-existence for him. He no longer sensed the chill
-of the snow under his feet. He was wolf—all wolf.
-With the warm scent of the caribou in his nostrils,
-and the passion to kill sweeping through him like
-fire, he darted after the pack.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Even at that, Maheegun was a bit ahead of him.
-He did not miss her; in the excitement of his first
-chase he no longer felt the desire to have her at his
-side. Very soon he found himself close to the flanks
-of one of the gray monsters of the pack; half a minute
-later a new hunter swept in from the bush behind
-him, and then a second, and after that a third. At
-times he was running shoulder to shoulder with his
-new companions; he heard the whining excitement
-in their throats; the snap of their jaws as they ran—and
-in the golden moonlight ahead of him the
-smash of the caribou as it plunged through thickets
-and over windfalls in its race for life.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was as if Baree had belonged to the pack always.
-He had joined it naturally, as other stray wolves had
-joined it from out of the bush; there had been no
-ostentation, no welcome such as Maheegun had
-given him in the open, and no hostility. He belonged
-with these slim, swift-footed outlaws of the
-old forests, and his own jaws snapped and his blood
-ran hot as the smell of the caribou grew heavier,
-and the sound of its crashing body nearer.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It seemed to him they were almost at its heel
-when they swept into an open plain, a stretch of
-barren without a tree or a shrub, brilliant in the
-light of the stars and moon. Across its unbroken
-carpet of snow sped the caribou a spare hundred
-yards ahead of the pack. Now the two leading
-hunters no longer followed directly in the trail, but
-shot out at an angle, one to the right and the other
-to the left of the pursued, and like well-trained soldiers
-the pack split in halves and spread out fan-shape
-in the final charge.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The two ends of the fan forged ahead and closed
-in, until the leaders were running almost abreast
-of the caribou, with fifty or sixty feet separating them
-from the pursued. Thus, adroitly and swiftly, with
-deadly precision, the pack had formed a horseshoe
-cordon of fangs from which there was but one course
-of flight—straight ahead. For the caribou to swerve
-half a degree to the right or left meant death. It
-was the duty of the leaders to draw in the ends of the
-Horseshoe now, until one or both of them could make
-the fatal lunge for the ham-strings. After that it
-would be a simple matter. The pack would close in
-over the caribou like an inundation.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree had found his place in the lower rim of the
-horseshoe, so that he was fairly well in the rear when
-the climax came. The plain made a sudden dip.
-Straight ahead was the gleam of water—water shimmering
-softly in the starglow, and the sight of it
-sent a final great spurt of blood through the caribou’s
-bursting heart. Forty seconds would tell the story—forty
-seconds of a last spurt for life, of a final tremendous
-effort to escape death. Baree felt the sudden
-thrill of these moments, and he forged ahead
-with the others in that lower rim of the horseshoe as
-one of the leading wolves made a lunge for the young
-bull’s ham-string. It was a clean miss. A second
-wolf darted in. And this one also missed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was no time for others to take their place.
-From the broken end of the horseshoe Baree heard
-the caribou’s heavy plunge into water. When Baree
-joined the pack, a maddened, mouth-frothing, snarling
-horde, Napamoos, the young bull, was well out
-in the river and swimming steadily for the opposite
-shore.</p>
-
-<div id='i174' class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/illus-174.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic001'>
-<p>When Baree joined the pack, a maddened, mouth-frothing, snarling horde, Napamoos, the young caribou bull, was well out in the river and swimming steadily for the opposite shore.</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was then that Baree found himself at the side
-of Maheegun. She was panting; her red tongue
-hung from her open jaws; but at his presence she
-brought her fangs together with a snap and slunk
-from him into the heart of the wind-run and disappointed
-pack. The wolves were in an ugly temper,
-but Baree did not sense the fact. Nepeese had
-trained him to take to water like an otter, and he
-did not understand why this narrow river should
-stop them as it had. He ran down to the water and
-stood belly deep in it, facing for an instant the horde of
-savage beasts above him, wondering why they did not
-follow. And he was black—<i>black</i>. He came among
-them again, and for the first time they noticed him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The restless movements of the waters ceased now.
-A new and wondering interest held them rigid.
-Fangs closed sharply. A little in the open Baree
-saw Maheegun, with a big gray wolf standing near
-her. He went to her again, and this time she remained
-with flattened ears until he was sniffing her
-neck. And then, with a vicious snarl, she snapped
-at him. Her teeth sank deep in the soft flesh of his
-shoulder, and at the unexpectedness and pain of her
-attack, he let out a yelp. The next instant the big
-gray wolf was at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Again caught unexpectedly, Baree went down
-with the wolf’s fangs at his throat. But in him was
-the blood of Kazan, the flesh and bone and sinew of
-Kazan, and for the first time in his life he fought as
-Kazan fought on that terrible day at the top of the
-Sun Rock. He was young; he had yet to learn the
-cleverness and the strategy of the veteran; but his
-jaws were like the iron clamps with which Pierrot
-set his bear traps, and in his heart was sudden and
-blinding rage, a desire to kill that rose above all
-sense of pain or fear.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>That fight, if it had been fair, would have been a
-victory for Baree, even in his youth and inexperience.
-In fairness the pack should have waited; it was
-a law of the pack to wait—until one was done for.
-But Baree was black; he was a stranger, an interloper,
-a creature whom they noticed now in a moment
-when their blood was hot with the rage and
-disappointment of killers who had missed their prey.
-A second wolf sprang in, striking Baree treacherously
-from the flank; and while he was in the snow, his
-jaws crushing the fore-leg of his first foe, the pack
-was on him <i>en masse</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Such an attack on the young caribou bull would
-have meant death in less than a minute. Every
-fang would have found its hold. Baree, by the fortunate
-circumstance that he was under his first
-two assailants and protected by their bodies, was
-saved from being torn instantly into pieces. He
-knew that he was fighting for his life. Over him the
-horde of beasts rolled and twisted and snarled; he
-felt the burning pain of teeth sinking into his flesh;
-he was smothered; a hundred knives seemed cutting
-him into pieces; yet no sound—not a whimper or a
-cry—came from him now in the horror and hopelessness
-of it all.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It would have ended in another half-minute had
-the struggle not been at the very edge of the bank.
-Undermined by the erosion of the spring floods, a
-section of this bank suddenly gave way, and with it
-went Baree and half the pack. In a flash Baree
-thought of the water and the escaping caribou. For
-a bare instant the cave-in had sent him free of the
-pack, and in that space he gave a single leap over
-the gray backs of his enemies into the deep water of
-the stream. Close behind him half a dozen jaws
-snapped shut on empty air. As it had saved the
-caribou, so this strip of water shimmering in the
-glow of the moon and stars had saved Baree.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The stream was not more than a hundred feet in
-width, but it cost Baree close to a losing struggle to
-get across it. Until he dragged himself out on the
-opposite shore, the extent of his injuries was not impressed
-upon him fully. One hind leg, for the time,
-was useless; his forward left shoulder was laid open
-to the bone; his head and body were torn and cut;
-and as he dragged himself slowly away from the
-stream, the trail he left in the snow was a red path of
-blood. It trickled from his panting jaws, between
-which his tongue was bleeding; it ran down his legs
-and flanks and belly, and it dripped from his ears,
-one of which was slit clean for two inches as though
-cut with a knife. His instincts were dazed, his
-perception of things clouded as if by a veil drawn close
-over his eyes. He did not hear, a few minutes later,
-the howling of the disappointed wolf-horde on the
-other side of the river, and he no longer sensed the
-existence of moon or stars. Half dead, he dragged
-himself on until by chance he came to a clump of
-dwarf spruce. Into this he struggled, and then he
-dropped exhausted.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>All that night and until noon the next day Baree
-lay without moving. The fever burned in his blood;
-it flamed high and swift toward death; then it ebbed
-slowly, and life conquered. At noon he came forth.
-He was weak, and he wobbled on his legs. His hind
-leg still dragged, and he was racked with pain. But
-it was a splendid day. The sun was warm; the snow
-was thawing; the sky was like a great blue sea; and
-the floods of life coursed warmly again through
-Baree’s veins. But now, for all time, his desires were
-changed, and his great quest at an end.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A red ferocity grew in Baree’s eyes as he snarled
-in the direction of last night’s fight with the wolves.
-They were no longer his people. They were no
-longer of his blood. Never again could the hunt-call
-lure him or the voice of the pack rouse the old longing.
-In him there was a thing new-born, an undying
-hatred for the wolf, a hatred that was to grow in him
-until it became like a disease in his vitals, a thing ever
-present and insistent, demanding vengeance on their
-kind. Last night he had gone to them a comrade.
-To-day he was an outcast. Cut and maimed, bearing
-with him scars for all time, he had learned his
-lesson of the wilderness. To-morrow, and the next
-day, and for days after that without number, he
-would remember the lesson well.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XIX</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>At the cabin on the Gray Loon, on the fourth
-night of Baree’s absence, Pierrot was smoking
-his pipe after a great supper of caribou tenderloin
-he had brought in from the trail, and Nepeese
-was listening to his tale of the remarkable shot he
-had made, when a sound at the door interrupted
-them. Nepeese opened it, and Baree came in. The
-cry of welcome that was on the girl’s lips died there
-instantly, and Pierrot stared as if he could not quite
-believe this creature that had returned was the wolf-dog.
-Three days and nights of hunger in which he
-could not hunt because of the leg that dragged had
-put on him the marks of starvation. Battle-scarred
-and covered with dried blood-clots that still clung
-tenaciously to his long hair, he was a sight that drew
-at last a long breath from Nepeese. A queer smile
-was growing in Pierrot’s face as he leaned forward in
-his chair; and then slowly rising to his feet, and looking
-closer, he said to Nepeese:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Ventre Saint Gris! Oui</i>, he has been to the pack,
-Nepeese, and the pack turned on him. It was not a
-two-wolf fight—<i>non!</i> It was the pack. He is cut
-and torn in fifty places. And—<i>mon Dieu</i>, he is
-alive!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In Pierrot’s voice there was growing wonder and
-amazement. He was incredulous, and yet he could
-not disbelieve what his eyes told him. What had
-happened was nothing short of a miracle, and for a
-time he uttered not a word more but remained staring
-in silence while Nepeese woke from her astonishment
-to give Baree doctoring and food. After he had
-eaten ravenously of cold boiled mush she began
-bathing his wounds in warm water, and after that
-she soothed them with bear-grease, talking to him all
-the time in her soft Cree. After the pain and hunger
-and treachery of his adventure, it was a wonderful
-homecoming for Baree. He slept that night at the
-foot of the Willow’s bed. The next morning it was
-the cool caress of his tongue on her hand that awakened
-her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With this day they resumed the comradeship interrupted
-by Baree’s temporary desertion. The attachment
-was greater than ever on Baree’s part. It was
-he who had run away from the Willow, who had
-deserted her at the call of the pack, and it seemed at
-times as though he sensed the depths of his perfidy
-and was striving to make amends. There was
-indubitably a very great change in him. He hung
-to Nepeese like a shadow. Instead of sleeping at
-night in the spruce shelter Pierrot made for him, he
-made himself a little hollow in the earth close to the
-cabin door. Pierrot thought that he understood,
-and Nepeese thought that she understood still more;
-but in reality the key to the mystery remained with
-Baree himself. He no longer played as he had played
-before he went off alone into the forest. He did not
-chase sticks, or run until he was winded, for the pure
-joy of running. His puppyishness was gone. In its
-place was a great worship and a rankling bitterness, a
-love for the girl and a hatred for the pack and all that
-it stood for. Whenever he heard the wolf-howl,
-it brought an angry snarl into his throat, and he
-would bare his fangs until even Pierrot would draw a
-little away from him. But a touch of the girl’s
-hand would quiet him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In a week or two the heavier snows came, and
-Pierrot began making his trips over the trap-lines.
-Nepeese had entered into a thrilling bargain with
-him this winter. Pierrot had taken her into partnership.
-Every fifth trap, every fifth deadfall, and every
-fifth poison-bait was to be her own, and what they
-caught or killed was to bring a bit nearer to realization
-a wonderful dream that was growing in the Willow’s
-soul. Pierrot had promised. If they had
-great luck that winter, they would go down together
-on the last snows to Nelson House and buy the little
-old organ that was for sale there; and if the organ was
-sold, they would work another winter, and get a new
-one.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This plan gave Nepeese an enthusiastic and tireless
-interest in the trap-line. With Pierrot it was more or
-less a fine bit of strategy. He would have sold his
-hand to give Nepeese the organ; he was determined
-that she should have it, whether the fifth traps and
-the fifth deadfalls and the fifth poison-baits caught
-the fur or not. The partnership meant nothing so
-far as that was concerned. But in another way it
-meant to Nepeese a business interest, the thrill of
-personal achievement. Pierrot impressed on her that
-it made a comrade and co-worker of her on the trail.
-That was his scheme: to keep her with him when he
-was away from the cabin. He knew that Bush
-McTaggart would come again to the Gray Loon,
-probably more than once during the winter. He had
-swift dogs, and it was a short journey. And when
-McTaggart came, Nepeese must not be at the cabin—alone.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pierrot’s trap-line swung into the north and west,
-covering in all a matter of fifty miles, with an average
-of two traps, one deadfall, and a poison-bait to each
-mile. It was a twisting line blazed along streams for
-mink, otter, and marten, piercing the deepest forests
-for fisher-cat and lynx and crossing lakes and storm-swept
-strips of barrens where poison-baits could be
-set for fox and wolf. Halfway over this line Pierrot
-had built a small log cabin, and at the end of it
-another, so that a day’s work meant twenty-five
-miles. This was easy for Pierrot, and not hard on
-Nepeese after the first few days.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>All through October and November they made the
-trips regularly, making the round every six days,
-which gave one day of rest at the cabin on the Gray
-Loon and another day in the cabin at the end of the
-trail. To Pierrot the winter’s work was business, the
-labour of his people for many generations back; to
-Nepeese and Baree it was a wild and joyous adventure
-that never for a day grew tiresome. Even Pierrot
-could not quite immunize himself against their enthusiasm.
-It was infectious, and he was happier
-than he had been since his sun had set that evening
-the princess mother died.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They were splendid months. Fur was thick, and
-it was steadily cold without bad storm. Nepeese
-not only carried a small pack on her shoulders in
-order that Pierrot’s load might be lighter, but she
-trained Baree to bear tiny shoulder-panniers which
-she manufactured. In these panniers Baree carried
-the bait. In at least a third of the total number
-of traps set there was always what Pierrot called
-trash—rabbits, owls, whisky-jacks, jays, and squirrels.
-These, with the skin or feathers stripped
-off, made up the bulk of the bait for the traps
-ahead.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>One afternoon early in December, as they were
-returning to the Gray Loon, Pierrot stopped suddenly
-a dozen paces ahead of Nepeese and stared at
-the snow. A strange snowshoe trail had joined their
-own and was heading toward the cabin. For half a
-minute Pierrot was silent and scarcely moved a
-muscle as he stared. The trail came straight out of
-the north—and off there was Lac Bain. Also they
-were the marks of large snowshoes, and the stride
-indicated was that of a tall man. Before Pierrot
-had spoken, Nepeese had guessed what they meant.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“M’sieu the Factor from Lac Bain!” she said.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree was sniffing suspiciously at the strange trail.
-They heard the low growl in his throat, and Pierrot’s
-shoulders stiffened.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes, the M’sieu,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Willow’s heart beat more swiftly as they went
-on. She was not afraid of McTaggart, not physically
-afraid; and yet something rose up in her breast and
-choked her at thought of his presence on the Gray Loon.
-Why was he there? It was not necessary for Pierrot to
-answer the question, even had she given voice to it.
-She knew. The Factor from Lac Bain had no business
-there—except to see her. The blood burned red
-in her cheeks as she thought again of that minute on
-the edge of the chasm when he had almost crushed
-her in his arms. Would he try <i>that</i> again?</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pierrot, deep in his own sombre thoughts, scarcely
-heard the strange laugh that came suddenly from her
-lips. Nepeese was listening to the growl that was
-again in Baree’s throat. It was a low but terrible
-sound. When half a mile from the cabin, she unslung
-the panniers from his shoulders and carried
-them herself. Ten minutes later they saw a man
-advancing to meet them.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was not McTaggart. Pierrot recognized him,
-and with an audible breath of relief waved his hand.
-It was DeBar, who trapped in the Barren Country
-north of Lac Bain. Pierrot knew him well. They
-had exchanged fox-poison. They were friends, and
-there was pleasure in the grip of their hands. DeBar
-stared then at Nepeese.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Tonnerre, she has grown into a woman!” he cried,
-and like a woman Nepeese looked at him straight
-with the colour deepening in her cheeks, as he bowed
-low with a courtesy that dated back a couple of centuries
-beyond the trap-line.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>DeBar lost no time in explaining his mission, and
-before they reached the cabin Pierrot and Nepeese
-knew why he had come. M’sieu, the Factor at Lac
-Bain, was leaving on a journey in five days, and he
-had sent DeBar as a special messenger to request
-Pierrot to come up to assist the clerk and the halfbreed
-storekeeper in his absence. Pierrot made no
-comment at first. But he was thinking. Why had
-Bush McTaggart sent for <i>him</i>? Why had he not
-chosen some one nearer? Not until a fire was
-crackling in the sheet-iron stove in the cabin, and
-Nepeese was busily engaged getting supper, did he
-voice these questions to the fox-hunter.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>DeBar shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He asked me, at first, if I could stay. But I
-have a wife with a bad lung, Pierrot. It was caught
-by frost last winter, and I dare not leave her long
-alone. He has great faith in you. Besides, you
-know all the trappers on the Company’s books at
-Lac Bain. So he sent for you, and begs you not to
-worry about your fur-lines, as he will pay you double
-what you would catch in the time you are at the
-Post.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And—Nepeese?” said Pierrot. “M’sieu expects
-me to bring her?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>From the stove the Willow bent her head to listen,
-and her heart leaped free again at DeBar’s answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He said nothing about that. But surely—it
-will be a great change for li’le m’selle.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pierrot nodded.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Possibly, <i>Netootam</i>.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They discussed the matter no more that night.
-But for hours Pierrot was still, thinking, and a hundred
-times he asked himself that same question:
-Why had McTaggart sent for <i>him</i>? He was not the
-only man well known to the trappers on the Company’s
-books. There was Wassoon, for instance,
-the halfbreed Scandinavian whose cabin was less
-than four hours’ journey from the post—or Baroche,
-the white-bearded old Frenchman who lived yet
-nearer and whose word was as good as the Bible.
-It must be, he told himself finally, that M’sieu had
-sent for <i>him</i> because he wanted to win over the father
-of Nepeese and gain the friendship of Nepeese herself.
-For this was undoubtedly a very great honour that
-the Factor was conferring on him. And yet, deep
-down in his heart, he was filled with suspicion.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When DeBar was about to leave the next morning,
-Pierrot said:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Tell M’sieu that I will leave for Lac Bain the day
-after to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>After DeBar had gone, he said to Nepeese:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And you shall remain here, <i>ma chérie</i>. I will
-not take you to Lac Bain. I have had a dream that
-M’sieu will not go on a journey, but that he has lied,
-and that he will be sick when I arrive at the post.
-And yet, if it should happen that you care to go——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Nepeese straightened suddenly, like a reed that has
-been caught by the wind.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<i>Non!</i>” she cried, so fiercely that Pierrot laughed,
-and rubbed his hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>So it happened that on the second day after the
-fox-hunter’s visit Pierrot left for Lac Bain, with
-Nepeese in the door waving him good-bye until he
-was out of sight.</p>
-
-<hr class='c007' />
-
-<p class='c001'>On the morning of this same day Bush McTaggart
-rose from his bed while it was still dark. The time
-had come. He had hesitated at murder—at the
-killing of Pierrot; and in his hesitation he had found
-a better way. There could be no escape for Nepeese.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was a wonderful scheme, so easy of accomplishment,
-so inevitable in its outcome. And all the time
-Pierrot would think he was away to the east on a
-mission!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He ate his breakfast before dawn, and was on the
-trail before it was yet light. Purposely he struck due
-east, so that in coming up from the south and west
-Pierrot would not strike his sledge tracks. For he
-had made up his mind now that Pierrot must never
-know and must never have a suspicion, even though
-it cost him so many more miles to travel that he would
-not reach the Gray Loon until the second day. It
-was better to be a day late, after all, as it was possible
-that something might have delayed Pierrot. So he
-made no effort to travel fast.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was a vast amount of brutal satisfaction to
-McTaggart in anticipating what was about to happen,
-and he revelled in it to the full. There was no
-chance for disappointment. He was positive that
-Nepeese would not accompany her father to Lac
-Bain. She would be at the cabin on the Gray Loon—alone.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This aloneness was to Nepeese burdened with no
-thought of danger. There were times, now, when the
-thought of being alone was pleasant to her, when she
-wanted to dream by herself, when she visioned
-things into the mysteries of which she would not
-admit even Pierrot. She was growing into womanhood—just
-the sweet, closed bud of womanhood
-as yet—still a girl with the soft velvet of girlhood in
-her eyes, yet with the mystery of woman stirring
-gently in her soul, as if the Great Hand were hesitating
-between awakening her and letting her sleep a
-little longer. At these times, when the opportunity
-came to steal hours by herself, she would put on the
-red dress and do up her wonderful hair as she saw it
-in the pictures of the magazines Pierrot had sent up
-twice a year from Nelson House.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>On the second day of Pierrot’s absence Nepeese
-dressed herself like this, but to-day she let her hair
-cascade in a shining glory about her, and about her
-forehead bound a circlet of red ribbon. She was not
-yet done. To-day she had marvellous designs.
-On the wall close to her mirror she had tacked a
-large page from a woman’s magazine, and on this
-page was a lovely vision of curls. Fifteen hundred
-miles north of the sunny California studio in which the
-picture had been taken, Nepeese, with pouted red
-lips and puckered forehead, was fighting to master
-the mystery of the other girl’s curls!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She was looking into her mirror, her face flushed
-and her eyes aglow in the excitement of the struggle
-to fashion one of the coveted ringlets from a tress
-that fell away below her hips, when the door opened
-behind her, and Bush McTaggart walked in.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XX</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>The Willow’s back was toward the door
-when the Factor from Lac Bain entered
-the cabin, and for a few startled seconds she
-did not turn. Her first thought was of Pierrot—for
-some reason he had returned. But even as this
-thought came to her, she heard in Baree’s throat a
-snarl that brought her suddenly to her feet, facing
-the door.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>McTaggart had not entered unprepared. He had
-left his pack, his gun, and his heavy coat outside.
-He was standing with his back against the door;
-and at Nepeese—in her wonderful dress and flowing
-hair—he was staring as if stunned for a space at
-what he saw. Fate, or accident, was playing against
-the Willow now. If there had been a spark of
-slumbering chivalry, of mercy, even, in Bush McTaggart’s
-soul, it was extinguished by what he saw.
-Never had Nepeese looked more beautiful, not even
-on that day when MacDonald the map-maker had
-taken her picture. The sun, flooding through the
-window, lighted up her marvellous hair; her flushed
-face was framed in its lustrous darkness like a tinted
-cameo. He had dreamed, but he had pictured nothing
-like this woman who stood before him now, her
-eyes widening with fear and the flush leaving her
-face even as he looked at her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was not a long interval in which their eyes met
-in that terrible silence—terrible to the girl. Words
-were unnecessary. At last she understood—understood
-what her peril had been that day at the edge
-of the chasm and in the forest, when fearlessly she
-had played with the menace that was confronting
-her now.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A breath that was like a sob broke from her lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“M’sieu!” she tried to say. But it was only a
-gasp—an effort. She seemed choking.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Plainly she heard the click of the iron bolt as it
-locked the door. McTaggart advanced a step.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Only a single step McTaggart advanced. On the
-floor Baree had remained like a carven thing. He
-had not moved. He had not made a sound but
-that one warning snarl—until McTaggart took the
-step. And then, like a flash, he was up and in front
-of Nepeese, every hair of his body on end; and at
-the fury in his growl McTaggart lunged back against
-the barred door. A word from Nepeese in that
-moment, and it would have been over. But an instant
-was lost—an instant before her cry came.
-In that moment man’s hand and brain worked swifter
-than brute understanding; and as Baree launched
-himself at the Factor’s throat, there came a flash and
-a deafening explosion almost in the Willow’s eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was a chance shot, a shot from the hip with
-McTaggart’s automatic. Baree fell short. He struck
-the floor with a thud and rolled against the log wall.
-There was not a kick or a quiver left in his body.
-McTaggart laughed nervously as he shoved his pistol
-back in its holster. He knew that only a brain shot
-could have done that.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With her back against the farther wall, Nepeese
-was waiting. McTaggart could hear her panting
-breath. He advanced halfway to her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nepeese, I have come to make you my wife,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She did not answer. He could see that her breath
-was choking her. She raised a hand to her throat.
-He took two more steps, and stopped. He had
-never seen such eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I have come to make you my wife, Nepeese.
-To-morrow you will go on to Nelson House with me
-and then back to Lac Bain—forever.” He added the
-last word as an afterthought. “Forever,” he repeated.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He did not mince words. His courage and his
-determination rose as he saw her body droop a little
-against the wall. She was powerless. There was
-no escape. Pierrot was gone. Baree was dead.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He had thought that no living creature could move
-as swiftly as the Willow when his arms reached out
-for her. She made no sound as she darted under
-one of his outstretched arms. He made a lunge, a
-brutal grab, and his fingers caught a bit of hair. He
-heard the snap of it as she tore herself free and flew
-to the door. She had thrown back the bolt when he
-caught her and his arms closed about her. He
-dragged her back, and now she cried out—cried
-out in her despair for Pierrot, for Baree, for some
-miracle of God that might save her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And Nepeese fought. She twisted in his arms
-until she was facing him. She could no longer see.
-She was smothered in her hair. It covered her
-face and breast and body, suffocating her, entangling
-her hands and arms—and still she fought. In
-the struggle McTaggart stumbled over the body of
-Baree, and they went down. Nepeese was up fully
-five seconds ahead of the man. She could have
-reached the door. But again it was her hair. She
-paused to fling back the thick masses of it so that
-she could see, and McTaggart was at the door ahead
-of her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He did not lock it again, but stood facing her.
-His face was scratched and bleeding. He was no
-longer a man but a devil. Nepeese was broken,
-panting—a low sobbing came with her breath.
-She bent down, and picked up a piece of firewood.
-McTaggart could see that her strength was almost
-gone.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She clutched the stick as he approached her again.
-But McTaggart had lost all thought of fear or caution.
-He sprang upon her like an animal. The
-stick of firewood fell. And again fate played against
-the girl. In her terror and hopelessness she had
-caught up the first stick her hand had touched—a
-light one. With her last strength she struck at
-McTaggart with it, and as it fell on his head, he
-staggered back. But it did not make him lose his
-hold.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Vainly she was fighting now, not to strike him
-or to escape, but to get her breath. She tried to
-cry out again, but this time no sound came from
-between her gasping lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Again he laughed, and as he laughed, he heard the
-door open. Was it the wind? He turned, still
-holding her in his arms.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In the open door stood Pierrot.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XXI</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>During that terrible space which followed
-an eternity of time rolled slowly through
-the little cabin on the Gray Loon—that
-eternity which lies somewhere between life and death
-and which is sometimes meted out to a human life
-in seconds instead of eons.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In those seconds Pierrot did not move from where
-he stood in the doorway. McTaggart, huddled over
-with the weight in his arms, and staring at Pierrot,
-did not move. But the Willow’s eyes were opening.
-And a convulsive quiver ran through the body of
-Baree, where he lay near the wall. There was not
-the sound of a breath. And then, in that silence,
-a great gasping sob came from Nepeese.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then Pierrot stirred to life. Like McTaggart,
-he had left his coat and mittens outside. He spoke,
-and his voice was not like Pierrot’s. It was a strange
-voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The great God has sent me back in time, m’sieu,”
-he said. “I, too, travelled by way of the east, and
-saw your trail where it turned this way.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>No, that was not like Pierrot’s voice! A chill
-ran through McTaggart now, and slowly he let go of
-Nepeese. She fell to the floor. Slowly he straightened.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Is it not true, m’sieu?” said Pierrot again. “I
-have come in time?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>What power was it—what great fear, perhaps, that
-made McTaggart nod his head, that made his thick
-lips form huskily the words, “Yes—in time.” And
-yet it was not fear. It was something greater,
-something more all-powerful than that. And Pierrot
-said, in that same strange voice:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I thank the great God!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The eyes of madman met the eyes of madman now.
-Between them was death. Both saw it. Both
-thought that they saw the direction in which its
-bony finger pointed. Both were certain. McTaggart’s
-hand did not go to the pistol in his holster,
-and Pierrot did not touch the knife in his belt.
-When they came together, it was throat to throat—two
-beasts now, instead of one, for Pierrot had
-in him the fury and strength of the wolf, the cat, and
-the panther.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>McTaggart was the bigger and heavier man, a
-giant in strength; yet in the face of Pierrot’s fury
-he lurched back over the table and went down with
-a crash. Many times in his life he had fought, but
-he had never felt a grip at his throat like the grip of
-Pierrot’s hands. They almost crushed the life from
-him at once. His neck snapped—a little more, and
-it would have broken. He struck out blindly from
-his back, and twisted himself to throw off the weight
-of the halfbreed’s body. But Pierrot was fastened
-there, as Sekoosew the ermine had fastened itself at
-the jugular of the partridge, and Bush McTaggart’s
-jaws slowly swung open, and his face began to turn
-from red to purple.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Cold air rushing through the door, Pierrot’s voice
-and the sound of battle roused Nepeese quickly to
-consciousness and the power to raise herself from
-the floor. She had fallen near Baree, and as she
-lifted her head, her eyes rested for a moment on
-the dog before they went to the fighting men.
-Baree was alive! His body was twitching; his eyes
-were open; he made an effort to raise his head as she
-was looking at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then she dragged herself to her knees and turned
-to the men, and Pierrot, even in the blood-red fury
-of his desire to kill, must have heard the sharp cry
-of joy that came from her when she saw that it was
-the Factor from Lac Bain who was underneath.
-With a tremendous effort she staggered to her feet,
-and for a few moments she stood swaying unsteadily
-as her brain and her body readjusted themselves.
-Even as she looked down upon the blackening face
-from which Pierrot’s fingers were choking the life,
-Bush McTaggart’s hand was groping blindly for his
-pistol. He found it. Unseen by Pierrot, he dragged
-it from its holster. It was one of the black devils
-of chance that favoured him again, for in his excitement
-he had not snapped the safety shut after shooting
-Baree. Now he had only strength left to pull
-the trigger. Twice his forefinger closed. Twice there
-came deadened explosion close to Pierrot’s body.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In Pierrot’s face Nepeese saw what had happened.
-Her heart died in her breast as she looked upon the
-swift and terrible change wrought by sudden death.
-Slowly Pierrot straightened. His eyes were wide
-for a moment—wide and staring. He made no
-sound. She could not see his lips move. And then
-he fell toward her, so that McTaggart’s body was
-free. Blindly and with an agony that gave no evidence
-in cry or word she flung herself down beside
-him. He was dead.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>How long Nepeese lay there, how long she waited
-for Pierrot to move, to open his eyes, to breathe,
-she would never know. In that time McTaggart
-rose to his feet and stood leaning against the wall,
-the pistol in his hand, his brain clearing itself as he
-saw his final triumph. His work did not frighten
-him. Even in that tragic moment as he stood against
-the wall, his defense—if it ever came to a defense—framed
-itself in his mind. Pierrot had murderously
-assaulted him—without cause. In self-defense he
-had killed him. Was he not the Factor of Lac Bain?
-Would not the Company and the law believe his
-word before that of this girl? His brain leaped with
-the old exultation. It would never come to that—to
-a betrayal of this struggle and death in the cabin—after
-he had finished with her! She would not be
-known for all time as <i>La Bête Noir</i>. No, they would
-bury Pierrot, and she would return to Lac Bain with
-him. If she had been helpless before, she was ten
-times more helpless now. She would never tell of
-what had happened in the cabin.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He forgot the presence of death as he looked at
-her, bowed over her father so that her hair covered
-him like a silken shroud. He replaced the pistol in
-its holster and drew a deep breath into his lungs.
-He was still a little unsteady on his feet, but his face
-was again the face of a devil. He took a step, and
-it was then there came a sound to rouse the girl.
-In the shadow of the farther wall Baree had struggled
-to his haunches, and now he growled.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Slowly Nepeese lifted her head. A power which
-she could not resist drew her eyes up until she was
-looking into the face of Bush McTaggart. She
-had almost lost consciousness of his presence; her
-senses were cold and deadened—it was as if her own
-heart had stopped beating along with Pierrot’s.
-What she saw in the Factor’s face dragged her out
-of the numbness of her grief back to the abyss of
-her own peril. He was standing over her. In his
-face there was no pity, nothing of horror at what he
-had done—only an insane exultation as he looked—not
-at Pierrot’s dead body, but at her. He put out a
-hand, and it rested on her head. She felt his thick
-fingers crumpling her hair, and his eyes blazed like
-embers of fire behind watery films. She struggled to
-rise, but with his hands at her hair he held her down.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Great God!” she breathed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She uttered no other words, no plea for mercy, no
-other sound but a dry, hopeless sob. In that moment
-neither of them heard or saw Baree. Twice in
-crossing the cabin his hind-quarters had sagged to
-the floor. Now he was close to McTaggart. He
-wanted to give a single lunge to the man-brute’s
-back and snap his thick neck as he would have
-broken a caribou-bone. But he had no strength.
-He was still partially paralyzed from his fore-shoulder
-back. But his jaws were like iron, and they closed
-savagely on McTaggart’s leg.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With a yell of pain the Factor released his hold
-on the Willow, and she staggered to her feet. For a
-precious half-minute she was free, and as the Factor
-kicked and struck to loose Baree’s hold, she ran to
-the cabin door and out into the day. The cold air
-struck her face; it filled her lungs with new strength;
-and without thought of where hope might lie she
-ran through the snow into the forest.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>McTaggart appeared at the door just in time to
-see her disappear. His leg was torn where Baree
-had fastened his fangs, but he felt no pain as he ran
-in pursuit of the girl. She could not go far. An
-exultant cry, inhuman as the cry of a beast, came in a
-great breath from his gaping mouth as he saw that
-she was staggering weakly as she fled. He was
-halfway to the edge of the forest when Baree dragged
-himself over the threshold. His jaws were bleeding
-where McTaggart had kicked him again and again
-before his fangs gave way. Halfway between his
-ears was a seared spot, as if a red-hot poker had been
-laid there for an instant. This was where McTaggart’s
-bullet had gone. A quarter of an inch deeper,
-and it would have meant death. As it was, it had
-been like the blow of a heavy club, paralyzing his
-senses and sending him limp and unconscious against
-the wall. He could move on his feet now without
-falling, and slowly he followed in the tracks of the
-man and the girl.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>As she ran, Nepeese’s mind became all at once
-clear and reasoning. She turned into the narrow
-trail over which McTaggart had followed her once
-before, but just before reaching the chasm, she swung
-sharply to the right. She could see McTaggart.
-He was not running fast, but was gaining steadily, as
-if enjoying the sight of her helplessness, as he had
-enjoyed it in another way on that other day. Two
-hundred yards below the deep pool into which she
-had pushed the Factor—just beyond the shallows
-out of which he had dragged himself to safety—was
-the beginning of Blue Feather’s Gorge. An
-appalling thing was shaping itself in her mind as
-she ran to it—a thing that with each gasping breath
-she drew became more and more a great and glorious
-hope. At last she reached it and looked down.
-And as she looked, there whispered up out of her
-soul and trembled on her lips the swan-song of her
-mother’s people.</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Our fathers—come!</div>
- <div class='line'>Come from out of the valley.</div>
- <div class='line'>Guide us—for to-day we die,</div>
- <div class='line'>And the winds whisper of death!</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'>She had raised her arms. Against the white wilderness
-beyond the chasm she stood tall and slim. Fifty
-yards behind her the Factor from Lac Bain stopped
-suddenly in his tracks. “Ah,” he mumbled. “Is
-she not wonderful!” And behind McTaggart, coming
-faster and faster, was Baree.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Again the Willow looked down. She was at the
-edge, for she had no fear in this hour. Many times
-she had clung to Pierrot’s hand as she looked over.
-Down there no one could fall and live. Fifty feet
-below her the water which never froze was smashing
-itself into froth among the rocks. It was deep and
-black and terrible, for between the narrow rock
-walls the sun did not reach it. The roar of it filled
-the Willow’s ears.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She turned and faced McTaggart.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Even then he did not guess, but came toward her
-again, his arms stretched out ahead of him. Fifty
-yards! It was not much, and shortening swiftly.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Once more the Willow’s lips moved. After all,
-it is the mother soul that gives us faith to meet
-eternity—and it was to the spirit of her mother that
-the Willow called in the hour of death. With the call
-on her lips she plunged into the abyss, her wind-whipped
-hair clinging to her in a glistening shroud.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XXII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>A moment later the Factor from Lac Bain
-stood at the edge of the chasm. His voice
-had called out in a hoarse bellow—a wild
-cry of disbelief and horror that had formed the
-Willow’s name as she disappeared. He looked
-down, clutching his huge red hands and staring in
-ghastly suspense at the boiling water and black rocks
-far below. There was nothing there now—no sign
-of her, no last flash of her pale face and streaming hair
-in the white foam. And she had done <i>that</i>—to save
-herself from him!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The soul of the man-beast turned sick within him,
-so sick that he staggered back, his vision blinded and
-his legs tottering under him. He had killed Pierrot,
-and it had been a triumph; all his life he had played
-the part of the brute with a stoicism and cruelty
-that had known no shock—nothing like this that overwhelmed
-him now, numbing him to the marrow of
-his bones until he stood like one paralyzed. He
-did not see Baree. He did not hear the dog’s whining
-cries at the edge of the chasm. For a few moments
-the world turned black for him; and then,
-dragging himself out of his stupor, he ran frantically
-along the edge of the gorge, looking down wherever
-his eyes could reach the water, striving for a glimpse
-of her. At last it grew too deep. There was no
-hope. She was gone—and she had faced <i>that</i> to
-escape him!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He mumbled that fact over and over again, stupidly,
-thickly, as though his brain could grasp nothing
-beyond it. She was dead. And Pierrot was
-dead. And he, in a few minutes, had accomplished
-it all.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He turned back toward the cabin—not by the
-trail over which he had pursued Nepeese, but straight
-through the thick bush. Great flakes of snow had
-begun to fall. He looked at the sky, where banks
-of dark clouds were rolling up from the south and
-east. The sun went out. Soon there would be a
-storm—a heavy snowstorm. The big flakes falling
-on his naked hands and face set his mind to work.
-It was lucky for him, this storm. It would cover
-everything—the fresh trails, even the grave he would
-dig for Pierrot.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It does not take such a man as the Factor long to
-recover from a moral concussion. By the time he
-came in sight of the cabin his mind was again at
-work on physical things—on the necessities of the
-situation. The appalling thing, after all, was not
-that both Pierrot and Nepeese were dead, but that
-his dream was shattered. It was not that Nepeese
-was dead, but that he had lost her. This was his
-vital disappointment. The other thing—his crime—it
-was easy to cover.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was not sentiment that made him dig Pierrot’s
-grave close to the princess mother’s under the tall
-spruce. It was not sentiment that made him dig
-the grave at all, but caution. He buried Pierrot
-decently. Then he poured Pierrot’s stock of kerosene
-where it would be most effective and touched a
-match to it. He stood in the edge of the forest until
-the cabin was a mass of flames. The snow was falling
-thickly. The freshly made grave was a white
-mound, and the trails were filling. For the physical
-things he had done there was no fear in Bush McTaggart’s
-heart as he turned back toward Lac Bain.
-No one would ever look into the grave of Pierrot
-du Quesne. And there was no one to betray him
-if such a miracle happened. But of one thing his
-black soul would never be able to free itself. Always
-he would see the pale, triumphant face of the
-Willow as she stood facing him in that moment of
-her glory when, even as she was choosing death
-rather than him, he had cried to himself: “Ah!
-Is she not wonderful!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>As Bush McTaggart had forgotten Baree, so Baree
-had forgotten the Factor from Lac Bain. When
-McTaggart had run along the edge of the chasm,
-Baree had squatted himself in the foot-beaten plot
-of snow where Nepeese had last stood, his body
-stiffened and his forefeet braced as he looked down.
-He had seen her take the leap. Many times that
-summer he had followed her in her daring dives into
-the deep, quiet water of the pool. But this was a
-tremendous distance. She had never dived into a
-place like that. He could see the black heads of the
-rocks, appearing and disappearing in the whirling
-foam like the heads of monsters at play; the roar of
-the water filled him with dread; his eyes caught the
-swift rush of crumbled ice between the rock walls.
-And she had gone down there!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He had a great desire to follow her, to jump in,
-as he had always jumped in after her. She was
-surely down there, even though he could not see
-her. Probably she was playing among the rocks
-and hiding herself in the white froth and wondering
-why he didn’t come. But he hesitated—hesitated
-with his head and neck over the abyss, and his forefeet
-giving way a little in the snow. With an effort
-he dragged himself back and whined. He caught
-the fresh scent of McTaggart’s moccasins in the
-snow, and the whine changed slowly into a long snarl.
-He looked over again. Still he could not see her.
-He barked—the short, sharp signal with which he
-always called her. There was no answer. Again
-and again he barked, and always there was nothing
-but the roar of the water that came back to him.
-Then for a few moments he stood back, silent and
-listening, his body shivering with the strange dread
-that was possessing him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The snow was falling now, and McTaggart had
-returned to the cabin. After a little Baree followed
-in the trail he had made along the edge of the chasm,
-and wherever McTaggart had stopped to peer over,
-Baree paused also. For a space his hatred of the
-man was burned up in his desire to join the Willow,
-and he continued along the gorge until, a quarter
-of a mile beyond where the Factor had last looked
-into it, he came to the narrow trail down which he
-and Nepeese had many time adventured in quest of
-rock-violets. The twisting path that led down the
-face of the cliff was filled with snow now, but Baree
-cleared his way through it until at last he stood
-at the edge of the unfrozen torrent. Nepeese was
-not here. He whined, and barked again, but this
-time there was in his signal to her an uneasy repression,
-a whimpering note which told that he
-did not expect a reply. For five minutes after that
-he sat on his haunches in the snow, stolid as a rock.
-What it was that came down out of the dark mystery
-and tumult of the chasm to him, what spirit-whispers
-of nature that told him the truth, it is beyond the
-power of reason to explain. But he listened, and he
-looked; and his muscles twitched as the truth grew
-in him; and at last he raised his head slowly until
-his black muzzle pointed to the white storm in the
-sky, and out of his throat there went forth the
-quavering, long-drawn howl of the husky who
-mourns outside the tepee of a master who is newly
-dead.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>On the trail, heading for Lac Bain, Bush McTaggart
-heard that cry and shivered.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was the smell of smoke, thickening in the air
-until it stung his nostrils, that drew Baree at last
-away from the chasm and back to the cabin. There
-was not much left when he came to the clearing.
-Where the cabin had been was a red-hot, smouldering
-mass. For a long time he sat watching it, still waiting
-and still listening. He no longer felt the effect
-of the bullet that had stunned him, but his senses
-were undergoing another change now, as strange
-and unreal as their struggle against that darkness
-of near-death in the cabin. In a space that had
-not covered more than an hour the world had
-twisted itself grotesquely for Baree. That long
-ago the Willow was sitting before her little mirror
-in the cabin, talking to him and laughing in her
-happiness, while he lay in vast contentment on the
-floor. And now there was no cabin, no Nepeese,
-no Pierrot. Quietly he struggled to comprehend.
-It was some time before he moved from under the
-thick balsams, for already a deep and growing suspicion
-began to guide his movements. He did not
-go nearer to the smouldering mass of the cabin, but
-slinking low, made his way about the circle of the
-open to the dog-corral. This took him under the
-tall spruce. For a full minute he paused here,
-sniffing at the freshly made mound under its white
-mantle of snow. When he went on, he slunk still
-lower, and his ears were flat against his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The dog-corral was open and empty. McTaggart
-had seen to that. Again Baree squatted back on
-his haunches and sent forth the death-howl. This
-time it was for Pierrot. In it there was a different
-note from that of the howl he had sent forth from
-the chasm: it was positive, certain. In the chasm
-his cry had been tempered with doubt—a questioning
-hope, something that was so almost human that
-McTaggart had shivered on the trail. But Baree
-knew what lay in that freshly dug snow-covered grave.
-A scant three feet of earth could not hide its secret
-from him. There was death—definite and unequivocal.
-But for Nepeese he was still hoping and
-seeking.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Until noon he did not go far from the cabin, but
-only once did he actually approach and sniff about
-the black pile of steaming timbers. Again and
-again he circled the edge of the clearing, keeping
-just within the bush and timber, sniffing the air and
-listening. Twice he went back to the chasm. Late
-in the afternoon there came to him a sudden impulse
-that carried him swiftly through the forest.
-He did not run openly now; caution, suspicion, and
-fear had roused in him afresh the instincts of the
-wolf. With his ears flattened against the side
-of his head, his tail drooping until the tip of it
-dragged the snow and his back sagging in the curious,
-evasive gait of the wolf, he scarcely made himself
-distinguishable from the shadows of the spruce and
-balsams.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was no faltering in the trail Baree made;
-it was straight as a rope might have been drawn
-through the forest, and it brought him, early in the
-dusk, to the open spot where Nepeese had fled with
-him that day she had pushed McTaggart over the
-edge of the precipice into the pool. In the place
-of the balsam shelter of that day there was now a
-water-tight birch-bark tepee which Pierrot had
-helped the Willow to make during the summer.
-Baree went straight to it and thrust in his head
-with a low and expectant whine.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was no answer. It was dark and cold in
-the tepee. He could make out indistinctly the
-two blankets that were always in it, the row of big
-tin boxes in which Nepeese kept their stores, and
-the stove which Pierrot had improvised out of
-scraps of iron and heavy tin. But Nepeese was
-not there. And there was no sign of her outside.
-The snow was unbroken except by his own trail.
-It was dark when he returned to the burned cabin.
-All that night he hung about the deserted dog-corral,
-and all through the night the snow fell
-steadily, so that by dawn he sank into it to his
-shoulders when he moved out into the clearing.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But with day the sky had cleared. The sun came
-up, and the world was almost too dazzling for the
-eyes. It warmed Baree’s blood with new hope
-and expectation. His brain struggled even more
-eagerly than yesterday to comprehend. Surely the
-Willow would be returning soon! He would hear
-her voice. She would appear suddenly out of the
-forest. He would receive some signal from her.
-One of these things, or all of them, must happen.
-He stopped sharply in his tracks at every sound,
-and sniffed the air from every point of the wind.
-He was travelling ceaselessly. His body made deep
-trails in the snow around and over the huge white
-mound where the cabin had stood; his tracks led
-from the corral to the tall spruce, and they were as
-numerous as the footprints of a wolf-pack for half a
-mile up and down the chasm.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>On the afternoon of this day the second big impulse
-came to him. It was not reason, and neither
-was it instinct alone. It was the struggle halfway
-between, the brute mind fighting at its best with
-the mystery of an intangible thing—something
-that could not be seen by the eye or heard by the
-ear. Nepeese was not in the cabin, because there
-was no cabin. She was not at the tepee. He could
-find no trace of her in the chasm. She was not with
-Pierrot under the big spruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Therefore, unreasoning but sure, he began to follow
-the old trap-line into the north and west.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XXIII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>No man has ever looked clearly into the
-mystery of death as it is impinged upon the
-senses of the northern dog. It comes to
-him, sometimes, with the wind; most frequently it
-must come with the wind, and yet there are ten
-thousand masters in the northland who will swear
-that their dogs have given warning of death hours
-before it actually came; and there are many of these
-thousands who know from experience that their
-teams will stop a quarter or half a mile from a
-stranger cabin in which there is unburied dead.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Yesterday Baree had smelled death, and he knew
-without process of reasoning that the dead was
-Pierrot. How he knew this, and why he accepted
-the fact as inevitable, is one of the mysteries which
-at times seems to give the direct challenge to those
-who concede nothing more than instinct to the brute
-mind. He knew that Pierrot was dead without
-exactly knowing what death was. But of one thing
-he was sure: he would never see Pierrot again;
-he would never hear his voice again; he would never
-hear again the <i>swish-swish-swish</i> of his snowshoes
-in the trail ahead, and so on the trap-line he did not
-look for Pierrot. Pierrot was gone forever. But
-Baree had not yet associated death with Nepeese.
-He was filled with a great uneasiness; what came
-to him from out of the chasm had made him tremble
-with fear and suspense; he sensed the thrill of something
-strange, of something impending, and yet
-even as he had given the death-howl in the chasm,
-it must have been for Pierrot. For he believed
-that Nepeese was alive, and he was now just as
-sure that he would overtake her on the trap-line as
-he was positive yesterday that he would find her
-at the birch-bark tepee.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Since yesterday morning’s breakfast with the
-Willow, Baree had gone without eating; to appease
-his hunger meant to hunt, and his mind was too
-filled with his quest of Nepeese for that. He would
-have gone hungry all that day, but in the third mile
-from the cabin he came to a trap in which there was
-a big snowshoe rabbit. The rabbit was still alive,
-and he killed it and ate his fill. Until dark he did
-not miss a trap. In one of them there was a lynx;
-in another a fisher-cat; out on the white surface of a
-lake he sniffed at a snowy mound under which lay
-the body of a red fox killed by one of Pierrot’s poison
-baits. Both the lynx and the fisher-cat were alive,
-and the steel chains of their traps clanked sharply
-as they prepared to give Baree battle. But Baree
-was uninterested. He hurried on, his uneasiness
-growing as the day darkened and he found no sign
-of the Willow.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was a wonderfully clear night after the storm—cold
-and brilliant, with the shadows standing out
-as clearly as living things. The third idea came to
-Baree now. He was, like all animals, largely of one
-idea at a time—a creature with whom all lesser
-impulses were governed by a single leading impulse.
-And this impulse, in the glow of the starlit night,
-was to reach as quickly as possible the first of Pierrot’s
-two cabins on the trap-line. There he would
-find Nepeese!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>We won’t call the process by which Baree came to
-this conclusion a process of reasoning; instinct or
-reasoning, whatever it was, a fixed and positive
-faith came to Baree just the same. He began to
-miss the traps in his haste to cover distance—to
-reach the cabin. It was twenty-five miles from
-Pierrot’s burned home to the first trap-cabin, and
-Baree had made ten of these by nightfall. The
-remaining fifteen were the most difficult. In the
-open spaces the snow was belly-deep and soft;
-frequently lie plunged through drifts in which for a
-few moments he was buried. Three times during
-the early part of the night Baree heard the savage
-dirge of the wolves. Once it was a wild pæan of
-triumph as the hunters pulled down their kill less
-than half a mile away in the deep forest. But the
-voice no longer called to him. It was repellent—a
-voice of hatred and of treachery. Each time that
-he heard it he stopped in his tracks and snarled,
-while his spine stiffened.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>At midnight Baree came to the tiny amphitheatre
-in the forest where Pierrot had cut the logs for the
-first of his trap-line cabins. For at least a minute
-Baree stood at the edge of the clearing, his ears very
-alert, his eyes bright with hope and expectation,
-while he sniffed the air. There was no smoke, no
-sound, no light in the one window of the log shack.
-His disappointment fell on him even as he stood
-there; again he sensed the fact of his aloneness, of
-the barrenness of his quest. There was a disheartened
-slouch to his body as he made his way through
-the snow to the cabin door. He had travelled
-twenty-five miles, and he was tired.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The snow was drifted deep at the doorway, and
-here Baree sat down and whined. It was no longer
-the anxious, questing whine of a few hours ago.
-Now it voiced hopelessness and a deep despair.
-For half an hour he sat shivering with his back to
-the door and his face to the starlit wilderness, as if
-there still remained the fleeting hope that Nepeese
-might follow after him over the trail. Then he
-burrowed himself a hole deep in the snowdrift and
-passed the remainder of the night in uneasy slumber.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With the first light of day Baree resumed the
-trail. He was not so alert this morning. There
-was the disconsolate droop to his tail which the
-Indians call the <i>Akoosewin</i>—the sign of the sick dog.
-And Baree was sick—not of body but of soul. The
-keenness of his hope had died, and he no longer
-expected to find the Willow. The second cabin at
-the far end of the trap-line drew him on, but it inspired
-in him none of the enthusiasm with which
-he had hurried to the first. He travelled slowly
-and spasmodically, his suspicions of the forests again
-replacing the excitement of his quest. He approached
-each of Pierrot’s traps and deadfalls cautiously, and
-twice he showed his fangs—once at a marten that
-snapped at him from under a root where it had
-dragged the trap in which it was caught, and the
-second time at a big snowy owl that had come to
-steal bait and was now a prisoner at the end of a
-steel chain. It may be that Baree thought it was
-Oohoomisew and that he still remembered vividly
-the treacherous assault and fierce battle of that night
-when, as a puppy, he was dragging his sore and
-wounded body through the mystery and fear of the
-big timber. For he did more than to show his
-fangs. He tore the owl into pieces.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There were plenty of rabbits in Pierrot’s traps,
-and Baree did not go hungry. He reached the second
-trap-line cabin late in the afternoon, after ten hours
-of travelling. He met with no very great disappointment
-here, for he had not anticipated very
-much. The snow had banked this cabin even higher
-than the other. It lay three feet deep against the
-door, and the window was white with a thick coating
-of frost. At this place, which was close to the edge
-of a big barren, and unsheltered by the thick forests
-farther back, Pierrot had built a shelter for his
-firewood, and in this shelter Baree made his temporary
-home. All the next day he remained somewhere
-near the end of the trap-line, skirting the
-edge of the barren and investigating the short side
-line of a dozen traps which Pierrot and Nepeese had
-strung through a swamp in which there had been
-many signs of lynx. It was the third day before he
-set out on his return to the Gray Loon.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He did not travel very fast, spending two days in
-covering the twenty-five miles between the first and
-the second trap-line cabins. At the second cabin he
-remained for three days, and it was on the ninth day
-that he reached the Gray Loon. There was no
-change. There were no tracks in the snow but his
-own, made nine days ago.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree’s quest for Nepeese became now more or
-less involuntary, a sort of daily routine. For a week
-he made his burrow in the dog-corral, and at least
-twice between dawn and darkness he would go to
-the birch-bark tepee and the chasm. His trail, soon
-beaten hard in the snow, became as fixed as Pierrot’s
-trap-line. It cut straight through the forest to the
-tepee, swinging slightly to the east so that it crossed
-the frozen surface of the Willow’s swimming-pool.
-From the tepee it swung in a circle through a part of
-the forest where Nepeese had frequently gathered
-armfuls of crimson fire-flowers, and then to the
-chasm. Up and down the edge of the gorge it
-went, down into the little cup at the bottom of the
-chasm, and thence straight back to the dog-corral.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And then, of a sudden, Baree made a change.
-He spent a night in the tepee. After that, whenever
-he was at the Gray Loon, during the day he always
-slept in the tepee. The two blankets were his bed—and
-they were a part of Nepeese. And there, all
-through the long winter, he waited.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>If Nepeese had returned in February and could
-have taken him unaware, she would have found a
-changed Baree. He was more than ever like a wolf;
-yet he never gave the wolf-howl now, and always he
-snarled deep in his throat when he heard the cry of
-the pack. For several weeks the old trap-line had
-supplied him with meat, but now he hunted. The
-tepee, in and out, was scattered with fur and bones.
-Once—alone—he caught a young deer in deep snow
-and killed it. Again, in the heart of a fierce February
-storm, he pursued a bull caribou so closely
-that it plunged over a cliff and broke its neck. He
-lived well, and in size and strength he was growing
-swiftly into a giant of his kind. In another six
-months he would be as large as Kazan, and his
-jaws were almost as powerful, even now.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Three times that winter Baree fought—once with
-a lynx that sprang down upon him from a windfall
-while he was eating a freshly killed rabbit, and twice
-with two lone wolves. The lynx tore him unmercifully
-before it fled into the windfall. The younger of
-the wolves he killed; the other fight was a draw.
-More and more he became an outcast, living alone
-with his dreams and his smouldering hopes.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And Baree did dream. Many times, as he lay in
-the tepee, he would hear the voice of Nepeese. He
-would hear her sweet calling, her laughter, the sound
-of his name, and often he would start up to his feet—the
-old Baree for a thrilling moment or two—only
-to lie down in his nest again with a low, grief-filled
-whine. And always when he heard the snap of a
-twig or some other sound in the forest, it was thought
-of Nepeese that flashed first into his brain. Some
-day she would return. That belief was a part of his
-existence as much as the sun and the moon and the
-stars.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The winter passed, and spring came, and still
-Baree continued to haunt his old trails, even going
-now and then over the old trap-line as far as the first
-of the two cabins. The traps were rusted and sprung
-now; the thawing snow disclosed bones and feathers
-between their jaws; under the deadfalls were remnants
-of fur, and out on the ice of the lakes were
-picked skeletons of foxes and wolves that had taken
-the poison-baits. The last snow went. The swollen
-streams sang in the forests and cañons. The grass
-turned green, and the first flowers came.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Surely this was the time for Nepeese to come home!
-He watched for her expectantly. He went still
-more frequently to their swimming-pool in the forest,
-and he hung closely to the burned cabin and the dog-corral.
-Twice he sprang into the pool and whined
-as he swam about, as though she surely must join
-him in their old water frolic. And now, as the spring
-passed and summer came, there settled upon him
-slowly the gloom and misery of utter hopelessness.
-The flowers were all out now, and even the bakneesh
-vines glowed like red fire in the woods. Patches of
-green were beginning to hide the charred heap where
-the cabin had stood, and the blue-flower vines that
-covered the princess mother’s grave were reaching
-out toward Pierrot’s, as if the princess mother herself
-were the spirit of them.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>All these things were happening, and the birds
-had mated and nested, and still Nepeese did not
-come! And at last something broke inside of Baree,
-his last hope, perhaps, his last dream; and one day
-he bade good-bye to the Gray Loon.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>No one can say what it cost him to go; no one can
-say how he fought against the things that were holding
-him to the tepee, the old swimming-pool, the
-familiar paths in the forest, and the two graves that
-were not so lonely now under the tall spruce. He
-went. He had no reason—simply went. It may
-be that there is a Master whose hand guides the
-beast as well as the man, and that we know just
-enough of this guidance to call it instinct. For, in
-dragging himself away, Baree faced the Great Adventure.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was there, in the north, waiting for him—and
-into the north he went.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XXIV</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>It was early in August when Baree left the
-Gray Loon. He had no objective in view.
-But there was still left upon his mind, like the
-delicate impression of light and shadow on a negative,
-the memories of his earlier days. Things and
-happenings that he had almost forgotten recurred
-to him now, as his trail led him farther and farther
-away from the Gray Loon; and his earlier experiences
-became real again, pictures thrown out afresh
-in his mind by the breaking of the last ties that
-held him to the home of the Willow. Involuntarily
-he followed the trail of these impressions—of these
-past happenings, and slowly they helped to build up
-new interests for him. A year in his life was a long
-time—a decade of man’s experience. It was more
-than a year ago that he had left Kazan and Gray
-Wolf and the old windfall, and yet now there came
-back to him indistinct memories of those days of his
-earliest puppyhood, of the stream into which he had
-fallen, and of his fierce battle with Papayuchisew.
-It was his later experiences that roused the older
-memories. He came to the blind cañon up which
-Nepeese and Pierrot had chased him. That seemed
-but yesterday. He entered the little meadow, and
-stood beside the great rock that had almost crushed
-the life out of the Willow’s body; and then he remembered
-where Wakayoo, his big bear friend, had
-died under Pierrot’s rifle—and he smelled of Wakayoo’s
-whitened bones where they lay scattered in the
-green grass, with flowers growing up among them.
-A day and night he spent in the little meadow before
-he went back out of the cañon and into his old
-haunts along the creek, where Wakayoo had fished
-for him. There was another bear here now, and he
-also was fishing. Perhaps he was a son or a grandson
-of Wakayoo. Baree smelled where he had made his
-fish caches, and for three days he lived on fish before
-he struck into the North.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And now, for the first time in many weeks, a bit of
-the old-time eagerness put speed into Baree’s feet.
-Memories that had been hazy and indistinct through
-forgetfulness were becoming realities again, and as
-he would have returned to the Gray Loon had
-Nepeese been there so now, with something of the
-feeling of a wanderer going home, he returned to
-the old beaver-pond.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was that most glorious hour of a summer’s day—sunset—when
-he reached it. He stopped a hundred
-yards away, with the pond still hidden from his
-sight, and sniffed the air, and listened. The pond
-was there. He caught the cool, honey smell of it.
-But Umisk, and Beaver-tooth, and all the others?
-Would he find them? He strained his ears to catch
-a familiar sound, and after a moment or two it came—a
-hollow splash in the water. He went quietly
-through the alders and stood at last close to the spot
-where he had first made the acquaintance of Umisk.
-The surface of the pond was undulating slightly;
-two or three heads popped up; he saw the torpedo-like
-wake of an old beaver towing a stick close to
-the opposite shore—he looked toward the dam, and
-it was as he had left it almost a year ago. He did
-not show himself for a time, but stood concealed in
-the young alders. He felt growing in him more and
-more a feeling of restfulness, a relaxation from the
-long strain of the lonely months during which he
-had waited for Nepeese. With a long breath he
-lay down among the alders, with his head just enough
-exposed to give him a clear view. As the sun settled
-lower the pond became alive. Out on the shore
-where he had saved Umisk from the fox came another
-generation of young beavers—three of them,
-fat and waddling. Very softly Baree whined.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>All that night he lay in the alders. The beaver-pond
-became his home again. Conditions were
-changed, of course, and as days grew into weeks the
-inhabitants of Beaver-tooth’s colony showed no
-signs of accepting the grown-up Baree as they had
-accepted the baby Baree of long ago. He <i>was</i> big,
-black, and wolfish now—a long-fanged and formidable
-looking creature, and though he offered no
-violence he was regarded by the beavers with a deep-seated
-feeling of fear and suspicion. On the other
-hand, Baree no longer felt the old puppyish desire to
-play with the baby beavers, so their aloofness did not
-trouble him as in those other days. Umisk was
-grown up, too, a fat and prosperous young buck who
-was just taking unto himself this year a wife, and
-who was at present very busy gathering his winter’s
-rations. It is entirely probable that he did not
-associate the big black beast he saw now and then
-with the little Baree with whom he had smelled
-noses once upon a time, and it is quite likely that
-Baree did not recognize Umisk except as a <i>part</i> of
-the memories that had remained with him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>All through the month of August Baree made the
-beaver-pond his headquarters. At times his excursions
-kept him away for two or three days at a time.
-These journeys were always into the north, sometimes
-a little east and sometimes a little west, but
-never again into the south. And at last, early in
-September, he left the beaver-pond for good.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For many days his wanderings carried him in no
-one particular direction. He followed the hunting,
-living chiefly on rabbits and that simple-minded
-species of partridge known as the “fool hen.” This
-diet, of course, was given variety by other things as
-they happened to come his way. Wild currants
-and raspberries were ripening, and Baree was fond
-of these. He also liked the bitter berries of the
-mountain ash, which, along with the soft balsam
-and spruce pitch which he licked with his tongue
-now and then, were good medicine for him. In
-shallow water he occasionally caught a fish; now
-and then he hazarded a cautious battle with a porcupine,
-and if he was successful he feasted on the
-tenderest and most luscious of all the flesh that
-made up his menu. Twice in September he killed
-young deer. The big “burns” that he occasionally
-came to no longer held terrors for him; in the midst
-of plenty he forgot the days in which he had gone
-hungry. In October he wandered as far west as the
-Geikie River, and then northward to Wollaston
-Lake, which was a good hundred miles north of the
-Gray Loon. The first week in November he turned
-south again, following the Canoe River for a distance,
-and then swinging westward along a twisting
-creek called The Little Black Bear With No Tail.
-More than once during these weeks Baree came into
-touch with man, but, with the exception of the Cree
-hunter at the upper end of Wollaston Lake, no man
-had seen him. Three times in following the Geikie
-he lay crouched in the brush while canoes passed;
-half a dozen times, in the stillness of night, he nosed
-about cabins and tepees in which there was life,
-and once he came so near to the Hudson’s Bay
-Company post at Wollaston that he could hear the
-barking of dogs and the shouting of their masters.
-And always he was seeking—questing for the thing
-that had gone out of his life. At the thresholds of
-the cabins he sniffed; outside of the tepees he circled
-close, gathering the wind; the canoes he watched
-with eyes in which there was a hopeful gleam. Once
-he thought the wind brought him the scent of Nepeese,
-and all at once his legs grew weak under his
-body and his heart seemed to stop beating. It was
-only for a moment or two. She came out of the
-tepee—an Indian girl with her hands full of willow-work—and
-Baree slunk away unseen.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was almost December when Lerue, a halfbreed
-from Lac Bain, saw Baree’s footprints in freshly
-fallen snow, and a little later caught a flash of him
-in the bush.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Mon Dieu, I tell you his feet are as big as my
-hand, and he is as black as a raven’s wing with the
-sun on it!” he exclaimed in the Company’s store at Lac
-Bain. “A fox? <i>Non!</i> He is half as big as a bear.
-A wolf—<i>oui</i>! And black as the devil, M’sieus.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>McTaggart was one of those who heard. He was
-putting his signature in ink to a letter he had written
-to the Company when Lerue’s words came to him.
-His hand stopped so suddenly that a drop of ink
-spattered on the letter. Through him there ran a
-curious shiver as he looked over at the halfbreed.
-Just then Marie came in. McTaggart had brought
-her back from her tribe. Her big, dark eyes had a
-sick look in them, and some of her wild beauty had
-gone since a year ago.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He was gone like—that!” Lerue was saying, with
-a snap of his fingers. He saw Marie, and stopped.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Black, you say?” McTaggart said carelessly,
-without lifting his eyes from his writing. “Did he
-not bear some dog mark?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Lerue shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He was gone like the wind, M’sieu. But he was
-a wolf.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With scarcely a sound that the others could hear
-Marie had whispered into the Factor’s ear, and folding
-his letter McTaggart rose quickly and left the store.
-He was gone an hour. Lerue and the others were
-puzzled. It was not often that Marie came into the
-store; it was not often that they saw her at all. She
-remained hidden in the Factor’s log house, and each
-time that he saw her Lerue thought that her face
-was a little thinner than the last, and her eyes
-bigger and hungrier looking. In his own heart there
-was a great yearning. Many a night he passed the
-little window beyond which he knew that she was
-sleeping; often he looked to catch a glimpse of her
-pale face, and he lived in the one happiness of knowing
-that Marie understood, and that into her eyes
-there came for an instant a different light when their
-glances met. No one else knew. The secret lay
-between them—and patiently Lerue waited and
-watched. “Someday,” he kept saying to himself—“Someday”—and
-that was all. The one word carried
-a world of meaning and of hope. When that
-day came he would take Marie straight to the Missioner
-over at Fort Churchill, and they would be
-married. It was a dream—a dream that made the
-long days and the longer nights on the trap-line patiently
-endured. Now they were both slaves to the
-environing Power. But—someday——</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Lerue was thinking of this when McTaggart returned
-at the end of the hour. The Factor came
-straight up to where the half dozen of them were
-seated about the big box stove, and with a grunt
-of satisfaction shook the freshly fallen snow from his
-shoulders.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Pierre Eustach has accepted the Government’s
-offer, and is going to guide that map-making party
-up into the Barrens this winter,” he announced.
-“You know, Lerue—he has a hundred and fifty
-traps and deadfalls set, and a big poison-bait country.
-A good line, eh? And I have leased it of him
-for the season. It will give me the outdoor work I
-need—three days on the trail, three days here. Eh,
-what do you say to the bargain?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is good,” said Lerue.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes, it is good,” said Roget.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A wide fox country,” said Mons Roule.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And easy to travel,” murmured Valence in a
-voice that was almost like a woman’s.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XXV</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>The trap-line of Pierre Eustach ran thirty
-miles straight west of Lac Bain. It was not
-as long a line as Pierrot’s had been, but it
-was like a main artery running through the heart of
-a rich fur country. It had belonged to Pierre Eustach’s
-father, and his grandfather, and his great-grandfather,
-and beyond that it reached, Pierre
-averred, back to the very pulse of the finest blood
-in France. The books at McTaggart’s post went
-back only as far as the great-grandfather end of it,
-the older evidence of ownership being at Churchill.
-It was the finest game country between Reindeer
-Lake and the Barren Lands. It was in December
-that Baree came to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Again he was travelling southward in a slow and
-wandering fashion, seeking food in the deep snows.
-The <i>Kistisew Kestin</i>, or Great Storm, had come earlier
-than usual this winter, and for a week after it
-scarcely a hoof or claw was moving. Baree, unlike
-the other creatures, did not bury himself in the snow
-and wait for the skies to clear and crust to form.
-He was big, and powerful, and restless. Less than
-two years old, he weighed a good eighty pounds.
-His pads were broad and wolfish. His chest and
-shoulders were like a Malemute’s, heavy and yet
-muscled for speed. He was wider between the eyes
-than the wolf-breed husky, and his eyes were larger,
-and entirely clear of the <i>Wuttooi</i>, or blood-film, that
-marks the wolf and also to an extent the husky.
-His jaws were like Kazan’s, perhaps even more
-powerful. Through all that week of the Big Storm
-he travelled without food. There were four days of
-snow, with driving blizzards and fierce winds, and
-after that three days of intense cold in which every
-living creature kept to their warm dugouts in the
-snow. Even the birds had burrowed themselves
-in. One might have walked on the backs of caribou
-and moose and not have guessed it. Baree sheltered
-himself during the worst of the storm but did
-not allow the snow to gather over him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Every trapper from Hudson’s Bay to the country
-of the Athabasca knew that after the Big Storm the
-famished fur animals would be seeking food, and that
-traps and deadfalls properly set and baited stood the
-biggest chance of the year of being filled. Some of
-them set out over their trap-lines on the sixth day;
-some on the seventh, and others on the eighth. It
-was on the seventh day that Bush McTaggart started
-over Pierre Eustach’s line, which was now his own
-for the season. It took him two days to uncover the
-traps, dig the snow from them, rebuild the fallen
-“trap-houses,” and rearrange the baits. On the
-third day he was back at Lac Bain.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was on this day that Baree came to the cabin
-at the far end of McTaggart’s line. McTaggart’s
-trail was fresh in the snow about the cabin, and the
-instant Baree sniffed of it every drop of blood in his
-body seemed to leap suddenly with a strange excitement.
-It took perhaps half a minute for the
-scent that filled his nostrils to associate itself with
-what had gone before, and at the end of that half-minute
-there rumbled in Baree’s chest a deep and
-sullen growl. For many minutes after that he stood
-like a black rock in the snow, watching the cabin.
-Then slowly he began circling about it, drawing
-nearer and nearer, until at last he was sniffing at the
-threshold. No sound or smell of life came from inside,
-but he could smell the <i>old</i> smell of McTaggart.
-Then he faced the wilderness—the direction in which
-the trap-line ran back to Lac Bain. He was trembling.
-His muscles twitched. He whined. Pictures
-were assembling more and more vividly in his
-mind—the fight in the cabin, Nepeese, the wild
-chase through the snow to the chasm’s edge—even
-the memory of that age-old struggle when McTaggart
-had caught him in the rabbit snare. In his
-whine there was a great yearning, almost expectation.
-Then it died slowly away. After all, the
-scent in the snow was of a thing that he had hated
-and wanted to kill, and not of anything that he had
-loved. For an instant nature had impressed on him
-the significance of associations—a brief space only,
-and then it was gone. The whine died away, but in
-its place came again that ominous growl.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Slowly he followed the trail and a quarter of a
-mile from the cabin struck the first trap on the line.
-Hunger had caved in his sides until he was like a
-starved wolf. In the first trap-house McTaggart
-had placed as bait the hind-quarter of a snowshoe
-rabbit. Baree reached in cautiously. He had
-learned many things on Pierrot’s line: he had learned
-what the snap of a trap meant; he had felt the cruel
-pain of steel jaws; he knew better than the shrewdest
-fox what a deadfall would do when the trigger was
-sprung—and Nepeese herself had taught him that
-he was never to touch a poison-bait. So he closed
-his teeth gently in the rabbit flesh and drew it forth
-as cleverly as McTaggart himself could have done.
-He visited five traps before dark, and ate the five
-baits without springing a pan. The sixth was a
-deadfall. He circled about this until he had beaten
-a path in the snow. Then he went on into a warm
-balsam swamp and found himself a bed for the night.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The next day saw the beginning of the struggle
-that was to follow between the wits of man and
-beast. To Baree the encroachment of Bush McTaggart’s
-trap-line was not war; it was existence.
-It was to furnish him food, as Pierrot’s line had
-furnished him food for many weeks. But he sensed
-the fact that in this instance he was law-breaker
-and had an enemy to outwit. Had it been good
-hunting weather he might have gone on, for the
-unseen hand that was guiding his wanderings was
-drawing him slowly but surely back to the old beaver
-pond and the Gray Loon. As it was, with the snow
-deep and soft under him—so deep that in places he
-plunged into it over his ears—McTaggart’s trap-line
-was like a trail of manna made for his special use.
-He followed in the factor’s snowshoe tracks, and in
-the third trap killed a rabbit. When he had finished
-with it nothing but the hair and crimson patches of
-blood lay upon the snow. Starved for many days,
-he was filled with a wolfish hunger, and before
-the day was over he robbed the bait from a full
-dozen of McTaggart’s traps. Three times he struck
-poison-baits—venison or caribou fat in the heart of
-which was a dose of strychnine, and each time his
-keen nostrils detected the danger. Pierrot had more
-than once noted the amazing fact that Baree could
-sense the presence of poison even when it was most
-skillfully injected into the frozen carcass of a deer.
-Foxes and wolves ate of flesh from which his super-sensitive
-power of detecting the presence of deadly
-danger turned him away. So he passed Bush McTaggart’s
-poisoned tidbits, sniffing them on the way,
-and leaving the story of his suspicion in the manner
-of his footprints in the snow. Where McTaggart
-had halted at midday to cook his dinner Baree made
-these same cautious circles with his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The second day, being less hungry and more
-keenly alive to the hated smell of his enemy, Baree
-ate less but was more destructive. McTaggart was
-not as skillful as Pierre Eustach in keeping the
-scent of his hands from the traps and “houses,”
-and every now and then the smell of him was strong
-in Baree’s nose. This wrought in Baree a swift and
-definite antagonism, a steadily increasing hatred
-where a few days before hatred was almost forgotten.
-There is, perhaps, in the animal mind a process of
-simple computation which does not quite achieve the
-distinction of reason, and which is not altogether instinct,
-but which produces results that might be
-ascribed to either. Baree did not add two and two
-together to make four; he did not go back step by
-step to prove to himself that the man to whom this
-trap-line belonged was the cause of all his griefs and
-troubles—but he <i>did</i> find himself possessed of a deep
-and yearning hatred. McTaggart was the one creature
-except the wolves that he had ever hated; it was
-McTaggart who had hurt him, McTaggart who had
-hurt Pierrot, McTaggart who had made him lose his
-beloved Nepeese—<i>and McTaggart was here on this
-trap-line</i>! If he had been wandering before, without
-object or destiny, he was given a mission now.
-It was to keep to the traps. To feed himself. And
-to vent his hatred and his vengeance as he lived.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The second day, in the centre of a lake, he came
-upon the body of a wolf that had died of one of the
-poison-baits. For a half-hour he mauled the dead
-beast until its skin was torn into ribbons. He did
-not taste the flesh. It was repugnant to him. It
-was his vengeance on the wolf breed. He stopped
-when he was half a dozen miles from Lac Bain, and
-turned back. At this particular point the line crossed
-a frozen stream beyond which was an open plain,
-and over that plain came—when the wind was right—the
-smoke and smell of the Post. The second night
-Baree lay with a full stomach in a thicket of banksian
-pine; the third day he was travelling westward over
-the trap-line again.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Early on this morning Bush McTaggart started out
-to gather his catch, and where he crossed the stream
-six miles from Lac Bain he first saw Baree’s tracks.
-He stopped to examine them with sudden and unusual
-interest, falling at last on his knees, whipping
-off the glove from his right hand, and picking up a
-single hair.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The black wolf!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He uttered the words in an odd, hard voice, and
-involuntarily his eyes turned straight in the direction
-of the Gray Loon. After that, even more carefully
-than before, he examined one of the clearly impressed
-tracks in the snow. When he rose to his
-feet there was in his face the look of one who had
-made an unpleasant discovery.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A black wolf!” he repeated, and shrugged his
-shoulders. “Bah! Lerue is a fool. It is a dog.”
-And then, after a moment, he muttered in a voice
-scarcely louder than a whisper, “<i>her dog</i>.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He went on, travelling in the trail of the dog. A
-new excitement possessed him that was more thrilling
-than the excitement of the hunt. Being human, it
-was his privilege to add two and two together, and
-out of two and two he made—Baree. There was
-little doubt in his mind. The thought had flashed
-on him first when Lerue had mentioned the black
-wolf. He was convinced after his examination
-of the tracks. They were the tracks of a dog, and
-the dog was black. Then he came to the first trap
-that had been robbed of its bait.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Under his breath he cursed. The bait was gone,
-and the trap was unsprung. The sharpened stick
-that had transfixed the bait was pulled out clean.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>All that day Bush McTaggart followed a trail
-where Baree had left traces of his presence. Trap
-after trap he found robbed. On the lake he came upon
-the mangled wolf. From the first disturbing excitement
-of his discovery of Baree’s presence his humour
-changed slowly to one of rage, and his rage increased
-as the day dragged out. He was not unacquainted
-with four-footed robbers of the trap-line, but usually
-a wolf or a fox or a dog who had grown adept in
-thievery troubled only a few traps. But in this case
-Baree was travelling straight from trap to trap, and
-his footprints in the snow showed that he stopped at
-each. There was, to McTaggart, almost a human
-devilishness to his work. He evaded the poisons.
-Not once did he stretch his head or paw within the
-danger zone of a deadfall. For apparently no reason
-whatever he had destroyed a splendid mink, whose
-glossy fur lay scattered in worthless bits over the
-snow. Toward the end of the day McTaggart came
-to a deadfall in which a lynx had died. Baree had
-torn the silvery flank of the animal until the skin
-was of less than half value. McTaggart cursed
-aloud, and his breath came hot.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>At dusk he reached the shack Pierre Eustach had
-built midway of his line, and took inventory of his
-fur. It was not more than a third of a catch; the
-lynx was half ruined, a mink was torn completely in
-two. The second day he found still greater ruin,
-still more barren traps. He was like a madman.
-When he arrived at the second cabin, late in the
-afternoon, Baree’s tracks were not an hour old in the
-snow. Three times during the night he heard the
-dog howling.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The third day McTaggart did not return to Lac
-Bain, but began a cautious hunt for Baree. An
-inch or two of fresh snow had fallen, and as if to
-take even greater measure of vengeance from his man-enemy
-Baree had left his footprints freely within
-a radius of a hundred yards of the cabin. It was half
-an hour before McTaggart could pick out the straight
-trail, and he followed this for two hours into a thick
-banksian swamp. Baree kept with the wind. Now
-and then he caught the scent of his pursuer; a dozen
-times he waited until the other was so close he
-could hear the snap of brush, or the metallic click
-of twigs against his rifle barrel. And then, with a
-sudden inspiration that brought the curses afresh to
-McTaggart’s lips, he swung in a wide circle and cut
-straight back for the trap-line. When the Factor
-reached the line, along toward noon, Baree had already
-begun his work. He had killed and eaten a
-rabbit; he had robbed three traps in the distance of a
-mile, and he was headed again straight over the
-trap-line for Post Lac Bain.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was the fifth day that Bush McTaggart returned
-to his post. He was in an ugly mood. Only
-Valence of the four Frenchmen was there, and it
-was Valence who heard his story, and afterward
-heard him cursing Marie. She came into the store
-a little later, big-eyed and frightened, one of her
-cheeks flaming red where McTaggart had struck
-her. While the storekeeper was getting her the
-canned salmon McTaggart wanted for his dinner
-Valence found the opportunity to whisper softly in
-her ear:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“M’sieu Lerue has trapped a silver fox,” he said
-with low triumph. “He loves you, <i>Mon ami</i>, and
-he will have a splendid catch by spring—and sends
-you this message from his cabin up on The Little
-Black Bear With No Tail: <i>Be ready to fly when the
-soft snows come!</i>”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Marie did not look at him, but she heard, and her
-eyes shone so like stars when the young storekeeper
-gave her the salmon that he said to Valence, when
-she had gone:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Blue Death, but she is still beautiful at times.
-Valence!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>To which Valence nodded with an odd smile.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XXVI</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>By the middle of January the war between
-Baree and Bush McTaggart had become
-more than an incident—more than a passing
-adventure to the beast, and more than an irritating
-happening to the man. It was, for the time, the
-elemental <i>raison d’etre</i> of their lives. Baree hung to
-the trap-line. He haunted it like a devastating
-spectre, and each time that he sniffed afresh the
-scent of the Factor from Lac Bain he was impressed
-still more strongly with the instinct that he was
-avenging himself upon a deadly enemy. Again and
-again he outwitted McTaggart; he continued to strip
-his traps of their bait; the humour grew in him more
-strongly to destroy the fur he came across; his greatest
-pleasure came to be—not in eating—but in destroying.
-The fires of his hatred burned fiercer as the
-weeks passed, until at last he would snap and tear
-with his long fangs at the snow where McTaggart’s
-feet had passed. And all of the time, away back
-of his madness, there was a vision of Nepeese that
-continued to grow more and more clearly in his brain.
-That first Great Loneliness—the loneliness of the
-long days and longer nights of his waiting and seeking
-on the Gray Loon, oppressed him again as it had oppressed
-him in the early days of her loss. On starry
-or moonlit nights he sent forth his wailing cries for her
-again, and Bush McTaggart, listening to them in the
-middle of the night, felt strange shivers run up his spine.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The man’s hatred was different than the beast’s,
-but perhaps even more implacable. With McTaggart
-it was not hatred alone. There was mixed
-with it an indefinable and superstitious fear, a thing
-he laughed at, a thing he cursed at, but which clung
-to him as surely as the scent of his trail clung to
-Baree’s nose. Baree no longer stood for the animal
-alone; <i>he stood for Nepeese</i>. That was the thought
-that insisted in growing in McTaggart’s ugly mind.
-Never a day passed now that he did not think of the
-Willow; never a night came and went without a
-visioning of her face. He even fancied, on a certain
-night of storm, that he heard her voice out in the
-wailing of the wind—and less than a minute later
-he heard faintly a distant howl out in the forest.
-That night his heart was filled with a leaden dread.
-He shook himself. He smoked his pipe until the
-cabin was blue. He cursed Baree, and the storm—but
-there was no longer in him the bullying courage
-of old. He had not ceased to hate Baree; he still
-hated him as he had never hated a man, but he had
-an even greater reason now for wanting to kill him.
-It came to him first in his sleep, in a restless dream,
-and after that it lived, and lived—<i>the thought that
-the spirit of Nepeese was guiding Baree in the ravaging
-of his trap-line</i>!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>After a time he ceased to talk at the Post about
-the Black Wolf that was robbing his line. The furs
-damaged by Baree’s teeth he kept out of sight, and
-to himself he kept his secret. He learned every trick
-and scheme of the hunters who killed foxes and wolves
-along the Barrens. He tried three different poisons,
-one so powerful that a single drop of it meant death;
-he tried strychnine in gelatin capsules, in deer fat,
-caribou fat, moose liver, and even in the flesh of
-porcupine. At last, in preparing his poisons, he
-dipped his hands in beaver oil before he handled the
-venoms and flesh so that there could be no human
-smell. Foxes, wolves, and even the mink and ermine
-died of these baits, but Baree came always so near—and
-no nearer. In January McTaggart poisoned
-every bait in his trap-houses. This produced at least
-one good result for him. From that day Baree no
-longer touched his baits, but ate only the rabbits
-he killed in the traps.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was in January that McTaggart caught his
-first glimpse of Baree. He had placed his rifle
-against a tree, and was a dozen feet away from it
-at the time. It was as if Baree knew, and had come
-to taunt him; for when the Factor suddenly looked up
-Baree was standing out clear from the dwarf spruce
-not twenty yards away from him, his white fangs
-gleaming and his eyes burning like coals. For a
-space McTaggart stared as if turned into stone. It
-was Baree. He recognized the white star, the white-tipped
-ear, and his heart thumped like a hammer in
-his breast. Very slowly he began to creep toward
-his rifle. His hand was reaching for it when like a
-flash Baree was gone.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This gave McTaggart his new idea. He blazed
-himself a fresh trail through the forests parallel with
-his trap-line but at least five hundred yards distant
-from it. Wherever a trap or deadfall was set this
-new trail struck sharply in, like the point of a V, so
-that he could approach his line unobserved. By this
-strategy he believed that in time he was sure of
-getting a shot at the dog. Again it was the man who
-was reasoning, and again it was the man who was
-defeated. The first day that McTaggart followed
-his new trail Baree also struck that trail. For a little
-while it puzzled him. Three times he cut back
-and forth between the old and the new trail. Then
-there was no doubt. The new trail was the <i>fresh</i>
-trail, and he followed in the footsteps of the Factor
-from Lac Bain. McTaggart did not know what was
-happening until his return trip, when he saw the
-story told in the snow. Baree had visited each trap,
-and without exception he had approached each time
-at the point of the inverted V. After a week of
-futile hunting, of lying in wait, of approaching at
-every point of the wind—a period during which
-McTaggart had twenty times cursed himself into
-fits of madness, another idea came to him. It was
-like an inspiration, and so simple that it seemed almost
-inconceivable that he had not thought of it
-before.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He hurried back to Post Lac Bain.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The second day after he was on the trail at dawn.
-This time he carried a pack in which there were a
-dozen strong wolf traps freshly dipped in beaver
-oil, and a rabbit which he had snared the previous
-night. Now and then he looked anxiously at the
-sky. It was clear until late in the afternoon, when
-banks of dark clouds began rolling up from the east.
-Half an hour later a few flakes of snow began falling.
-McTaggart let one of these drop on the back of his
-mittened hand, and examined it closely. It was
-soft and downy, and he gave vent to his satisfaction.
-It was what he wanted. Before morning there would
-be six inches of freshly fallen snow covering the
-trails.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He stopped at the next trap-house and quickly set
-to work. First he threw away the poisoned bait in
-the “house” and replaced it with the rabbit. Then
-he began setting his wolf traps. Three of these he
-placed close to the “door” of the house, through
-which Baree would have to reach for the bait. The
-remaining nine he scattered at intervals of a foot or
-sixteen inches apart, so that when he was done a
-veritable cordon of traps guarded the house. He
-did not fasten the chains, but let them lay loose in
-the snow. If Baree got into one trap he would get
-into others and there would be no use of toggles.
-His work done, McTaggart hurried on through the
-thickening twilight of winter night to his shack.
-He was highly elated. This time there could be no
-such thing as failure. He had sprung every trap on
-his way from Lac Bain. In none of those traps would
-Baree find anything to eat until he came to the “nest”
-of twelve wolf traps.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Seven inches of snow fell that night, and the whole
-world seemed turned into a wonderful white robe.
-Like billows of feathers the snow hung to the trees
-and shrubs; it gave tall white caps to the rocks, and
-underfoot it was so light that a cartridge dropped
-from the hand sank to the bottom of it. Baree was
-on the trap-line early. He was more cautious this
-morning, for there was no longer the scent or snowshoe
-track of McTaggart to guide him. He struck
-the first trap about halfway between Lac Bain and
-the shack in which the Factor was waiting. It was
-sprung, and there was no bait. Trap after trap
-he visited, and all of them he found sprung, and all
-without bait. He sniffed the air suspiciously, striving
-vainly to catch the tang of smoke, a whiff of the
-man-smell. Along toward noon he came to the
-“nest”—the twelve treacherous traps waiting for
-him with gaping jaws half a foot under the blanket
-of snow. For a full minute he stood well outside
-the danger line, sniffing the air, and listening. He
-saw the rabbit, and his jaws closed with a hungry
-click. He moved a step nearer. Still he was suspicious—for
-some strange and inexplicable reason
-he sensed danger. Anxiously he sought for it with
-his nose, his eyes, and his ears. And all about him
-there was a great silence and a great peace. His
-jaws clicked again. He whined softly. What was
-it stirring him? Where was the danger he could
-neither see nor smell? Slowly he circled about the
-trap-house; three times he circled round it, each
-circle drawing him a little nearer—until at last his
-feet almost touched the outer cordon of traps. Another
-minute he stood still; his ears flattened; in
-spite of the rich aroma of the rabbit in his nostrils
-<i>something was drawing him away</i>. In another moment
-he would have gone, but there came suddenly—and
-from directly behind the trap-house—a fierce
-little rat-like squeak, and the next instant Baree
-saw an ermine whiter than the snow tearing hungrily
-at the flesh of the rabbit. He forgot his strange premonition
-of danger. He growled fiercely, but his
-plucky little rival did not budge from his feast.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And then he sprang straight into the “nest” that
-Bush McTaggart had made for him.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XXVII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>The next morning Bush McTaggart heard the
-clanking of a chain when he was still a good
-quarter of a mile from the “nest.” Was it a
-lynx? Was it a fisher-cat? Was it a wolf or a fox?
-<i>Or was it Baree?</i> He half ran the rest of the distance,
-and at last he came to where he could see, and
-his heart leaped into his throat when he saw that he
-had caught his enemy. He approached, holding his
-rifle ready to fire if by any chance the dog should free
-himself.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree lay on his side, panting from exhaustion and
-quivering with pain. A hoarse cry of exultation
-burst from McTaggart’s lips as he drew nearer and
-looked at the snow. It was packed hard for many
-feet about the trap-house, where Baree had struggled,
-and it was red with blood. The blood had come
-mostly from Baree’s jaws. They were dripping now
-as he glared at his enemy. The steel jaws hidden
-under the snow had done their merciless work well.
-One of his forefeet was caught well up toward the
-first joint; both hind feet were caught; a fourth trap
-had closed on his flank, and in tearing the jaws loose
-he had pulled off a patch of skin half as big as McTaggart’s
-hand. The snow told the story of his
-desperate fight all through the night; his bleeding
-jaws showed how vainly he had tried to break the
-imprisoning steel with his teeth. He was panting.
-His eyes were bloodshot. But even now, after all
-his hours of agony, neither his spirit nor his courage
-were broken. When he saw McTaggart he made a
-lunge to his feet, almost instantly crumpling down
-into the snow again. But his forefeet were braced.
-His head and chest remained up, and the snarl that
-came from his throat was tigerish in its ferocity.
-Here, at last—not more than a dozen feet from him—was
-the one thing in all the world that he hated
-more than he hated the wolf breed. And again he
-was helpless, as he had been helpless that other time
-in the rabbit snare.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The fierceness of his snarl did not disturb Bush
-McTaggart now. He saw how utterly the other was
-at his mercy, and with an exultant laugh he leaned his
-rifle against a tree, pulled off his mittens, and began
-loading his pipe. This was the triumph he had
-looked forward to, the torture he had waited for.
-In his soul there was a hatred as deadly as Baree’s,
-the hatred that a man might have for a man. He had
-expected to send a bullet through the dog. But this
-was better—to watch him dying by inches, to taunt
-him as he would have taunted a human, to walk
-about him so that he could hear the clank of the
-traps and see the fresh blood drip as Baree twisted
-his tortured legs and body to keep facing him. It
-was a splendid vengeance. He was so engrossed
-in it that he did not hear the approach of snowshoes
-behind him. It was a voice—a man’s voice—that
-turned him round suddenly.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The man was a stranger, and he was younger than
-McTaggart by ten years. At least he looked no
-more than thirty-five or six, even with the short
-growth of blonde beard he wore. He was of that
-sort that the average man would like at a glance;
-boyish, and yet a man; with clear eyes that looked
-out frankly from under the rim of his fur cap, a
-form lithe as an Indian’s, and a face altogether that
-did not bear the hard lines of the wilderness. Yet
-McTaggart knew before he had spoken that this
-man <i>was</i> of the wilderness, that he was heart and soul
-a part of it. His cap was of fisher-skin. He wore
-a windproof coat of softly tanned caribou skin,
-belted at the waist with a long sash, and Indian
-fringed. The inside of the coat was furred. He
-was travelling on the long, slender bush-country
-snowshoe; his pack, strapped over the shoulders,
-was small and compact; he was carrying his rifle in
-a cloth jacket. And from cap to snowshoes he was
-<i>travel-worn</i>. McTaggart, at a guess, would have
-said that he had travelled a thousand miles in the
-last few weeks. It was not this thought that sent
-the strange and chilling thrill up his back; but the
-sudden fear that in some strange way a whisper of
-the truth might have found its way down into the
-south—the truth of what had happened on the
-Gray Loon—and that this travel-worn stranger wore
-under his caribou-skin coat the badge of the Royal
-Northwest Mounted Police. For that instant it was
-almost a terror that possessed him, and he stood
-mute.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The stranger had uttered only an amazed exclamation
-before. Now he said, with his eyes on Baree:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“God save us, but you’ve got the poor devil in a
-right proper mess, haven’t you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was something in the voice that reassured
-McTaggart. It was not a suspicious voice, and he
-saw that the stranger was more interested in the
-captured animal than in himself. He drew a deep
-breath.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A trap robber,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The stranger was staring still more closely at
-Baree. He thrust his gun stock downward in the
-snow and drew nearer to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“God save us again—a dog!” he exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>From behind, McTaggart was watching the man
-with the eyes of a ferret.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes, a dog,” he answered. “A wild dog, half
-wolf at least. He’s robbed me of a thousand dollars’
-worth of fur this winter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The stranger squatted himself before Baree, with
-his mittened hands resting on his knees, and his white
-teeth gleaming in a half smile.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You poor devil!” he said sympathetically.
-“So you’re a trap robber, eh? An outlaw? And—the
-Police have got you! And—God save us once
-more—they haven’t played you a very square game!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He rose and faced McTaggart.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I had to set a lot of traps like that,” the Factor
-apologized, his face reddening slightly under the
-steady gaze of the stranger’s blue eyes. Suddenly his
-animus rose. “And he’s going to die there, inch by
-inch. I’m going to let him starve, and rot in the
-traps, to pay for all he’s done.” He picked up his
-gun, and added, with his eyes on the stranger and
-his finger ready at the trigger, “I’m Bush McTaggart,
-the Factor at Lac Bain. Are you bound that
-way, M’sieu?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A few miles. I’m bound up-country—beyond
-the Barrens.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>McTaggart felt again the strange thrill.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Government?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The stranger nodded.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The—Police, perhaps,” persisted McTaggart.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Why, yes—of course—the Police,” said the
-stranger, looking straight into the Factor’s eyes.
-“And now, M’sieu, as a very great courtesy to the
-Law I’m going to ask you to send a bullet through
-that beast’s head before we go on. Will you? Or
-shall I?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It’s the law of the line,” said McTaggart, “to
-let a trap robber rot in the traps. And that beast
-was a devil. Listen——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Swiftly, and yet leaving out none of the fine detail, he
-told of the weeks and months of strife between himself
-and Baree; of the maddening futility of all his tricks
-and schemes and the still more maddening cleverness
-of the beast he had at last succeeded in trapping.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He was a devil—that clever,” he cried fiercely
-when he had finished. “And now—would you shoot
-him, or let him lie there and die by inches, as the
-devil should?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The stranger was looking at Baree. His face
-was turned away from McTaggart. He said:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I guess you are right. Let the devil rot. If
-you’re heading for Lac Bain, M’sieu, I’ll travel a
-short distance with you now. It will take a couple
-of miles to straighten out the line of my compass.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He picked up his gun. McTaggart led the way.
-At the end of half an hour the stranger stopped, and
-pointed north.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Straight up there—a good five hundred miles,”
-he said, speaking as lightly as though he would
-reach home that night. “I’ll leave you here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He made no offer to shake hands. But in going,
-he said,</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You might report that John Madison has passed
-this way.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>After that he travelled straight northward for
-half a mile through the deep forest. Then he swung
-westward for two miles, turned at a sharp angle into
-the south, and an hour after he had left McTaggart
-he was once more squatted on his heels almost within
-arms’ reach of Baree.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And he was saying, as though speaking to a human
-companion:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“So that’s what you’ve been, old boy. A trap
-robber, eh? An <i>outlaw</i>? And you beat him at the
-game for two months! And for that, because you’re
-a better beast than he is, he wants to let you die here
-as slow as you can. An <i>outlaw</i>!” His voice broke
-into a pleasant laugh, the sort of laugh that warms
-one, even a beast. “That’s funny. We ought to
-shake hands. Boy, by George, we had! You’re a
-wild one, he says. Well, so am I. Told him my
-name was John Madison. It ain’t. I’m Jim Carvel.
-And, oh Lord!—all I said was ‘Police.’ And that
-was right. It ain’t a lie. I’m wanted by the whole
-corporation—by every danged policeman between
-Hudson’s Bay and the Mackenzie River. Shake,
-old man. We’re in the same boat, an’ I’m glad to
-meet you!”</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XXVIII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>Jim Carvel held out his hand, and the snarl
-that was in Baree’s throat died away. The
-man rose to his feet. He stood there, looking
-in the direction taken by Bush McTaggart, and
-chuckled in a curious, exultant sort of way. There
-was friendliness even in that chuckle. There was
-friendliness in his eyes and in the shine of his teeth
-as he looked again at Baree. About him there was
-something that seemed to make the gray day brighter,
-that seemed to warm the chill air—a strange something
-that radiated cheer and hope and comradeship
-just as a hot stove sends out the glow of heat.
-Baree felt it. For the first time since the two men
-had come his trap-torn body lost its tenseness; his
-back sagged; his teeth clicked as he shivered in his
-agony. To <i>this</i> man he betrayed his weakness.
-In his bloodshot eyes there was a hungering look as he
-watched Carvel—the self-confessed outlaw. And Jim
-Carvel again held out his hand—much nearer this time.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You poor devil,” he said, the smile going out of
-his face. “You poor devil!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The words were like a caress to Baree—the first he
-had known since the loss of Nepeese and Pierrot. He
-dropped his head until his jaw lay flat in the snow.
-Carvel could see the blood dripping slowly from it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You poor devil!” he repeated.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was no fear in the way he put forth his
-hand. It was the confidence of a great sincerity
-and a great compassion. It touched Baree’s head
-and patted it in a brotherly fashion, and then—slowly
-and with a bit more caution—it went to the
-trap fastened to Baree’s forepaw. In his half-crazed
-brain Baree was fighting to understand things, and
-the truth came finally when he felt the steel jaws of
-the trap open, and he drew forth his maimed foot.
-He did then what he had done to no other creature but
-Nepeese. Just once his hot tongue shot out and licked
-Carvel’s hand. The man laughed. With his powerful
-hands he opened the other traps, and Baree was free.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For a few moments he lay without moving, his
-eyes fixed on the man. Carvel had seated himself
-on the snow-covered end of a birch log and was
-filling his pipe. Baree watched him light it; he
-noted with new interest the first purplish cloud of
-smoke that left Carvel’s mouth. The man was not
-more than the length of two trap-chains away—and
-he grinned at Baree.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Screw up your nerve, old chap,” he encouraged.
-“No bones broke. Just a little stiff. Mebby we’d
-better—get out.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He turned his face in the direction of Lac Bain.
-The suspicion was in his mind that McTaggart
-might turn back. Perhaps that same suspicion was
-impressed upon Baree, for when Carvel looked at
-him again he was on his feet, staggering a bit as he
-gained his equilibrium. In another moment the
-outlaw had swung the pack-sack from his shoulders
-and was opening it. He thrust in his hand and
-drew out a chunk of raw, red meat.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Killed it this morning,” he explained to Baree.
-“Yearling bull, tender as partridge—and that’s as
-fine a sweetbread as ever came out from under a
-backbone. Try it!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He tossed the flesh to Baree. There was no equivocation
-in the manner of its acceptance. Baree
-was famished—and the meat was flung to him by a
-friend. He buried his teeth in it. His jaws crunched
-it. New fire leapt into his blood as he feasted, but
-not for an instant did his reddened eyes leave the
-other’s face. Carvel replaced his pack. He rose to
-his feet, took up his rifle, slipped on his snowshoes,
-and fronted the north.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Come on, Boy,” he said. “We’ve got to travel.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was a matter-of-fact invitation, as though the
-two had been travelling companions for a long time.
-It was, perhaps, not only an invitation but partly a
-command. It puzzled Baree. For a full half minute
-he stood motionless in his tracks gazing at Carvel
-as he strode into the north. A sudden convulsive
-twitching shot through Baree; he swung his head
-toward Lac Bain; he looked again at Carvel, and a
-whine that was scarcely more than a breath came
-out of his throat. The man was just about to disappear
-into the thick spruce. He paused, and
-looked back.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Coming, Boy?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Even at that distance Baree could see him grinning
-affably; he saw the outstretched hand, and the
-voice stirred new sensations in him. It was not like
-Pierrot’s voice. He had never loved Pierrot. Neither
-was it soft and sweet like the Willow’s. He
-had known only a few men, and all of them he had
-regarded with distrust. But this was a voice that
-disarmed him. It was lureful in its appeal. He
-wanted to answer it. He was filled with a desire,
-all at once, to follow close at the heels of this stranger.
-For the first time in his life a craving for the friendship
-of man possessed him. He did not move until
-Jim Carvel entered the spruce. Then he followed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>That night they were camped in a dense growth of
-cedars and balsams ten miles north of Bush McTaggart’s
-trap-line. For two hours it had snowed, and
-their trail was covered. It was still snowing, but
-not a flake of the white deluge sifted down through
-the thick canopy of boughs. Carvel had put up his
-small silk tent, and had built a fire; their supper was
-over, and Baree lay on his belly facing the outlaw,
-almost within reach of his hand. With his back to
-a tree Carvel was smoking luxuriously. He had
-thrown off his cap and his coat, and in the warm
-fireglow he looked almost boyishly young. But even
-in that glow his jaws lost none of their squareness,
-nor his eyes their clear alertness.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Seems good to have some one to talk to,” he was
-saying to Baree. “Some one who can understand,
-an’ keep his mouth shut. Did you ever want to
-howl, an’ didn’t dare? Well, that’s me. Sometimes
-I’ve been on the point of bustin’ because I wanted
-to talk to some one, an’ couldn’t.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He rubbed his hands together, and held them out
-toward the fire. Baree watched his movements
-and listened intently to every sound that escaped his
-lips. His eyes had in them now a dumb sort of
-worship, a look that warmed Carvel’s heart and did
-away with the vast loneliness and emptiness of the
-night. Baree had dragged himself nearer to the
-man’s feet, and suddenly Carvel leaned over and
-patted his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I’m a bad one, old chap,” he chuckled. “You
-haven’t got it on me—not a bit. Want to know what
-happened?” He waited a moment, and Baree
-looked at him steadily. Then Carvel went on, as if
-speaking to a human, “Let’s see—it was five years
-ago, five years this December, just before Christmas
-time. Had a Dad. Fine old chap, my Dad was.
-No Mother—just the Dad, an’ when you added us up
-we made just One. Understand? And along came
-a white-striped skunk named Hardy and shot him
-one day because Dad had worked against him in
-politics. Out an’ out murder. An’ they didn’t
-hang that skunk! No, sir, they didn’t hang him.
-He had too much money, an’ too many friends in
-politics, an’ they let ’im off with two years in the
-penitentiary. But he didn’t get there. No—s’elp
-me God, he didn’t get there!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Carvel was twisting his hands until his knuckles
-cracked. An exultant smile lighted up his face, and
-his eyes flashed back the firelight. Baree drew a
-deep breath—a mere coincidence; but it was a tense
-moment for all that.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“No, he didn’t get to the penitentiary,” went on
-Carvel, looking straight at Baree again. “Yours
-truly knew what that meant, old chap. He’d have
-been pardoned inside a year. An’ there was my
-Dad, the biggest half of me, in his grave. So I just
-went up to that white-striped skunk right there before
-the Judge’s eyes, an’ the lawyers’ eyes, an’ the
-eyes of all his dear relatives an’ friends—<i>and I killed
-him</i>! And I got away. Was out through a window
-before they woke up, hit for the bush country, and
-have been eating up the trails ever since. An’ I
-guess God was with me, Boy. For He did a queer
-thing to help me out summer before last, just when
-the Mounties were after me hardest an’ it looked
-pretty black. Man was found drowned down in the
-Reindeer Country, right where they thought I was
-cornered; an’ the good Lord made that man look so
-much like me that he was buried under my name.
-So I’m officially dead, old chap. I don’t need to be
-afraid any more so long as I don’t get too familiar
-with people for a year or so longer, and ’way down
-inside me I’ve liked to believe God fixed it up in that
-way to help me out of a bad hole. What’s <i>your</i>
-opinion? Eh?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He leaned forward for an answer. Baree had
-listened. Perhaps, in a way, he had understood.
-But it was another sound than Carvel’s voice that
-came to his ears now. With his head close to the
-ground he heard it quite distinctly. He whined, and
-the whine ended in a snarl so low that Carvel just
-caught the warning note in it. He straightened.
-He stood up then, and faced the south. Baree
-stood beside him, his legs tense and his spine bristling.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>After a moment Carvel said:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Relatives of yours, old chap. Wolves.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He went into the tent for his rifle and cartridges.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XXIX</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>Baree was on his feet, rigid as hewn rock,
-when Carvel came out of the tent, and for a
-few moments Carvel stood in silence, watching
-him closely. Would the dog respond to the call
-of the pack? Did he belong to them? Would he
-go—now? The wolves were drawing nearer. They
-were not circling, as a caribou or a deer would have
-circled, but were travelling straight—dead straight
-for their camp. The significance of this fact was
-easily understood by Carvel. All that afternoon
-Baree’s feet had left a blood-smell in their trail, and
-the wolves had struck the trail in the deep forest,
-where the falling snow had not covered it. Carvel
-was not alarmed. More than once in his five years
-of wandering between the Arctic and the Height of
-Land he had played the game with the wolves.
-Once he had almost lost, but that was out in the open
-Barren. To-night he had a fire, and in the event of
-his firewood running out he had trees he could climb.
-His anxiety just now was centred in Baree. So he
-said, making his voice quite casual,</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You aren’t going, are you, old chap?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>If Baree heard him he gave no evidence of it.
-But Carvel, still watching him closely, saw that the
-hair along his spine had risen like a brush, and then
-he heard—growing slowly in Baree’s throat—a snarl
-of ferocious hatred. It was the sort of snarl that
-had held back the Factor from Lac Bain, and Carvel,
-opening the breech of his gun to see that all was right,
-chuckled happily. Baree may have heard the chuckle.
-Perhaps it meant something to him, for he
-turned his head suddenly and with flattened ears
-looked at his companion.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The wolves were silent now. Carvel knew what
-that meant, and he was tensely alert. In the stillness
-the click of the safety on his rifle sounded with
-metallic sharpness. For many minutes they heard
-nothing but the crack of the fire. Suddenly Baree’s
-muscles seemed to snap. He sprang back, and
-faced the quarter behind Carvel, his head level with
-his shoulders, his inch-long fangs gleaming as he
-snarled into the black caverns of the forest beyond
-the rim of firelight. Carvel had turned like a shot.
-It was almost frightening—what he saw. A pair of
-eyes burning with greenish fire, and then another
-pair, and after that so many of them that he could
-not have counted them. He gave a sudden gasp.
-They were like cat-eyes, only much larger. Some
-of them, catching the firelight fully, were red as coals,
-others flashed blue and green—living things without
-bodies. With a swift glance he took in the black
-circle of the forest. They were out there, too; they
-were on all sides of them, but where he had seen
-them first they were thickest. In these first few
-seconds he had forgotten Baree, awed almost to
-stupefaction by that monster-eyed cordon of death
-that hemmed them in. There were fifty—perhaps a
-hundred wolves out there, afraid of nothing in all
-this savage world but fire. They had come up
-without the sound of a padded foot or a broken twig.
-If it had been later, and they had been asleep, and the
-fire out——</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He shuddered, and for a moment the thought got
-the better of his nerves. He had not intended to shoot
-except from necessity, but all at once his rifle came
-to his shoulder and he sent a stream of fire out where
-the eyes were thickest. Baree knew what the shots
-meant, and filled with the mad desire to get at the
-throat of one of his enemies he dashed in their direction.
-Carvel gave a startled yell as he went. He
-saw the flash of Baree’s body, saw it swallowed up
-in the gloom, and in that same instant heard the
-deadly clash of fangs and the impact of bodies. A
-wild thrill shot through him. The dog had charged
-alone—and the wolves had waited. There could be
-but one end. His four-footed comrade had gone
-straight into the jaws of death!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He could hear the ravening snap of those jaws
-out in the darkness. It was sickening. His hand
-went to the Colt .45 at his belt, and he thrust his
-empty rifle butt downward into the snow. With the
-big automatic before his eyes he plunged out into
-the darkness, and from his lips there issued a
-wild yelling that could have been heard a mile away.
-With the yelling a steady stream of fire spat
-from the Colt into the mass of fighting beasts.
-There were eight shots in the automatic, and not
-until the plunger clicked with metallic emptiness did
-Carvel cease his yelling and retreat into the firelight.
-He listened, breathing deeply. He no longer saw
-eyes in the darkness, nor did he hear the movement
-of bodies. The suddenness and ferocity of his attack
-had driven back the wolf-horde. But the
-dog! He caught his breath, and strained his eyes.
-A shadow was dragging itself into the circle of
-light. It was Baree. Carvel ran to him, put his
-arms under his shoulders, and brought him to the
-fire.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For a long time after that there was a questioning
-light in Carvel’s eyes. He reloaded his guns, put
-fresh fuel on the fire, and from his pack dug out
-strips of cloth with which he bandaged three or four
-of the deepest cuts in Baree’s legs. And a dozen
-times he asked, in a wondering sort of way,</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Now what the deuce made you do that, old chap?
-What have <i>you</i> got against the wolves?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>All that night he did not sleep, but watched.</p>
-
-<hr class='c007' />
-
-<p class='c001'>Their experience with the wolves broke down the
-last bit of uncertainty that might have existed between
-the man and the dog. For days after that,
-as they travelled slowly north and west, Carvel nursed
-Baree as he might have cared for a sick child. Because
-of the dog’s hurts, he made only a few miles a
-day. Baree understood, and in him there grew
-stronger and stronger a great love for the man whose
-hands were as gentle as the Willow’s and whose
-voice warmed him with the thrill of an immeasurable
-comradeship. He no longer feared him or had
-a suspicion of him. And Carvel, on his part, was
-observing things. The vast emptiness of the world
-about them, and their aloneness, gave him the opportunity
-of pondering over unimportant details,
-and he found himself each day watching Baree a
-little more closely. He made at last a discovery
-which interested him deeply. Always, when they
-halted on the trail, Baree would turn his face to
-the south; when they were in camp it was from the
-south that he nosed the wind most frequently.
-This was quite natural. Carvel thought, for his old
-hunting-grounds were back there. But as the days
-passed he began to notice other things. Now and
-then, looking off into the far country from which
-they had come, Baree would whine softly, and on
-that day he would be filled with a great restlessness.
-He gave no evidence of wanting to leave Carvel, but
-more and more Carvel came to understand that
-some mysterious call was coming to him from out
-of the south.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was the wanderer’s intention to swing over
-into the country of the Great Slave, a good eight
-hundred miles to the north and west, before the
-mush-snows came. From there, when the waters
-opened in springtime, he planned to travel by canoe
-westward to the Mackenzie and ultimately to the
-mountains of British Columbia. These plans were
-changed in February. They were caught in a great
-storm in the Wholdaia Lake country, and when their
-fortunes looked darkest Carvel stumbled on a cabin
-in the heart of a deep spruce forest, and in this cabin
-there was a dead man. He had been dead for many
-days, and was frozen stiff. Carvel chopped a hole
-in the earth and buried him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The cabin was a treasure trove to Carvel and
-Baree, and especially to the man. It evidently possessed
-no other owner than the one who had died;
-it was comfortable and stocked with provisions;
-and more than that, its owner had made a splendid
-catch of fur before the frost bit his lungs, and he
-died. Carvel went over them carefully and joyously.
-They were worth a thousand dollars at any post,
-and he could see no reason why they did not belong
-to him now. Within a week he had blazed out the
-dead man’s snow-covered trap-line and was trapping
-on his own account.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This was two hundred miles north and west of the
-Gray Loon, and soon Carvel observed that Baree
-did not face directly south in those moments when
-the strange call came to him, but south and east.
-And now, with each day that passed, the sun rose
-higher in the sky; it grew warmer; the snow softened
-underfoot, and in the air was the tremulous and
-growing throb of spring. With these things came
-the old yearning to Baree; the heart-thrilling call of
-the lonely graves back on the Gray Loon, of the
-burned cabin, the abandoned tepee beyond the pool—and
-of Nepeese. In his sleep he saw visions of
-things. He heard again the low, sweet voice of the
-Willow, felt the touch of her hand, was at play with
-her once more in the dark shades of the forest—and
-Carvel would sit and watch him as he dreamed, trying
-to read the meaning of what he saw and heard.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In April Carvel shouldered his furs up to the
-Hudson’s Bay Company’s post at Lac la Biche, which
-was still farther north. Baree accompanied him
-halfway, and then—at sundown Carvel returned
-to the cabin and found him there. He was so overjoyed
-that he caught the dog’s head in his arms and
-hugged it. They lived in the cabin until May.
-The buds were swelling then, and the smell of growing
-things had begun to rise up out of the earth.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then Carvel found the first of the early Blue
-Flowers.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>That night he packed up.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It’s time to travel,” he announced to Baree.
-“And I’ve sort of changed my mind. We’re going
-back—there.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And he pointed south.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XXX</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>A strange humour possessed Carvel as he
-began the southward journey. He did not
-believe in omens, good or bad. Superstition
-had played a small part in his life, but he possessed
-both curiosity and a love for adventure, and his
-years of lonely wandering had developed in him a
-wonderfully clear mental vision of things, which in
-other words might be called singularly active imagination.
-He knew that some irresistible force was
-drawing Baree back into the south—that it was
-pulling him not only along a given line of the compass,
-but to an exact point in that line. For no reason
-in particular the situation began to interest him
-more and more, and as his time was valueless, and
-he had no fixed destination in view, he began to
-experiment. For the first two days he marked the
-dog’s course by compass. It was due southeast.
-On the third morning Carvel purposely struck a
-course straight west. He noted quickly the change
-in Baree—his restlessness at first, and after that the
-dejected manner in which he followed at his heels.
-Toward noon Carvel swung sharply to the south
-and east again, and almost immediately Baree regained
-his old eagerness, and ran ahead of his master.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>After this, for many days, Carvel followed the
-trail of the dog.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Mebby I’m an idiot, old chap,” he apologized
-one evening. “But it’s a bit of fun, after all—an’
-I’ve got to hit the line of rail before I can get over
-to the mountains, so what’s the difference? I’m
-game—so long as you don’t take me back to that
-chap at Lac Bain. Now—what the devil! Are
-you hitting for his trap-line, to get even? If that’s
-the case——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He blew out a cloud of smoke from his pipe as he
-eyed Baree, and Baree, with his head between his
-forepaws, eyed him back.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A week later Baree answered Carvel’s question
-by swinging westward to give a wide berth to Post
-Lac Bain. It was mid-afternoon when they crossed
-the trail along which Bush McTaggart’s traps and
-deadfalls had been set. Baree did not even pause.
-He headed due south, travelling so fast that at
-times he was lost to Carvel’s sight. A suppressed
-but intense excitement possessed him, and he whined
-whenever Carvel stopped to rest—always with his
-nose sniffing the wind out of the south. Springtime,
-the flowers, the earth turning green, the singing of
-birds, and the sweet breaths in the air were bringing
-him back to that great Yesterday when he had belonged
-to Nepeese. In his unreasoning mind there
-existed no longer a winter. The long months of
-cold and hunger were gone; in the new visionings
-that filled his brain they were forgotten. The birds
-and flowers and the blue skies had come back, and
-with them the Willow must surely have returned,
-and she was waiting for him now, just over there
-beyond that rim of green forest.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Something greater than mere curiosity began to
-take possession of Carvel. A whimsical humour
-became a fixed and deeper thought, an unreasoning
-anticipation that was accompanied by a certain
-thrill of subdued excitement. By the time they
-reached the old beaver-pond the mystery of the
-strange adventure had a firm hold on him. From
-Beaver-tooth’s colony Baree led him to the creek
-along which Wakayoo, the black bear, had fished,
-and thence straight to the Gray Loon.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was early afternoon of a wonderful day. It was
-so still that the rippling waters of spring, singing in a
-thousand rills and streamlets, filled the forests with
-a droning music. In the warm sun the crimson
-bakneesh glowed like blood. In the open spaces
-the air was scented with the perfume of Blue Flowers.
-In the trees and bushes mated birds were building
-their nests. After the long sleep of winter Nature
-was at work in all her glory. It was <i>Unekepesim</i>,
-the Mating Moon, the Home Building Moon—and
-Baree was going home. Not to matehood—but to
-Nepeese. He knew that she was there now, perhaps
-at the very edge of the chasm where he had seen
-her last. They would be playing together again
-soon, as they had played yesterday, and the day before,
-and the day before that, and in his joy he barked
-up into Carvel’s face, and urged him to greater
-speed. Then they came to the clearing, and once
-more Baree stood like a rock. Carvel saw the
-charred ruins of the burned cabin, and a moment
-later the two graves under the tall spruce. He began
-to understand as his eyes returned slowly to the
-waiting, listening dog. A great swelling rose in his
-throat, and after a moment or two he said softly,
-and with an effort,</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Boy, I guess you’re home.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Baree did not hear. With his head up and his
-nose tilted to the blue sky he was sniffing the air.
-What was it that came to him with the perfumes of
-the forests and the green meadow? Why was it
-that he trembled now as he stood there? What was
-there in the air? Carvel asked himself, and his
-questing eyes tried to answer the questions. Nothing.
-There was death here—death and desertion,
-that was all. And then, all at once, there came from
-Baree a strange cry—almost a human cry—and he
-was gone like the wind.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Carvel had thrown off his pack. He dropped his
-rifle beside it now, and followed Baree. He ran
-swiftly, straight across the open, into the dwarf
-balsams, and into a grass-grown path that had once
-been worn by the travel of feet. He ran until he
-was panting for breath, and then stopped, and listened.
-He could hear nothing of Baree. But that
-old worn trail led on under the forest trees, and he
-followed it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Close to the deep, dark pool in which he and the
-Willow had disported so often Baree, too, had
-stopped. He could hear the rippling of water, and
-his eyes shone with a gleaming fire as he quested for
-Nepeese. He expected to see her there, her slim
-white body shimmering in some dark shadow of overhanging
-spruce, or gleaming suddenly white as snow
-in one of the warm plashes of sunlight. His eyes
-sought out their old hiding-places; the great split
-rock on the other side, the shelving banks under
-which they used to dive like otter, the spruce boughs
-that dipped down to the surface, and in the midst of
-which the Willow loved to screen her naked body
-while he searched the pool for her. And at last the
-realization was borne upon him that she was not
-there, that he had still farther to go.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He went on to the tepee. The little open space
-in which they had built their hidden wigwam was
-flooded with sunshine that came through a break
-in the forest to the west. The tepee was still there.
-It did not seem very much changed to Baree. And
-rising from the ground in front of the tepee was
-what had come to him faintly on the still air—the
-smoke of a small fire. Over that fire was bending a
-person, and it did not strike Baree as amazing, or at
-all unexpected, that this person should have two
-great shining braids down her back. He whined,
-and at his whine the Person grew a little rigid, and
-turned slowly.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Even then it seemed quite the most natural thing
-in the world that it should be Nepeese, and none
-other. He had lost her yesterday. To-day he had
-found her. And in answer to his whine there came a
-sobbing cry straight out of the soul of the Willow.</p>
-
-<hr class='c007' />
-
-<p class='c001'>Carvel found them there a few minutes later, the
-dog’s head hugged close up against the Willow’s
-breast, and the Willow was crying—crying like a
-little child, her face hidden from him on Baree’s
-neck. He did not interrupt them, but waited; and
-as he waited something in the sobbing voice and the
-stillness of the forest seemed to whisper to him a
-bit of the story of the burned cabin and the two
-graves, and the meaning of the Call that had come
-to Baree from out of the south.</p>
-
-<div>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XXXI</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>That night there was a new campfire in the
-open. It was not a small fire, built with
-the fear that other eyes might see it, but a
-fire that sent its flames high. In the glow of it stood
-Carvel. And as the fire had changed from that
-small smouldering heap over which the Willow had
-cooked her dinner, so Carvel, the officially dead outlaw,
-had changed. The beard was gone from his
-face; he had thrown off his caribou-skin coat; his
-sleeves were rolled up to the elbows, and there was a
-wild flush in his face that was not altogether the
-tanning of wind and sun and storm, and a glow in
-his eyes that had not been there for five years, perhaps
-never before. His eyes were on Nepeese. She
-sat in the firelight, leaning a little toward the blaze,
-her wonderful hair glowing warmly in the flash of
-it. Carvel did not move while she was in that attitude.
-He seemed scarcely to breathe. The glow in
-his eyes grew deeper—the worship of a man for a
-woman. Suddenly Nepeese turned and caught him
-before he could turn his gaze. There was nothing
-to hide in her own eyes. Like her face, they were
-flushed with a new hope and a new gladness. Carvel
-sat down beside her on the birch log, and in his
-hand he took one of her thick braids and crumpled it
-as he talked. At their feet, watching them, lay
-Baree.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“To-morrow or the next day I am going to Lac
-Bain,” he said, a hard and bitter note back of the
-gentle worship in his voice. “I will not come back
-until I have—killed him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Willow looked straight into the fire. For a
-time there was a silence broken only by the crackling
-of the flames, and in that silence Carvel’s fingers
-weaved in and out of the silken strands of the
-Willow’s hair. His thoughts flashed back. What a
-chance he had missed that day on Bush McTaggart’s
-trap-line—if he had only known! His jaws
-set hard as he saw in the red-hot heart of the fire the
-mental pictures of the day when the Factor from Lac
-Bain had killed Pierrot. She had told him the whole
-story. Her flight. Her plunge to what she had
-thought was certain death in the icy torrent of the
-chasm. Her miraculous escape from the waters—and
-how she was discovered, nearly dead, by Tuboa,
-the toothless old Cree whom Pierrot out of pity had
-allowed to hunt in part of his domain. He felt
-within himself the tragedy and the horror of the one
-terrible hour in which the sun had gone out of the
-world for the Willow, and in the flames he could see
-faithful old Tuboa as he called on his last strength
-to bear Nepeese over the long miles that lay between
-the chasm and his cabin; he caught shifting visions
-of the weeks that followed in that cabin, weeks of
-hunger and of intense cold in which the Willow’s
-life hung by a single thread. And at last, when the
-snows were deepest, Tuboa had died. Carvel’s fingers
-clenched in the strands of the Willow’s braid.
-A deep breath rose out of his chest, and he said,
-staring deep into the fire,</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“To-morrow I will go to Lac Bain.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For a moment Nepeese did not answer. She, too,
-was looking into the fire. Then she said:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Tuboa meant to kill him when the spring came,
-and he could travel. When Tuboa died I knew that
-it was I who must kill him. So I came, with Tuboa’s
-gun. It was fresh loaded—yesterday. And—M’sieu
-<i>Jeem</i>”—she looked up at him, a triumphant glow
-in her eyes as she added, almost in a whisper—“You
-will not go to Lac Bain. <i>I have sent a messenger.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A messenger?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes, Ookimow Jeem—a messenger. Two days
-ago. I sent word that I had not died, but was here—waiting
-for him—and that I would be <i>Iskwao</i> now,
-his wife. Oo-oo, he will come, Ookimow Jeem—he
-will come fast. And you shall not kill him. <i>Non!</i>”
-She smiled into his face, and the throb of Carvel’s
-heart was like a drum. “The gun is loaded,” she
-said softly. “I will shoot.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Two days ago,” said Carvel. “And from Lac
-Bain it is——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He will be here to-morrow,” Nepeese answered
-him. “To-morrow, as the sun goes down, he will
-enter the clearing. I know. My blood has been
-singing it all day. To-morrow—to-morrow—for he
-will travel fast, Ookimow Jeem. Yes, he will come
-fast.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Carvel had bent his head. The soft tresses gripped
-in his fingers were crushed to his lips. The Willow,
-looking again into the fire, did not see. But she <i>felt</i>—and
-her soul was beating like the wings of a bird.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ookimow Jeem,” she whispered—a breath, a
-flutter of the lips so soft that Carvel heard no sound.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>If old Tuboa had been there that night it is possible
-he would have read strange warnings in the winds
-that whispered now and then softly in the treetops.
-It was such a night; a night when the Red
-Gods whisper low among themselves, a carnival of
-glory in which even the dipping shadows and the
-high stars seemed to quiver with the life of a potent
-language. It is barely possible that old Tuboa,
-with his ninety years behind him, would have learned
-something, or that at least he would have <i>suspected</i>
-a thing which Carvel in his youth and confidence did
-not see. To-morrow—he will come to-morrow!
-The Willow, exultant, had said that. But to old
-Tuboa the trees might have whispered, <i>why not
-to-night</i>?</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was midnight when the big moon stood full
-above the little open in the forest. In the tepee
-the Willow was sleeping. In a balsam shadow back
-from the fire slept Baree, and still farther back in the
-edge of a spruce thicket slept Carvel. Dog and
-man were tired. They had travelled far and fast
-that day, and they heard no sound.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But they had travelled neither so far nor so fast
-as Bush McTaggart. Between sunrise and midnight
-he had come forty miles when he strode out
-into the clearing where Pierrot’s cabin had stood.
-Twice from the edge of the forest he had called;
-and now, when he found no answer, he stood under
-the light of the moon and listened. Nepeese was
-to be here—waiting. He was tired, but exhaustion
-could not still the fire that burned in his blood. It
-had been blazing all day, and now—so near its
-realization and its triumph—the old passion was like
-a drunkening wine in his veins. Somewhere, near
-where he stood, Nepeese was waiting for him, <i>waiting
-for him</i>. Once again he called, his heart beating in
-a fierce anticipation as he listened. There was no
-answer. And then for a thrilling instant his breath
-stopped. He sniffed the air—and there came to
-him faintly the smell of smoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With the first instinct of the forest man he fronted
-the wind that was but a faint breath under the starlit
-skies. He did not call again, but hastened across
-the clearing. Nepeese was off there—somewhere—sleeping
-beside her fire, and out of him there rose a
-low cry of exultation. He came to the edge of the
-forest; chance directed his steps to the overgrown
-trail; he followed it, and the smoke smell came
-stronger to his nostrils.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was the forest man’s instinct, too, that added
-the element of caution to his advance. That, and
-the utter stillness of the night. He broke no sticks
-under his feet. He disturbed the brush so quietly
-that it made no sound. When he came at last to
-the little open where Carvel’s fire was still sending
-a spiral of spruce-scented smoke up into the air it
-was with a stealth that failed even to rouse Baree.
-Perhaps, deep down in him, there smouldered an old
-suspicion; perhaps it was because he wanted to
-come to her while she was sleeping. The sight of
-the tepee made his heart throb faster. It was light
-as day where it stood in the moonlight, and he saw
-hanging outside it a few bits of woman’s apparel.
-He advanced soft-footed as a fox and stood a moment
-later with his hand on the cloth flap at the
-wigwam door, his head bent forward to catch the
-merest breath of sound. He could hear her breathing.
-For an instant his face turned so that the
-moonlight struck his eyes. They were aflame with
-a mad fire. Then, still very quietly, he drew aside
-the flap at the door.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It could not have been sound that roused Baree,
-hidden in the black balsam shadow a dozen paces
-away. Perhaps it was scent. His nostrils twitched
-first; then he awoke. For a few seconds his eyes
-glared at the bent figure in the tepee door. He knew
-that it was not Carvel. The old smell—the man-beast’s
-smell, filled his nostrils like a hated poison.
-He sprang to his feet and stood with his lips snarling
-back slowly from his long fangs. McTaggart had
-disappeared. From inside the tepee there came a
-sound; a sudden movement of bodies, a startled
-ejaculation of one awakening from sleep—and then a
-cry, a low, half-smothered, frightened cry, and
-in response to that cry Baree shot out from under
-the balsam with a sound in his throat that had in it
-the note of death.</p>
-
-<hr class='c007' />
-
-<p class='c001'>In the edge of the spruce thicket Carvel rolled
-uneasily. Strange sounds were rousing him, cries
-that in his exhaustion came to him as if in a dream.
-At last he sat up, and then in sudden horror leaped
-to his feet and rushed toward the tepee. Nepeese
-was in the open, crying the name she had given
-him—“<i>Ookimow Jeem—Ookimow—Jeem—Ookimow
-Jeem</i>——” She was standing there white and slim,
-her eyes with the blaze of the stars in them, and when
-she saw Carvel she flung out her arms to him, still
-crying:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ookimow Jeem—Oo-oo, Ookimow Jeem——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In the tepee he heard the rage of a beast, the
-moaning cries of a man. He forgot that it was only
-last night he had come, and with a cry he swept the
-Willow to his breast, and the Willow’s arms tightened
-round his neck as she moaned:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ookimow Jeem—it is the man-beast—in there!
-It is the man-beast from Lac Bain—and Baree——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Truth flashed upon Carvel, and he caught Nepeese
-up in his arms and ran away with her from
-the sounds that had grown sickening and horrible.
-In the spruce thicket he put her feet once more to
-the ground. Her arms were still tight around his
-neck; he felt the wild terror of her body as it throbbed
-against him; her breath was sobbing, and her eyes
-were on his face. He drew her closer, and suddenly
-he crushed his face down close against hers and felt
-for an instant the warm thrill of her lips against his
-own. And he heard the whisper, soft and trembling.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ooo-oo, <i>Ookimow Jeem</i>——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When Carvel returned to the fire, alone, his Colt
-in his hand, Baree was in front of the tepee
-waiting for him. Carvel picked up a burning brand
-and entered the wigwam. When he came out his
-face was white. He tossed the brand in the fire,
-and went back to Nepeese. He had wrapped her in
-his blankets, and now he knelt down beside her and
-put his arms about her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He is dead, Nepeese.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Dead, Ookimow Jeem?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes. Baree killed him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She did not seem to breathe. Gently, with his
-lips in her hair, Carvel whispered his plans for their
-paradise.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“No one will know, my sweetheart. To-night I
-will bury him and burn the tepee. To-morrow we
-will start for Nelson House, where there is a Missioner.
-And after that—we will come back—and I
-will build a new cabin where the old one burned.
-<i>Do you love me, ka sakahet?</i>”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Oui—yes—Ookimow Jeem—I love you——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Suddenly there came an interruption. Baree at
-last was giving his cry of triumph. It rose to the
-stars; it wailed over the roofs of the forests and filled
-the quiet skies—a wolfish howl of exultation, of
-achievement, of vengeance fulfilled. Its echoes died
-slowly away, and silence came again. A great peace
-whispered in the soft breath of the treetops. Out
-of the north came the mating call of a loon. About
-Carvel’s shoulders the Willow’s arms crept closer.
-And Carvel, out of his heart, thanked God.</p>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
-<div class='nf-center c008'>
- <div>THE END</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
-<div class='nf-center c009'>
- <div><span class='small'>THE COUNTRY LIFE PRESS</span></div>
- <div><span class='small'>GARDEN CITY, N. Y.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of Project Gutenberg's Baree, Son of Kazan, by James Oliver Curwood
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BAREE, SON OF KAZAN ***
-
-***** This file should be named 53929-h.htm or 53929-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/3/9/2/53929/
-
-Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
- </body>
- <!-- created with ppgen.py 3.56l on 2017-01-09 03:33:30 GMT -->
-</html>
diff --git a/old/53929-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/53929-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 690b5da..0000000
--- a/old/53929-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/53929-h/images/illus-048.jpg b/old/53929-h/images/illus-048.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 42873e3..0000000
--- a/old/53929-h/images/illus-048.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/53929-h/images/illus-094.jpg b/old/53929-h/images/illus-094.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 225f0b9..0000000
--- a/old/53929-h/images/illus-094.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/53929-h/images/illus-126.jpg b/old/53929-h/images/illus-126.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7a2270d..0000000
--- a/old/53929-h/images/illus-126.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/53929-h/images/illus-160.jpg b/old/53929-h/images/illus-160.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7553dad..0000000
--- a/old/53929-h/images/illus-160.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/53929-h/images/illus-174.jpg b/old/53929-h/images/illus-174.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 202f185..0000000
--- a/old/53929-h/images/illus-174.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/53929-h/images/illus-fpc.jpg b/old/53929-h/images/illus-fpc.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b73db2e..0000000
--- a/old/53929-h/images/illus-fpc.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ